Id | Vlad | Saved | Scrape Time | Status | Scrape Result | Original Ad | Adarchiveid | Creative Links | Title | Body | Cta Type | Link Url | Pageid | Page Name | Page Profile Uri | Page Like Count | Collationcount | Collationid | Currency | Enddate | Entitytype | Fevinfo | Gatedtype | Hasuserreported | Hiddensafetydata | Hidedatastatus | Impressionstext | Impressionsindex | Isaaaeligible | Isactive | Isprofilepage | Cta Text | Pageinfo | Pageisdeleted | Pagename | Reachestimate | Reportcount | Ad Creative | Byline | Caption | Dynamic Versions | Effective Authorization Category | Display Format | Link Description | Link Url | Page Welcome Message | Creation Time | Page Profile Picture Url | Page Entity Type | Page Is Profile Page | Instagram Actor Name | Instagram Profile Pic Url | Instagram Url | Instagram Handle | Is Reshared | Version | Branded Content | Current Page Name | Disclaimer Label | Page Is Deleted | Root Reshared Post | Additional Info | Ec Certificates | Country Iso Code | Instagram Branded Content | Spend | Startdate | Statemediarunlabel | Actions |
---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|
2,656,882 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
null |
No | 2024-12-31 18:39 | active | 2174 | 0 |
|
๊ณ์ ์ฝ๊ธฐ๐ | ๋จํธ์ ๋ฐฐ์ ์ ๋ฐ๊ฒ ๋์๋ค. ๋ชจ๋ ์ฌ๋๋ค์ด ๊ทธ๋ ์ ๋ถํ์ ๋น์์์ง๋ง ๋๊ฐ ์์์ผ๋ด. ๊ณ ์กธ๋ ํ์ง ๋ชปํ ๊ทธ๋ ์ ์ ์ฒด๋ ์ต๊ณ ์ ํด์ปค์ด์ ์ผ๋ฅ ๋ ์ด์์ ์ธ๊ณ์ ์ผ๋ก ์ ๋ช ํ ์ํ๊ต์์์ผ๋ฉฐ ์ ๋ช ํ ๋ณด์ ๋์์ด๋์ธ ๊ฒ์ด๋ค. ===== "์ผ๋ฅธ ์ดํผ ์๋ฅ์ ์๋ช ํ๊ณ ๊ณ ์จ ๊ฐ๋ฌธ์์ ๋๊ฐ! ์์ฐ๋ ํ์ฌ ์ผ ๋๋ฌธ์ ๋ฐ๋น . ๋ํํ ๋ญ๋นํ ์๊ฐ์ด ์๋ ์ ๋ผ๊ณ !" ๊ณ ์์๊ฐ ์ง์ฆ์ ๋๋ค. ์๋จ์ ๋ฐ์น์ ์๋ฅ ํ๋๊ฐ ํญ ๋จ์ด์ก๋ค. ์๋ฅ ์๋์ชฝ์ ์๋ช ์ด ํ๋์ ๋ค์ด์๋ค. ๊ณ ์์ฐ. "์์ฐ ์จ๋ ์ด๋ ์์ฃ ? ์ ์์ฐ ์จ๊ฐ ์ง์ ์์ ๋งํ์ง๋ ์๋ ๊ฑฐ์์?" ์๋จ์ด ๋ฌผ์๋ค. ๊ณ ์์๋ ๋ง์น ์๋จ์ด ํฐ๋ฌด๋์๋ ์ง๋ฌธ์ ํ๋ค๋ ๋ฏ์ด ์ฝ์์์ ์ณค๋ค. "๋ด ๋์์ด ๋ ๊ฐ์ ์ ํํ ์ ๊ฒฝ ์ธ ์๊ฐ์ด ์๋ ์ค ์์?" ๊ณ ์์๋ ์๋จ์ ๋จธ๋ฆฌ๋ถํฐ ๋ฐ๋๊น์ง ํ์ด๋ดค๋ค. ์๋จ์ ์๋ฆ๋ค์ด ์ธ๋ชจ๋ ๋ถ์ ํ ์ ์์๋ค. ๊ณ ์์์กฐ์ฐจ๋ ์๋จ์ ์ฒ์์ ๋ณด๊ณ ๊ฐํํ ์ ๋์์ผ๋ ๋ง์ด๋ค. ํ์ง๋ง ์๋จ์ ์๋ฆ๋ค์ด ์ธ๋ชจ๋ ์ธ์ ๋ ๊ฐ๋ ค์ ธ ์์๋ค. ๊ทธ๋ ์ ์ฑ ๋ง์ ์๋จธ๋ฆฌ์ ํฐ ๊ฒ์ ๋ฟํ ์๊ฒฝ์ ๊ทธ๋ ์ ์กฐ๊ทธ๋งํ ์ผ๊ตด์ด ๊ฑฐ์ ๊ฐ๋ ค์ก๊ณ , ๋ ํ๋ ํ ์ด๋๋ณต์ ์ ๊ณ ์์ด์ ๊ท ํ ์กํ ๋ชธ๋งค๋ฅผ ์์ ํ ๊ฐ์ถฐ ๋ฒ๋ ธ๋ค. ๊ณ ์์๋ ์๋จ์ ์ง์์ผ ๋ฐ์ ํ ์ค ๋ชจ๋ฅด๋ ์ฃผ๋ถ์ผ ๋ฟ์ด๋ผ๊ณ ์๊ฐํ๋ค. ์๋จ์ ์ ์ ์ ๊นจ๋ฌผ๋๋ ๊ฐ์๊ธฐ ์์์ ํฐ๋๋ ธ๋ค. "์ผ ํ๋๋ผ ๋ฐ์ ๊ฑฐ์์? ์๋๋ฉด ํ์ง์ฐ ์จ์ ์๊ฐ ๋ณด๋ด๋๋ผ ๋ฐ์ ๊ฑฐ์์?" ์๋จ์ด ์์ธํ๊ฒ ๋งํ๋ค. ๊ณ ์์ฐ๊ฐ 10๋ ๋์ ์ฌ๋ํ ์ฌ์ ํ์ง์ฐ! 3๋ ๊ฐ์ ์ํ๋ก์ด ๊ฒฐํผ ์ํ ๋์ ๋จน๊ตฌ๋ฆ๋ง๋ฅ ๊ทธ๋ฆผ์๋ฅผ ๋๋ฆฌ์ฐ๊ณ ์์๋ค. ๊ทธ ๋น์, ํ์ง์ฐ๊ฐ ๊ฒฐํผ์ ์๋๊ณ ์ฌ๋ผ์ ธ๋ฒ๋ฆฐ ํ์, ๊ณ ์จ ๊ฐ๋ฌธ์ A์์ ์์๊ฑฐ๋ฆฌ๊ฐ ๋ ๋ปํ๋ค. ์๋จ์ ๊ณ ์์ฐ์ ํ ์๋ฒ์ง ๊ณ ํ๋์ ํ๋ ์ฝ์์ ์งํค๊ณ , ์ด๋ฆฐ ์์ ๊ณ ์์ฐ์๊ฒ ์ง ๋น์ ๊ฐ๊ธฐ ์ํด ๋ง์ค์ ์์ด ๊ณ ์์ฐ์ ๊ฒฐํผํ๋ค. ์๋จ์ ์ํ๋ฅผ ๊ฐ๊ธฐ ์ํด ์์ ์ ์ ์ฒด๋ฅผ ์จ๊ธฐ๊ณ ์์ ์ ๋ชจ๋ ๊ฒ์ ๋จํธ๊ณผ ๊ณ ์จ ์ง์์ ํ์ ํ๋ค. ๊ณ ์จ ๊ฐ๋ฌธ์ ์์ง์จ ์ดํ, ์๋จ์ ์๋ถ๋ชจ๋์ ์ ๋ชจ์ จ๊ณ , ๊ณ ์์๋ฅผ ์ด์ฌํ ๋์๋ค. ๋์ ํฅ์ ๋ง์ ์ฐ๋ ๊ณ ์์๋ ๋์ด ๋ถ์กฑํ ๋๋ง๋ค ์๋จ์๊ฒ ๋์์ ์์ฒญํ๊ณค ํ๋ค. ๊ณ ์์๊ฐ ๋จํธ์๊ฒ ํญํ ๋นํ ๋๋ง๋ค ๊ณ ์จ ๊ฐ๋ฌธ ์ฌ๋๋ค์ ์์ ๋ค์๊ฒ ๋ถ์ ์ ์ธ ์ํฅ์ ๋ฏธ์น ๊น ๋ด ๋ ๋ชจ๋ฅด๋ ์ฒํ๋ค. ์๋จ์ด ๋์์ฃผ์ง ์์๋ค๋ฉด ๊ณ ์์๋ ์ด๋ค ํํ ์ผ์ ๋นํ์์ง ๋ชฐ๋๊ณ , ์์กฐ๋กญ๊ฒ ์ดํผํ ์๋ ์์์ ๊ฒ์ด๋ค. '์ด์ ์์ ๋ ๋ฌด์ํ๊ณ ์๋ ์ฒ์ ํด!' ์ดํผ ํฉ์์์ ์กฐ๊ฑด์ ์ดํด๋ณด๋ ์๋จ์ ๊ฐ์๊ธฐ ์๋ฅ๋ฅผ ๋ซ๊ณ ํ ์ด๋ธ ์์ ๋ด๋ ค๋์๋ค. "์ดํผ์ ๋์ํ๊ฒ ์ง๋ง, ์์ฐ ์จ ์ฌ์ฐ์ ์ ๋ฐ์ ๋์๊ฒ ์ค์ผ ํด์." ๋๋ผ ๋์ ํฌ๊ฒ ๋ฌ ๊ณ ์์๋ ํ ์ด๋ธ์ ๋ด๋ฆฌ์น๋ฉฐ ๋ฒ๋ก ์ผ์ด์ฐ๋ค. "๊ฟ ๊นจ! ๊ณ ์จ ๊ฐ๋ฌธ์ ์์ง ์ค๋ฉด ๋ค ํ์๊ฐ ํ ๊ฑฐ๋ผ๊ณ ์๊ฐํ๋ ๋ณด์ง? ๋ ํ ํผ๋ ๋ชป ๋ฐ๊ณ ๋๊ฐ๊ฒ ๋ ๊ฑฐ์ผ!" ์๋จ์ ์ฐจ๋ถํ๊ฒ ์์น๋ง๋ฅผ ๋ฒ๊ณ ํ๋ ํ ํ์จ์ด์ ์งํผ๋ฅผ ๋ด๋ ธ๋ค. ๊ทธ๋ฌ์ ๋ชธ๋งค๊ฐ ๋๋ณด์ด๋ ๋งค๋ํ ์์์ ์ฒญ๋ฐ์ง๊ฐ ๋๋ฌ๋ฌ๋ค. ์๋จ์ ์๊ฒฝ์ ๋ฒ๊ณ ๋ฏธ์๋ฅผ ์ง์ผ๋ฉฐ ๊ณ ์์๋ฅผ ๋ฐ๋ผ๋ดค๋ค. "๊ฒฐ์ ์ ํ๋์ด ๋ด๋ฆฌ๋ ๊ฒ ์๋์ฃ . ์์ฐ ์จ์ ์ง์ ์๊ธฐํด ๋ณผ๊ฒ์." ๊ณ ์์๋ ์ด์ค๋ฝ๊ธฐ๋ง ํ๋ ์๋จ์ด ๋๊น์งํ ์ฌ์ด์ ๋ถ์๊ธฐ๊ฐ ํ ๋ค๋ฅธ ์ฌ๋์ผ๋ก ๋ณ์ ํ์ ๊น์ง ๋๋ผ ์ ์ ๋ง๋ฌธ์ด ๋งํ๋ค. ๊ณ ์์๊ฐ ์ ์ ์ ์ฐจ๋ ธ์ ๋, ์๋จ์ ์ด๋ฏธ ์ ๊ตฌ๋ก ๊ฑธ์ด๊ฐ๊ณ ์์๋ค. "์ด๋ ๊ฐ? ๋น์ฅ ์ด๋ฆฌ ์์ ์๋ฅ์ ์๋ช ํ์ง ๋ชปํด!" ๊ณ ์์๊ฐ ์๋ฆฌ์ณค๋ค. ๋ถ๋ ธ์ ์ฌ๋ก์กํ ๊ณ ์์๋ ์๋ฅ๋ฅผ ์์ผ์ฅ๊ณ ๋ฉ์ด์ ธ๊ฐ๋ ์๋จ์๊ฒ ๋์ก๋ค. ์ข ์ด๊ฐ ๊ณต์ค์ ํ๋ญ์ด๋ฉฐ ์๋จ์ ์์ฌ์์ฌํ๊ฒ ์ง๋์ณค๋ค. ๊ทธ๋ฆฌ๊ณ ๋ฐ์ผ๋ก ๋๊ฐ์๋ง์ ์ฌ๋นจ๋ฆฌ ์ ํ๋ฅผ ๊ฑธ์๋ค. "๊ณ ์์ฐ๊ฐ ์ด๋ ์๋์ง ์๋ ค์ค." ์คํ 4์๊ฐ ๋์ ์ฝ๋์ธ๊ทธ ํ ๋๊ฐ ๋ฅ์ํ๊ฒ ๊ตํต์ฒด์ฆ์ ํค์น๊ณ ๋๊ฐ๋ฉฐ ๊ณ ์๋๋ก๋ฅผ ์ง์ฃผํ๋ค. "์ฐพ์์ด. ์ฑ์ฌ ๋๊ทน์ฅ์ ์๋ค. GPS ์ค์ ํด ๋จ์ด." ๋ธ๋ฃจํฌ์ค ์คํผ์ปค์์ ์ฝ๊ฐ ๋ถ์ํ ๋ฏํ ๋ชฉ์๋ฆฌ๊ฐ ํ๋ฌ ๋์๋ค. "๋จ์, ์ฑ๊ธํ๊ฒ ํ๋ํ์ง ๋ง. ๊ณ ์์ฐ๋ ๊ทธ๋ด ๊ฐ์น๊ฐ ์๋ ์ฌ๋์ด์ผ..." ์ง์ฆ๋๊ธฐ๋ ํ๊ณ ์ฐ์ต๊ธฐ๋ ํ ์๋จ์ ๋์น์ ์ฐํธ๋ฆฌ๋ฉฐ ๋งํ๋ค. "๊ฑฑ์ ๋ง. ๋ด๊ฐ ์ ๊ทธ๋ฌ๊ฒ ์ด." "๊ทธ์ผ..." ์ ํ ๋ฐ๋ํธ์์ ์ํฌ์ฐ์ด ๋ฐ๋ฐํ๋ค. "๋๋ ํ์์๋ ์นจ์ฐฉํ ์ ์ง๋ง, ์ด ์ด ๋ ๋๋ฅผ ๊ตฌํด์ค ์ฌ๋์ด ๊ณ ์์ฐ๋ผ๋ ๊ฑธ ์๊ฒ ๋ ์ดํ๋ก ์์ ํ ๋ฌ๋ผ์ก์์. ๋ค ๊ฐ์น๋ฅผ ์์๋ณด์ง ๋ชปํ๋ ์ฌ๋ ๋๋ฌธ์ ์ ์์ ์ ํฌ์ํ๋ ค๋ ๊ฑฐ์ผ? ๊ทธ ์ฌ๋์ ์ํด ์ง์ง ์ ๋ถ๊ณผ ๋ฅ๋ ฅ๊น์ง ์จ๊ธฐ๊ณ ... ๋์ฒด ์ ๊ทธ๋ฌ๋ ๊ฑด๋ฐ?" "๊ทธ๋งํด!" ์๋จ์ด ์๋ฆฌ์ณค๋ค. "๊ทธ ์ฌ๋ ๋๋ฌธ์ ๊ทธ๋ฌ๋ ๊ฑฐ ์๋์ผ. ๋, ์ฐ๋ฆฌ ์ง์ ์ํฉ์ด ์ง๊ธ ์ผ๋ง๋ ๋ณต์กํ์ง ์์์." ์ํฌ์ฐ์ด ๋จ์ง ๊ทธ๋ ๊ฐ ๊ฑฑ์ ๋ผ์ ํ๋ ๋ง์ด๋ผ๋ ๊ฑธ ๊นจ๋ซ๊ณ ์๋จ์ ๋ชฉ์๋ฆฌ๋ฅผ ๋ฎ์ท๋ค. "๊ฑฑ์ ๋ง. ๊ทธ๋ฅ ์ดํผํ๋ ค๊ณ ๊ทธ๋ฌ๋ ๊ฑฐ๋๊น." "๋ญ? ๋ง์์ฌ..." ์ํฌ์ฐ์ด ํ ์๋ฆฌ๋ฅผ ๋๋ค. ์ํฌ์ฐ์ด ํฐ ์๋ฆฌ๋ฅผ ๋ด๊ธฐ ์ ์ ์๋จ์ ์ฌ๋นจ๋ฆฌ ์ ํ๋ฅผ ๋์๋ค. ๊ทธ๋ ๋ ์์ ์ ์ธ๊ฒ ๋ฐ์ผ๋ฉฐ ๋ฏธ์๋ฅผ ์ง์๋ค. ์๋จ์ ์์ ๊ฐ๋ก๋ง๊ณ ์๋ ๋ถ๊ฐํฐ๋ฅผ ๋ฅ์ํ๊ฒ ํผํ ๋ค์ ๋น ๋ฅธ ์๋๋ก ๋ฌ๋ ค๋๊ฐ๊ธฐ ์์ํ๋ค. ํํธ, ๊ฒ์์ ๋ถ๊ฐํฐ์ ๋ท์ข์์ ์์ ๋จ์๊ฐ ์ฐจ๊ฐ์ด ๋ชฉ์๋ฆฌ๋ก ๋งํ๋ค. "์ฝ๋์ธ๊ทธ๋ฅผ ๋ฐ๋ผ๊ฐ. ๋ฐ์ฒ์ฃผ์๊ฒ ๋ค์ ๊ต์ฐจ๋ก์์ ์ ์ฐจ๋ฅผ ๋ง์ผ๋ผ๊ณ ์๋ ค." ๋น์๋ ์ฐจ ์๋๋ฅผ ๋์ด๋ฉฐ ๋จ๋ฆฌ๋ ๋ชฉ์๋ฆฌ๋ก ๋ฌผ์๋ค. "๋ํ๋, ์ ์ฐจ๊ฐ ๋ฌด์จ ๋ฌธ์ ๋ผ๋ ์์ต๋๊น?" ๋จ์๋ ๋ฑ์ ๊ธฐ๋๊ณ ์ ์ ์ ์ด์ง ๋ฒ๋ฆฌ๋๋ ์ค์ผ๊ฑฐ๋ ธ๋ค. "์ค๋๋ง์ด์ผ, ํธ๋ผ์ด์ธํธ." ์ 2ํ ๊ทธ๋ ๋ ํธ๋ผ์ด์ธํธ ํธ๋ผ์ด์ธํธ? ์ด์ ์์ ์์ ์๋ ์จ์งํ์ ๋๋ผ ์์ฐํ๋ค. ์๋ ๊ฐ ์ธ๋๊ทธ๋ผ์ด๋ ๋ ์ด์ฑ ๋ญํน ์์๋ฅผ ์ฅ์ ํ๋ฉฐ ์ฑํผ์ธ์ผ๋ก ํ์ฝํ๋ ์ ์ค์ ์ธ ๊ทธ ํธ๋ผ์ด์ธํธ๊ฐ ์ ์ฌ๋์ด๋ผ๊ณ ? ํธ๋ผ์ด์ธํธ๋ 3๋ ์ ์ ํ์ ๋ ์์ด ์ฌ๋ผ์ง์ง ์์์๋? ํธ๋ผ์ด์ธํธ๊ฐ ์ ์ง๊ธ ๊ฐ์๊ธฐ A์์ ๋ํ๋ ๊ฑธ๊น? ๊ฒ๋ค๊ฐ ์ธ๋ จ๋ ์ฝ๋์ธ๊ทธ์ ์ด์ ์๋ ์ฌ์ฑ์ธ ๊ฒ ๊ฐ์๋ค. ๊ทธ๋ฌ๋ ๋ท์ข์์ ์์ ๋จ์๊ฐ ํ์ ์ ๋ด์ ๋งํ์ ์จ์งํ์ ์๋ฌด ๋ง๋ ํ์ง ์์๋ค. ๊ทธ๋ ์์ ๊ฐ๋ ์ฐจ์ ์จ์ ํ ์ง์คํ๋ฉฐ ์ ๋ ๋์น์ง ์์ ๊ฑฐ๋ผ ๊ฒฐ์ฌํ๋ค. ์๋จ์ ๋ถ๊ฐํฐ๋ฅผ ์ถ์ํ๋ฉด์ ์ผ์ชฝ ์ฌ์ด๋ ๋ฏธ๋ฌ๋ฅผ ํ๊น ๋ณด๋ฉฐ ๋์ด์ ์ฐํธ๋ ธ๋ค. ๊ทธ๋ ๋ ๋ธ๋ฃจํฌ์ค ์ด์ดํฐ์ ๋๋๋ฆฌ๋ฉฐ ์ฐจ๋ถํ๋ฉด์๋ ๋จํธํ ๋ชฉ์๋ฆฌ๋ก ๋งํ๋ค. "ํฌ์ฐ์, ์์ฑ์ ์ ์ํด. 8์ ๋ฐฉํฅ์ ๋ถ๊ฐํฐ๊ฐ ๋ฐ๋ผ์ค๊ณ ์์ด. ์ฐจ์ฃผ๋ฅผ ํ์ธํด์ค." ์ํฌ์ฐ์ ๋นํฉํ์ง๋ง ์ฌ๋นจ๋ฆฌ ๊ทธ๋ ์ ๋ง์ ๋ฐ๋๋ค. ์ฐจ์ฃผ๋ฅผ ์์๋ธ ๊ทธ๋ ๋ ํ์จ์ ์ฌ๋ฉฐ ์ด์ดํฐ์ ๋๊ณ ๋งํ๋ค. "๋ฐฐ์จ ๊ฐ๋ฌธ์ ์ฐจ์ผ. ์ด ์ฐจ ์ฃผ์ธ์... ๋ฐฐ๋ํค์ด์ผ!" ์๋จ์ ๋์๋ ๋๋ ๊ธฐ์์ด ์ญ๋ ฅํ๋ค. "๋ง๋ ์ ๋ผ. ์ด๋ป๊ฒ ์๋ ์ฌ์ด์ผ?" ์ํฌ์ฐ์ด ๋นํฉํ ๋ฏ ๋งํ๋ค. "์ง๋๋ฌ ํด์ธ ๊ธ์ต ์ค์ฌ์ง ์ธ ์คํธ๋ฆฌํธ์์ ๋์์๋ค๋ ์์์ ๋ค์์ด. ์ด๋ฏธ A์๋ฅผ ๋ค์ง์ด ๋์๊ณ ์ค๋๋ ๊ฐ๋ฌธ๋ค ์ฌ์ด์ ๊ถ๋ ฅ ๊ตฌ๋๊น์ง ๋ฐ๊ฟ๋์๋." ์ํฌ์ฐ์ด ๋ง์ค์ด๋ค๊ฐ ์์ฌ์ค๋ฌ์ด ๋ฏ์ด ๋ฌผ์๋ค. "๋, ๋ฐฐ์จ ๊ทธ๋ฃน ์ฌ๋์ด๋ ๋ญ... ์์์ด?" "์ผ!" ์๋จ์ด ๋ธ๋ฃจํฌ์ค ์ด์ดํฐ์ ๋๋๋ฆฌ๋ฉฐ ์ฒด๋ ํ ๋ฏ ๋งํ๋ค. "์๋ฌด๋ฆฌ ๋๋ผ๋ ๊ทธ ์ ๋๋ก ์์ฌ์ด ๋ง์ง๋ ์์. ๊ฒ๋ค๊ฐ ์ง๋ 3๋ ๋์ ๋๋ A์์ ์์๋ค๊ณ . ํด์ธ๋ก ์ฌํ์ ๊ฐ ๋๋ง๋ค ํ์ ์ด ๋จ๊ธฐ์ง ์์ผ๋ ค๊ณ , ์ ๋ถ ์์กฐ๊น์ง ํ๋ฉด์ ๋ค๋ ์ด. ์ผ๋ง๋ ๋ฒ๊ฑฐ๋ก์ด๋ฐ. ๋ด๊ฐ ๋ฐฐ์จ ๊ทธ๋ฃน ์ฌ๋๋ค์ ๊ฑด๋๋ฆด ์๊ฐ์ด๋ ์์์ ๊ฒ ๊ฐ์?" ์ํฌ์ฐ์ ์์ ์ ์ค์๋ฅผ ๊นจ๋ซ๊ณ ์๋๋ฌ ๋งํ๋ค. "๋ง์, ์ด๊ฒ ๋ค ๊ณ ์์ฐ ๋๋ฌธ์ด์ผ. ๊ทธ ์ฌ๋๋ง ์๋์์ด๋ ๋๋..." "๋์ด. ๋ถ๊ฐํฐ์ ์ค๋งํธ ์์คํ ์ ์๊ฒฉ์ผ๋ก ํดํนํ ์ ์์๊น? ์ง๊ธ ๋น์ฅ ํด๊ฒฐํ์ง ์์ผ๋ฉด ๋ฐฐ๋ํค์ ๋ด๊ฐ ํ์ฅ์์ ๊ณ ์์ฐ๋ฅผ ์ก๋ ๊ฑธ ๋ณด๊ฒ ๋ ๊ฑฐ์ผ." ์๋จ์ ๋ค์ ๋ฐฑ๋ฏธ๋ฌ๋ฅผ ํ๋ ์ณ๋ค๋ดค๋ค. ๋ถ๊ฐํฐ๊ฐ ์ ์ ๋ ๊ฑฐ๋ฆฌ๋ฅผ ์ขํ๋ฉฐ ๋ค๊ฐ์ค๊ณ ์์๋ค. "์ ๋ผ!" ์ํฌ์ฐ์ด ๊ธด๋ฐํ ๋ชฉ์๋ฆฌ๋ก ๋งํ๋ค. "์๋ ์๋ ๋ชจ๋ ๋ ๋ค ๋ฌ๋ ค์๋ ์ฐจ์ผ. ๋จ์ํ ์์คํ ์ ์ค๋จํ๋ ๊ฒ๋ง์ผ๋ก๋ ํจ๊ณผ๊ฐ ์๋ค๊ณ !" ์๋จ์ ์ด๋ง๋ฅผ ๋์ฑ ์ธ๊ฒ ์ฐํธ๋ฆฌ๋ฉฐ ์ ์ ์ด๋ ค๋ ์๊ฐ ์ํฌ์ฐ์ด ๊ฐ์๊ธฐ ๋ค๊ธํ ๋ชฉ์๋ฆฌ๋ก ๋งํ๋ค. "๋จ์, ์๋ ๋ฆ์ถฐ! 2ํฌ๋ก๋ฏธํฐ ์ ๊ต์ฐจ๋ก์์ ๋ฐ๋ฆฌ์ผ์ด๋๊ฐ ์ณ์ ธ ์์ด!" ๋จผ์ง์ ์ํด๋ก ๋ค์์ธ ์๊ฐ๊ฐ ๊ฑทํ๊ณ ์๊ธธ์ด ๋๋ฌ๋์, ์๋จ์ ์ง์ฆ์ ๋ด๋ฉฐ ๋งํ๋ค. "์ ๋ง ๋ฉ์ง ๊ด๊ฒฝ์ด๋ค." ๋น ๋ฅธ ์๋๋ก ๋ฌ๋ฆฌ๋ ์ฝ๋์ธ๊ทธ๋ ๊ณง ์์์ ๋ค๊น์ง ๋ป์ ๋ฐ๋ฆฌ์ผ์ด๋์ ๊ฐํ ๋ฉ์ถ ์๋ฐ์ ์์๋ค. ์๋จ์ ์์คํํธ ๋๋ก ์์์ ์์ ํ ๊ถ์ง์ ๋ชฐ๋ฆฌ๊ณ ๋ง์๋ค. ๊ทธ๋ ์ ์์๋ ์คํฌ์ธ ์นด 6๋๊ฐ, ๊ทธ๋ ๋ค์๋ ๋ถ๊ฐํฐ๊ฐ ์ํ๋น๋นํ๊ฒ ๊ฐ๋ก๋ง๊ณ ์ ์์๋ค. ๊ทธ๋ ๋ ์ข์์ ๊ธฐ๋์์ ํฅ๋ฏธ๋กญ๋ค๋ ๋ฏ์ด ๋์น์ ์น์ผ์ฌ๋ ธ๋ค. ์ ๋์ ์๋ ํ๋ผ๋ฆฌ์ ์ด์ ์๊ฐ ๋ฌด๋ฆฌ์ ์ฐ๋๋จธ๋ฆฌ๊ฐ ๋ถ๋ช ํ๋ค. ๊ทธ๋ ์๋จ์๊ฒ ์ฐจ์์ ๋ด๋ ค ๋ํ๋ฅผ ๋๋์๊ณ ์์งํ๋ค. ๊ทธ๋ผ์๋ ๋ถ๊ตฌํ๊ณ ์๋จ์ ์์ ์ ๋ฐฑ๋ฏธ๋ฌ์ ๋น์น ๋ถ๊ฐํฐ์ ๊ณ ์ ๋์ด ์์๋ค. ๊ฑฐ๋ฆฌ๊ฐ ๋ฉ์ด์ ์ด์ ์์ ์ผ๊ตด์ด ๊ฒจ์ฐ ๋ณด์๋ค. ๋ท์ข์์ ์์ ๋ฐฐ๋ํค์ ๋ชจ์ต์ ์ฝ๊ฐ ๊ฐ๋ ค์ ธ ์์์ง๋ง, ์ด์ง ๋ณด์ด๋ ๊ฒ์ ์ ์ฅ์ ์ฌ์ ํ ์์์ ์ธ ์์ฐ๋ผ๋ฅผ ๋ด๋ฟ๊ณ ์์๋ค. ์จ์งํ์ ์ฝ๋์ธ๊ทธ๊ฐ ํ์ฐธ ๋์ ์์ง์ด์ง ์๋ ๊ฒ์ ๋ณด๊ณ ๋ท์ข์์ ํ๋ ๋ณด๋ฉฐ ๋งํ๋ค. "๋ํ๋, ๋ฐ์ฒ์ฃผ๋ฅผ ์์ผ์ ์ต์ง๋ก ๋์ด๋ด๋ฆฌ๋ผ๊ณ ํ ๊น์?" ๋ฐฐ๋ํค์ ๋ค๋ฆฌ๋ฅผ ๊ผฌ๊ณ ์์ ์ค์ง ์๊ฐ๋ฝ์ ๋ผ์์ง ํฌ๋ฅด๋ง๋ฆฐ ๋ฐ์ง๋ฅผ ๋ฌด์ฌํ๊ฒ ๋๋ฆฌ๋ฉฐ ๋งํ๋ค. "๊ธฐ๋ค๋ ค." ๋ฐฐ๋ํค์ ๋๊บผ์ด ์ฐจ์ฐฝ ๋๋จธ๋ก ์์ฐจ์ ํ ์๋จ๊ณผ ์์ ์ ๋ง์ฃผ์น๋ ๋ฏํ๋ค. ๊ทธ๋ ์๊ฒ ์์์ ํฐ๋จ๋ ธ๋ค. "์ด๋ ๊ฒ ์ฝ๊ฒ ์กํ๋ฉด ํธ๋ผ์ด์ธํธ๊ฐ ์๋์ง." ์๋จ์ ์ธ๋ด์ฌ์ด ํ๊ณ์ ๋ค๋ค๋๋ค. ๊ทธ๋ ๋ ์์ชฝ์ ๊ตํต ์ํฉ์ ์ดํด๋ณด์๋ค. ์๋ ๋ฌด๋ฆฌ๋ ์ฃผ์ ํ๋ ๋ฏํด ๋ณด์๋ค. ๊ทธ๋ ๋ฅผ ์ฐจ์์ ๋์ด๋ด๋ฆฌ๋ ค๊ณ ํ๋ ๋์ ์๋ก ์ ํธ๋ง ์ฃผ๊ณ ๋ฐ์ ๋ฟ์ด์๋ค. "ํฌ์ฐ์, ์ฑ์ฌ ๋๊ทน์ฅ์ผ๋ก ๊ฐ๋ ๋ค๋ฅธ ๊ธธ์ด ์์ด? ์ฐพ์์ค." ์๋จ์ด ๋ฌผ์๋ค. ์ํฌ์ฐ์ด ์๊ฐ๋ฝ์ผ๋ก ํ๋ฉด ์์์ ๋ฐ์๊ฒ ์์ง์ด๋ ๊ฑฑ์ ์ด๋ฆฐ ๋ชฉ์๋ฆฌ๋ก ๋งํ๋ค. "ํ๋ ์๊ธด ํ๋ฐ, ์ด ๊ต์ฐจ๋ก๋ฅผ ์ง๋์ผ ํด. ๋์น ์ํฉ์์๋ ๋ถ๊ฐ๋ฅํ ๊ฑฐ๋ ๋ค๋ฆ ์์ด!" '๋ต, ๊ฒฝ๋ก๊ฐ ๋ณ๊ฒฝ๋์์ต๋๋ค. ์์ ์๊ฐ 5๋ถ ๋จ์ถ๋ฉ๋๋ค...' ์๋จ์ ๋ด๋น๊ฒ์ด์ ์์คํ ์ ์๋์ํจ ํ, ๋ชธ์ ๋๋ฐ๋ก ์ธ์ฐ๊ณ ํธ๋๋ธ๋ ์ดํฌ๋ฅผ ์กฐ์ ํ๋ฉฐ ์์ ์ ๋ฐ์๋ค. ์์ง์ ์ฐ๋ ์ฐฌ ์์์ ๊ทธ ๋ฌด๋ฆฌ์ ํ์ ์ด ๋ฐ๋์๋ค. ์ฐ๋๋จธ๋ฆฌ๋ ๋ค์ ์๋ ๋ถ๊ฐํฐ๋ก๋ถํฐ ์ ํธ๋ฅผ ๋ฐ์ ๋ฏ ํต์ ์๋๋ฅผ ์ค๋จํ๊ณ ๋ถํ๋ค์ ์๋จ ์ชฝ์ผ๋ก ๋ณด๋๋ค. ๋ชธ์ธ์๊น์ง ๊ฐ์คํ ๋ฏ ๋น์ฅํด ๋ณด์๋ค. ์๋จ์ ์ผ๊ตด์ ๋ฏธ์๊ฐ ๋ฒ์ก๋ค. ๋จ์๋ค์ด ํ ํ ๋ผ ๊ฑฐ๋ฆฌ๊น์ง ๋ค๊ฐ์จ ์๊ฐ, ๊ทธ๋ ๋ ํธ๋ค์ ํ ๋๋ฆฌ๋ฉฐ ์์ ์ ๋ฐ์๋ค. ๊ทธ๋ ๋ ๊ตฌ๊ฒฝ๊พผ๋ค์ ๋๋ ์์ ์ ๋ฐ์ผ๋ฉฐ ์ฐจ๋ ์ฌ์ด๋ก ๊ธ๊ฒฉํ๊ฒ ๋ฌ๋ ค๋๊ฐ๋ค. "๋ด๊ฐ ์ง๋๊ฐ ์ ์๋ ๊ธธ์ ์์ง!" ์ ํ ๋ฐ๋ํธ์์ ์ํฌ์ฐ์ด ๊ธฐ๋ปํ๋ฉฐ ์๋ฆฌ์ณค์ง๋ง, ๊ทธ๋ ์ ํฅ๋ถ์ ๊ณง ๊ฑฑ์ ์ผ๋ก ๋ฐ๋์๋ค. "๋ฐฐ๋ํค์ ๋ฐ๋ฆฌ์ผ์ด๋๋ฅผ ๋ซ์์ผ๋, ์ด์ ์ ์ชฝ๊ณผ๋ ์์๊ฐ ๋ ๊ฑด๊ฐ?" ์๋จ์ด ๋น์์๋ค. "์ ์ชฝ์์ ๋จผ์ ์๋น ๊ฑธ์์์. ๊ทธ๋ฆฌ๊ณ ์ ํ๋ ๋ ์๊ธด๋ค๊ณ ๋ฌ๋ผ์ง ๊ฒ ๋ญ์ผ?" ๊ทธ๋ ๊ฐ ๋ ๋ ๋ค์๋ ์๋์ฐจ ๋ฐํด๊ฐ ๊ธ๊ฒฉํ๊ฒ ํด์ ํ๋ ๋ ์นด๋ก์ด ์๋ฆฌ๊ฐ ํ์ฐธ ๋์ ๊ณต์ค์ ๋งด๋์๋ค. ์ฌ๋ฌด์ค๋ก ๋์์จ ๋ฐ์ฒ์ฃผ๋ ๊ฒ์ ์ง๋ฆฌ ์ผ๊ตด๋ก ๋ฐฐ๋ํค์ ๋ง์ฃผํ๋ค. "์ฃ์กํฉ๋๋ค, ๋ํ๋. ํธ๋ผ์ด์ธํธ๋ฅผ ๋ง๋ ๋ฐ ์คํจํ์ต๋๋ค. ์ด๋ค ๋ฒ์ด๋ ๋ฌ๊ฒ ๋ฐ๊ฒ ์ต๋๋ค." ๋ฐฐ๋ํค์ ๋ฐ๋ฅ๋ถํฐ ์ฒ์ฅ๊น์ง ๋ฟ๋ ์ปค๋ค๋ ์ฐฝ๋ฌธ ์์ ์์ A์๋ฅผ ๋ด๋ ค๋ค๋ดค๋ค. ๊ทธ์ ์์ ์ ํ ๊ฑด๋ฌผ์ ๊ณ ์ ๋์ด ์์๋ค. "๊ทธ ์ฝ๋์ธ๊ทธ, ๊ณ ์จ ๊ฐ๋ฌธ๊ณผ ๊ด๋ จ์ด ์๋?" ์จ์งํ์ ์ฌ๋นจ๋ฆฌ ํ๋ธ๋ฆฟ์ ์กฐ์ํ๋ฉฐ ๋๋ตํ๋ค. "๊ธฐ๋ก์ ๋ฐ๋ฅด๋ฉด ์ด ์ฐจ๋ 3๋ ์ ์ ๊ตฌ์ ํ ๊ฒ์ผ๋ก, ์ฃผ๋ก ๊ณ ์์ฐ ์จ์ ๊ทธ์ ์๋ฒ์ง๊ฐ ์ฌ์ฉํ์ต๋๋ค." ์จ์งํ์ ์ ์ ๋ฉ์นซํ๋๋ ๊ณ์ํด์ ๋งํ๋ค. "์ค๋ ๊ทธ ์ฐจ๋ฅผ ๋ชฌ ๊ฑด ๊ณ ์จ์ฐ ์จ์ ์๋ด, ์๋จ์ด๋ผ๋ ์ฌ๋์ธ๋ฐ... ๊ทธ๋ถ์ด ํธ๋ผ์ด์ธํธ์ผ ๋ฆฌ๋ ์์ด์." ๋ฐ์ฒ์ฃผ๊ฐ ์ฝ์ธ๊ฒ ์จ์งํ์ ๋ง์ ๊ฐ๋ก๋ง์๋ค. "๋ง๋ ์ ๋ผ์! ์จ ๋น์๋๋ ๊ทธ ์ฌ์๊ฐ ๋ฐ๋ฆฌ์ผ์ด๋๋ฅผ ์ด๋ป๊ฒ ๋ถ์๋์ง ๋ณด์ จ์์์. ๊ทธ ์ฌ์๊ฐ ํธ๋ผ์ด์ธํธ๊ฐ ์๋๋ผ๋ฉด, ์ด๋ป๊ฒ ๊ทธ๋ฐ ๊ฑธ ํด๋ผ ์ ์๊ฒ ์ต๋๊น? ํธ๋ผ์ด์ธํธ๊ฐ ํ๋ฆผ์์ด์!" ๊ณ์ํด์ ๋ฐ์ดํฐ๋ฅผ ์ดํผ๋ ์จ์งํ์ ํ์ ์ด ๊ตณ์ด์ก๋ค. "๊ธฐ๋ก์ ๋ฐ๋ฅด๋ฉด, ์๋จ ์จ๋ ์ํ ์ ์์ฌ ์ฌ์ฅ์ ๋ธ๋ก, ํ๋ฒํ ์ง์ ์ถ์ ์ ๋๋ค. ์ด๋จธ๋๋ ์ผ์ฐ ๋์๊ฐ์ จ๊ณ , ์๋ฒ์ง์ ์ฌํผ ํ ์ด๋ณต ์ค๋น ์ ์ด๋ณต ์ธ๋๊ฐ ์๊ธฐ๋ ๋ฐ๋์ ๊ณ ๋ฑํ๊ต๋ฅผ ๊ทธ๋ง๋๊ณ ๋ค๋ฅธ ๋์๋ก ์ด์ฌํด์ผ ํ์ต๋๋ค. ๊ทธ๋ฐ ์ฌ๋์ด ์ด๋ป๊ฒ ๋ ธ๋ฆฐ์ฐ ๊ฒฝ์ฃผ์์ ์ฐ์น๊น์ง ๊ฑฐ๋จธ์ฅ ๋ ์ด์๊ฐ ๋ ์ ์์์๊น์?" ๋ง๋ฌธ์ด ๋งํ ๋ฐ์ฒ์ฃผ๋ ๋ณธ๋ฅ์ ์ผ๋ก ๋ฐฐ๋ํค์๊ฒ๋ก ์์ ์ ๋๋ ธ๋ค. ํค๊ฐ ํค์น ํ ๋ฐฐ๋ํค์ ์กด์ฌ ์์ฒด๋ง์ผ๋ก๋ ์๋์ ์ธ ์กด์ฌ๊ฐ์ ๋๋ฌ๋ด๊ณ ์์๋ค. ๋ฐฐ๋ํค์ ๋ฌด์ฌํ ํํ ํ๋ฆฝ ์๊ณ๋ฅผ ๋ง์ง์๊ฑฐ๋ฆฌ๋ฉฐ ๋ฌ๊ธ์์ด ์์์ ํฐ๋จ๋ ธ๋ค. ๊ทธ์ ๊ฐ์์ค๋ฐ ์์์ ๊ณ์ ์๋ ๋ ์ฌ๋์ ๋ชธ์ด ์ค์นํด๋ฌ๋ค. "๋ค์ ์ฃผ์ ์์ ํํฐ์ ๊ณ ์จ ๊ฐ๋ฌธ์ ์ด๋ํด." ์ฝ๋์ธ๊ทธ๋ ์ฑ์ฌ ๋๊ทน์ฅ ๋ฌธ ๋ฐ์์ ๋ผ์ต ์๋ฆฌ๋ฅผ ๋ด๋ฉฐ ๋ฉ์ท๋ค. ์ธ๋ จ๋๊ณ ์น์ํ ์ท์ ์ ๊ณ ์ฝ๋์ธ๊ทธ์์ ๋ด๋ ค ๋จผ์ง๊ฐ ์์ฑํ ๊ธธ์ ๊ฑธ์ด์ค๋ ์๋จ์ ๋ชจ์ต์ ๋ ์ด์ ๊ณ ์์ฐ๊ฐ ์๊ณ ์๋ ๋ณด์์ ์ธ ์ฃผ๋ถ๊ฐ ์๋์๋ค. ๊ณ ์์ฐ๊ฐ ์ง์ฆ์ ๋ด๋ฉฐ ์ด๋์์ง ํ์ ์ผ๋ก ์๋ฆฌ์ณค๋ค. "์๋จ..." ์๋จ์ ์ฅ๋๊ธฐ ๊ฐ๋ํ๋ฉด์๋ ์ํ์ ์ธ ๋ฏธ์๋ฅผ ์ง๋๋ ์๋์ฐจ ์ด์ ๋ฅผ ๊ฐ๋ณ๊ฒ ํ๋ค๋ฉฐ ๊ณ ์์ฐ๋ฅผ ํฅํด ๋ค๊ฐ๊ฐ๋ค. "์๋ํ ๊ณ ๋ํ๋์ ๋ด์ฐ๋ ์ฝ์ํธ ๋ณด๋ฌ ๊ฐ ์๊ฐ์ ์์ผ๋ฉด์ ์ดํผํ ์๊ฐ์ ์์ผ์ ๊ฐ ๋ด์. ๊ทธ๋์ ๋ด๊ฐ ์ง์ ์ดํผ ์๋ฅ๋ฅผ ๋ค๊ณ ์์ฃ ." ๋ณํจ์์ด ํ์ง์ฐ๋ฅผ ๊ฐ์ธ๊ณ ๋๋ ๊ณ ์์ฐ์ ๋ชจ์ต์ ์๋จ์ ์กฐ๊ธ ์์ธํด์ก๋ค. ์๋จ์ด ์ ์ธํ๋ค. "๊ณ ์์ฐ, ๊ทธ๋ ๊ฒ ์ฌ๋ํ๋ ์ฌ๋ ๊ณ์ ์๊ณ ์ถ์ผ๋ฉด, ์ดํผ ์๋ฅ์ ์๋ช ํ๊ณ ์ฌ์ฐ์ ๋๊ฐ์ด ๋๋๋๋ก ํ์. ํ์ง๋ง ๋จ ํ ํผ์ด๋ผ๋ ์ ๊ฒ ์ฃผ๋ฉด ์ดํผ์ ๋์ํ์ง ์์ ๊ฑฐ์ผ. ๊ทธ๋ ๊ฒ ๋๋ฉด ๋น์ ๊ณผ ๋น์ ์ ์ฐ์ธ์ ํ์์ ๋ถ๋ฅ์ด๋ผ๋ ๋ง์ ๋ค์ผ๋ฉฐ ์ด ์ ๋ฐ์ ์๊ฒ ๋๊ฒ ์ง." ์ 3ํ ๋ด ๋น์ฐธํ ๊ฒฐํผ ์ํ๊ณผ ํจ๊ป ์นจ๋ชฐํ์ด ๊ณ ์์ฐ๋ ํ์์ ์์ข ์ ์ด๊ณ ๋ค๋ฃจ๊ธฐ ์ฌ์ด ์๋ด๊ฐ ์ด๋ ๊ฒ ๋ณํ ์ค์ ์ ํ ์์ํ์ง ๋ชปํ๋ค. "๊ฟ ๊นจ!" ๊ณ ์์ฐ๊ฐ ์ง์ฆ์ ๋ด๋ฉฐ ์ด๋์์ง ํ์ ์ผ๋ก ์๋ฆฌ์ณค๋ค. "๊ทธ๋งํด, ์๋จ. ๋ด ๊ด์ฌ์ ๋๊ธฐ ์ํด์ ์ด๋ฐ ์ง์ ํ๋ ๊ฑฐ๋ผ๋ฉด ์ด์ ๊ทธ๋ง ๋ฌ." ๊ทธ๊ฐ ๊ฒฝ๊ณ ํ๋ ๋ฏํ ๋๋น์ผ๋ก ๋งํ๋ค. "๊ทธ๋ด์๋ก ๋ ์ ์ด ๋จ์ด์ง ๋ฟ์ด๋ผ๊ณ ." ์๋จ์ ์ฒ์์ผ๋ก ๊ณ ์์ฐ๊ฐ ์์ ์ ๋ํด ์ ์๋ ๋ฏ์ด ์ ๋ฉ๋๋ก ๋งํ์ ํฅ๋ฏธ๋ฅผ ๋๊ผ๋ค. "๋ ์๊ธฐํ๋๋ฐ ๊ฐ์ ์๊ธฐ๋ ์ ๊บผ๋ด? ์ญ๊ฒน์ง๋ ์์?" ์๋จ์ ๋ ์ฌ๋์ ํฅํด ์ฑ๊ธ ์์ผ๋ฉฐ ๊ณ ์์ฐ๋ฅผ ํฅํด ๋ ์นด๋กญ๊ฒ ๋งํ๋ค. "ํ์ง์ฐ ์จ๊ฐ ๊ทธ๋ ๊ฒ ์ข์์ผ๋ฉด ๋ฐ๋ผ์ ํด์ธ๋ก ๊ฐ๋ฒ๋ฆฌ์ง ๊ทธ๋ฌ์ด? ์ ๋์ ๊ฒฐํผํ ๊ฑฐ์ผ? ๊ทธ ์ ๋๋ก ์ฌ๋์ด ๊น์ง๋ ์์๋ ๋ณด์ง?" ๊ทธ๋ ์ ๋ง์ ์ ๊ณก์ ์ฐ๋ฆฐ ๊ณ ์์ฐ๊ฐ ์ฌ๋นจ๋ฆฌ ๋๋ตํ๋ค. "ํ ์๋ฒ์ง๊ฐ ๊ณ ์จ ๊ทธ๋ฃน์ ์ด์ฉํด ๋๋ฅผ ํ๋ฐํ๋ ๊ฑฐ ์์์. ๊ทธ๋ ์ง ์๊ณ ์์ผ ๋ด๊ฐ ์ง์ฐ๊ฐ ๋ ๋๋ ๊ฑธ ๊ฐ๋งํ ์์์ ์ง์ผ๋ดค์ ๋ฆฌ๊ฐ..." "๊ทธ๋ฌ๋๊น, ๋ ๋๋ฌธ์ด๋ผ๋ ๊ฑฐ์์?" ์๋จ์ด ๋ ์นด๋กญ๊ฒ ๋ฐ๋ฐํ๋ค. "๊ทธ๋ผ ๊ทธ ์ง์ ํ ์ฌ๋์ด๋ผ๋ ๊ฒ๋ ๊ณ ์จ ๊ฐ๋ฌธ์ ์ฌ์ฐ ์์ ์์์๋ ์๋ฌด๊ฒ๋ ์๋ ๊ฑฐ๋ค?" ์๋จ์ด ์กฐ๋กฑํ๋ฏ์ด ์์๋ค. "๊ณ ์์ฐ ์จ, ์ฌ๋ ๋ฐ์ ๋ชจ๋ฅด๋ ์น์ ๋จ์ธ ์ฒ ์ข ๊ทธ๋งํด!" ๋ชจ๋์ ์์์ ์์ ์ ์์ ์ด ๋ฐํ์ง์, ๊ณ ์์ฐ์ ์ผ๊ตด์ด ๋ฒ๊ฒ๊ฒ ๋ฌ์์ฌ๋๋ค. ๊ทธ๋ ํ์ง์ฐ๊ฐ ๋์ ์ฌ๋ ค ๊น์ ๋ชฉ์๋ฆฌ๋ก ์ฌ๋นจ๋ฆฌ ๊ทธ๋ฅผ ๋ณํธํ๊ธฐ ์์ํ๋ค. "์๋จ ์จ, ์์ฐ ์จ์ ๋ด ์ฌ์ด๋ฅผ ๊ทธ๋ ๊ฒ ํ์ด๋์ผ๊ฒ ์ด์? ์์ฐ ์จ๋ ์์ฐ ์จ ๋๋ฆ๋๋ก์ ์ด์ ๊ฐ ์์์ ๊ฑฐ์์." ๊ทธ๋ฌ๋ฉด์ ํ์ง์ฐ๋ ์๋ฏธ์ฌ์ฅํ๋ฉด์๋ ๋๋ฐ์ ์ธ ๋๋น์ผ๋ก ์๋จ์ ๋ง์ฃผ๋ดค๋ค. "์๋จ ์จ, ์ฌ์ฐ ๋ถํ ์์ ๋ ๋ง์ ์ด๋์ ๋ณด๊ธฐ ์ํด ๋์ ์์ฐ ์จ์ ๊ด๊ณ๋ฅผ ์ด๊ฐ์งํ๋ ค๋ ๊ฑฐ ๋ค ์์์. ์ ์ด์ ์๋จ ์จ๋ ๋์ ๋ชฉ์ ์ผ๋ก ๊ฒฐํผํ ๊ฑฐ์์์?" ๊ทธ๋ ์ ๋ง์ ์๋จ์ ๋ํ ๊ณ ์์ฐ์ ํ์ค๊ฐ์ ๋์ฑ ์ปค์ก๋ค. "๊ทธ๋ด ์ค ์์์ด! ๋น์ ์ ์ธ์ ๋ ์์ฌ์ด ๋ง์์ง. ์ด๋ฏธ 2์ต ์ก๊ธํ๊ณ , ๊ทธ ์์ฐ๋๋ ๊ณง ๋น์ ๋ช ์๊ฐ ๋ ๊ฑฐ์ผ. ๊ณ ์จ ๊ฐ๋ฌธ์๊ฒ ๊ทธ๋ฐ ๊ฒ์ฏค์ ์ฝ๊ฒ ํด๋ผ ์ ์๋ ์ผ์ด์ผ. ๋น์ ๋ค ๊ฐ์กฑ์ฒ๋ผ ํ์ฐฎ์ ์ง์์ด ์๋๋๊น..." "๊ทธ ์ ๋๋ก๋ ์ ๋์ง!" ์๋จ์ ๊ณ ์์ฐ๋ฅผ ๋ฐ๋ผ๋ณด๋ฉฐ ๋ ์นด๋กญ๊ฒ ๋ฐ๋ฐํ๋ค. "๋น์ ์ ์ต๋ง์ฅ์์ผ. ์ฐ๋ฆฌ์ ๊ณต๋ ์ฌ์ฐ๊ณผ ์ฐจ, ๋ถ๋์ฐ์ ๋ชจ๋ ๊ณ ๋ คํ๋ฉด ์ต์ํ ์ฒ ์ต์ ์ค์ผ์ง. ์ง๊ธ ๋น์ ๋๋๊ฐ ์ค ์ค๊ณ ์์ฐ๋๋ก ํ ์น๋ ค๊ณ ํ๋ ๊ฑฐ์ผ?" ์๋จ์ ๋ ์นด๋ก์ด ์์ ์ด ํ์ง์ฐ์๊ฒ๋ก ํฅํ์, ๊ทธ๋ ๋ ๋ณธ๋ฅ์ ์ผ๋ก ๋ชธ์ ์์ธ ๋ ธ๋ค. "๋ด๊ฐ ์๋ชป ๋ณธ ๊ฒ ์๋๋ผ๋ฉด, ๋น์ ์ ์ธ์ด ํ๊ณ ์๋ ๋ชฉ๊ฑธ์ด ๊ฐ๊ฒฉ์ด ์ต์ 2์ต์ด ๋์ง ์๋?" ๊ณ ์์ฐ๋ ํ์ง์ฐ์ ์์ ๋ง์์๋ฉฐ ๋งํ๋ค. "์๋จ, ๋ถ๋๋ฌ์ด ์ค๋ ๋ชฐ๋ผ? ์ง์ฐ์ ๋ชฉ๊ฑธ์ด๋ ๋ด๊ฐ ์ ๋ฌผํ ๊ฑฐ์ผ. ๋๋ฐ์ ๋ชจ๋ฅด๋ ๋น์ ๊ณผ๋ ๋ฌ๋ฆฌ ์์ํ๊ณ ์ฐฉํ ์ฌ์๋ผ๊ณ !" ์๋จ์ ๊ณ ๊ฐ๋ฅผ ๋๋์ด๋ฉฐ ๋ฐ๋ฐํ๋ค. "๊ทธ๋ฌ๋๊น, ๋ ์ฃผ๊ธฐ ์ซ๋ค ์ด๊ฑฐ์ง, ์ง๊ธ?" ๊ทธ ๋ง๊ณผ ํจ๊ป ๊ทธ๋ ๋ ๋์์์ ์ฝ๋์ธ๊ทธ์ ๋ค์ ์ฌ๋ผํ๋ค. ๋ชจ๋๊ฐ ๊ทธ๋ ์ ํ๋์ ์์ํดํ๋ฉฐ ์ง์ผ๋ณด๊ณ ์์ ๋, ์คํฌ์ธ ์นด ์์ง์ ๊ต์์ด ๊ณต๊ธฐ๋ฅผ ๊ฐ๋ฅด๋ฉฐ ์ธ๋ คํผ์ก๋ค. ๋งค๋ํ ๊ฒ์์ ์ํผ์นด๊ฐ ๋ ์ ํ์ด์ฒ๋ผ ์์ผ๋ก ๋ฌ๋ ค๋๊ฐ๋ฉฐ, ํ ๋น ๊ณ๋จ์ ๋ฐ๋ผ ๋ด๋ ค๊ฐ ๋ฌด๋๋ก ๊ณง์ฅ ๋์งํ๋ค. "์พ !" ๋ฐฉ์ฌํ๊ณ ์๋ ๊ณ ์์ฐ์ ํ์ง์ฐ๋ ํฉ๋ ๋ฆฌ๋ ๋๋ฌด ํํธ์ ๋ฎ์ด ์ฐ๊ณ ๋ง์๋ค. ํ์ง์ฐ๋ ๋ ์นด๋ก์ด ๋น๋ช ์ ์ง๋ ๊ณ , ๊ณ ์์ฐ๋ ๋ถ๋ ธ๊ฐ ์น๋ฐ์ด ์ฌ๋ผ ์๋ฆฌ์ณค๋ค. "์๋จ, ํ ๋ฒ๋ง ๋ ์ด๋ฌ๋ฉด ๊ฐ๋งํ ๋์ง ์์..." ํ์ง๋ง ์๋จ์ ๊ทธ์ ์ถฉ๊ณ ๋ฅผ ์์ ํ ๋ฌด์ํ๋ค. ๊ทธ๋ ๋ ์ฐจ๋ฅผ ํ์งํ๋ฉฐ ๋ฌด๋์์ ์์ ๊ฑฐ๋ฆฌ๋ฅผ ๋๊ณ ๋ฉ์ถฐ ์ธ์ ๋ค. "๊ณ ์์ฐ ์จ, ๋ค์ ํ ๋ฒ ๋ฌผ์๊ฒ. ์ฌ์ฐ ๋ถํ ํ ๊ฑฐ์ผ, ๋ง ๊ฑฐ์ผ?" ๊ทธ๋ ๊ฐ ๊ธด์ฅ์ด ํฝํฝํ ๋ถ์๊ธฐ๋ฅผ ๋ซ๊ณ ์๋ฆฌ์ณค๋ค. ์์ง์ ๊ต์์ ๊ณ ์์ฐ์ ์ผ๊ตด์ด ์ํ์๊ฒ ์ง๋ ธ๋ค. ์ํ์ ์ธ ์ฐจ์ ์ด๋ง์ด๋งํ ์๋จ์ ์กด์ฌ๊ฐ์ ์ง๋๋ฆฐ ๊ทธ๋ ๋ฏธ์ฒ ํ์ถํ ์๊ฐ์กฐ์ฐจ ๋ชปํ๊ณ ์ ์๋ฆฌ์ ์ผ์ด๋ถ์๋ค. ๊ทธ๋ ๊ฒฝ๋น๋ฅผ ๋ถ๋ฅด๋ ค๊ณ ํ์ง๋ง, ๊ฒฝ๋น์๊ณผ ์ฌ๋๋ค์ ๋ชจ๋ ๊ฒ์ ์ง๋ ค ๋๋ง๊ฐ๊ณ ์์๋ค. ์ด ๋์น ์ํฉ์์๋ ์ธ ์ฌ๋๋ง์ด ๋จ์ ์์๋ค. ์๋จ, ์์ ํ ๋ฏธ์ณ๋ฒ๋ ธ๋ค! ์๋จ์ ๊ฒ์ ์ง๋ฆฐ ๊ณ ์์ฐ์ ํ์ง์ฐ์ ์ผ๊ตด์ ๋ณด๊ณ ๋ง์กฑ์ค๋ฌ์ด ๋ฏธ์๋ฅผ ์ง์๋ค. ๋ฌด์์ด ์์ง ์๋ฆฌ๊ฐ ๋์ฑ ์ปค์ง๋๋ ๊ณ ์์ฐ์ ๊ณตํฌ์ ์ง๋ฆฐ ์์ ์๋์ ์๋์ฐจ๋ ๋ค์ ํ ๋ฒ ๋ฌด๋๋ฅผ ํฅํด ๋์งํ๋ค! "์์์ด! ๋น์ ๋ง๋๋ก ์ฌ์ฐ ๋ถํ ํ๋ฉด ๋์์!" ์ฐจ๋ ๋ฌด๋์์ ๋ช ์ผํฐ๋ฏธํฐ ๋จ์ด์ง ๊ณณ์์ ๊ฒจ์ฐ ๋ฉ์ท๋ค. ์ ๋ฒํผ๊ฐ ์์ฌ์์ฌํ๊ฒ ๋ฌด๋๋ฅผ ์ค์น ๋ปํ๋ค. ์๋จ์ ์ด์ ๋๋๋๋ํด์ง ์ฐจ ๋ฌธ์ ๋ฐ๋ก ๋ฐ์ฐจ๊ณ ์นจ์ฐฉํ๊ฒ ์ฐจ์์ ๋ด๋ ค ํ์งฑ์ ๋ ์ฑ ๋จ๊ณ ์๋ ๋ ์ฌ๋์ ๋ง์ฃผ๋ณด์๋ค. ๊ณ ์์ฐ๋ ์ฌํธํก์ ํ๋ฉฐ ํ์ ์ฌ์ ๋์ฐพ์ผ๋ ค๊ณ ์ ์ผ๋ค. "ํ์ง๋ง ๋ค์ ์ฃผ๊น์ง ๊ธฐ๋ค๋ ค์ผ ํด. ์ด๋ฒ ์ฃผ๋ง์ ํ ์๋ฒ์ง ์์ ์ด์ผ. ์์ง์ ์ดํผ ์์์ ์ ํ ์ ์์ด." ๊ณ ํ๋ ํ ์๋ฒ์ง๋ ์ธ์ ๋ ์๋จ์๊ฒ ์น์ ํ๊ณ , ๊ทธ๋ ์ญ์ ๊ทธ์ ์์ผ์ ๋ง์น ์๊ฐ์ ์์๋ค. ์๋จ์ ์ด๊นจ๋ฅผ ์ผ์ฑํ๋ฉฐ ๋งํ๋ค. "์ค๋ ์ฝ์์ ๊ผญ ์ง์ผ. ์ด๋ ๊ฒ ๋ง์ ๋์ด ์ฐ๋ฆฌ๋ฅผ ์ฃผ๋ชฉํ๋ ๊ฐ์ด๋ฐ ๊ณ ์จ ๊ฐ๋ฌธ์ ํ๊ณ์๊ฐ ๊ฐํ ์๊ธฐ๊ฐ ๋ด๋ฑ์ ๋ง์ ๋ฒ๋ณตํ์ง๋ ์๊ฒ ์ง?" ๊ทธ๋ ์ ๋ง์ ๋ฐ๋ฐํ ์ ์์๋ ๊ณ ์์ฐ๋ ์ข์ ํด์ ์ด๋ฅผ ์ ๋ฌผ์๋ค. ์๋จ์ ๋ช ๊ฑธ์ ์์ผ๋ก ๋์๊ฐ, ํ์ง์ฐ๋ฅผ ์ง๋์น๊ณ ๊ณ ์์ฐ์๊ฒ ์์ ์ ๊ณ ์ ํ๋ฉฐ ๊ฐ๋ณ๊ฒ ํ๋ฅผ ์ฐผ๋ค. "์ฌ์ค, ์ ์ฐจ๋ ์ฒ์์ ๋ฌด๋์ ๋ถ๋ชํ์ ๋ ๋ฒ์จ ๋ง๊ฐ์ก์ด. ๊ทธ๋ฅ ๋น์ ์ ๋๋ผ๊ฒ ํ๋ ค๊ณ ์์ง์ ์ผ๋์์ ๋ฟ์ด์ผ. ์ด์ฐจํผ ๋ถ๋ชํ์ง๋ ๋ชปํ์ ๊ฑฐ์ผ." ๊ณ ์์ฐ๋ ์ถฉ๊ฒฉ์ ๋์ด ํ๋ฅ๊ทธ๋์ก๋ค. ์๋จ์ ๋์น์ ์น์ผ ์ฌ๋ฆฌ๊ณ ๋น๊ผฌ๋ฏ์ด ๋งํ๋ค. "๋น์ ๊ฐ์ ์ฌ๋์๊ฒ ๊ทธ๋ ๊ฒ ์ข์ ์ฐจ๋ฅผ ํ๋นํ๋ค๋." ๋ง์ด ๋๋ ๊ทธ๋ ๋ ๋๊ธธ ํ ๋ฒ ์ฃผ์ง ์๊ณ ๋ฐ์ผ๋ก ๋๊ฐ๋ค. ๊ณ ์์ฐ๋ ์ ์ ์ ๋ชป ์ฐจ๋ฆฌ๊ณ ๊ทธ ์๋ฆฌ์ ์ ์ ๋ฉํ๋ ์ ์์๋ค. ์์๊ฐ์ ๋๋ฌด ๋ง์ ์ผ์ด ๋ฒ์ด์ ธ ๋ฐ์๋ค์ด๋ ๋ฐ ์๊ฐ์ด ํ์ํ๋ค. ๊ทธ๋ ์๋จ์ด ๋ ๋๋ ๊ฒ์ ๋ณด๊ณ ์์ผ 3๋ ๋์ ํ๋ฒํ๋ ์๋ด๊ฐ ์์ ๋ ๋ชจ๋ฅด๊ณ ์์๋ ์จ๊ฒจ์ง ๋งค๋ ฅ์ด ์์ ๊ฑฐ๋ผ๋ ์๊ฐ์ด ๋ค์๋ค. "๋ค ๋ ๋๋ฌธ์ด์์, ์์ฐ ์จ! ๋๋ฅผ ๋ณดํธํ๋ ค ํ์ง๋ง ์์์ด๋ ๊ทธ๋ฐ ํฐ๋ฌด๋์๋ ์๊ตฌ๋ฅผ ์ ๋ ๋ค์ด์ฃผ์ง ์์์ ํ ๋ฐ!" ํ์ง์ฐ๋ ๊ณ ์์ฐ์ ์ท๊น์ ๋ถ์ก๊ณ ๋จ๋ฆฌ๋ ๋ชฉ์๋ฆฌ๋ก ๋งํ๋ค. ๊ทธ๋ ๊ฐ ๋๋ฌผ์ ๋ณด์ด์ ๊ณ ์์ฐ๋ ๋ค์ ๊ทธ๋ ์๊ฒ๋ก ์์ ์ ๊ณ ์ ํ๋ค. ๊ณ ์์ฐ๋ ํ์ง์ฐ๋ฅผ ๋์ด์๊ณ ๋ถ๋๋ฝ๊ฒ ์๋กํ๊ธฐ ์์ํ๋ค. "๋ค ํ์ด ์๋์ผ. ๋ค ์์ฌ ๋ง์ ์ ์ฌ์ ํ์ด์ง. ๋ด๊ฐ ๋ฐฉ์ฌํ ํ์ ํ ์๊ธฐ๊ฐ ์ํ๋ ๊ฑธ ์๊ตฌํ๋ค๋." ํ์ง์ฐ๋ ๋๋ฌผ์ ๊ธ์ฝ์ด๋ฉฐ ๊ทธ๋ฅผ ์ฌ๋ ค๋ค๋ดค๋ค. "์ด์ ์ฐ๋ฆฌ ์ด๋กํด์? ๋น์ ์ด ์ค๋ซ๋์ ์ฌํ์ ๊ธฐ์ธ์ฌ ๊ณ ์จ ๊ทธ๋ฃน์ ๊ฒฝ์ํ ๋๋ถ์ ์ง๊ธ์ ์ฌ์ฐ์ ์์ ํ ์ ์๊ฒ ๋ ๊ฑด๋ฐ, ์ ์ฌ์๋ ์๋ฌด๊ฒ๋ ์ ํ์์์. ๊ทธ๋ฐ ์ฌ์๊ฐ ๋น์ ์ฌ์ฐ์ ์ ๋ฐ์ ๊ฐ์ ธ๊ฐ๋ค๋์?" ํ์ง์ฐ๋ ์ ์ ์ ๊นจ๋ฌผ์๋ค. "๋๋ ์ด๋ค ์ํฉ์๋ ๋น์ ์ ์ง์งํ ๊ฑฐ์์. ํ์ง๋ง ์ด๋ฐ ๋ถ๋นํ ์ผ์ด ๋ฒ์ด์ง๋ ๊ฑธ ๊ฐ๋ง ๋๊ณ ๋ณผ ์๋ ์์ด์. ์์ฐ ์จ ์ด๋จธ๋์ ๋๋์ด ์ด ์๊ธฐ๋ฅผ ๋ค์ผ๋ฉด ๋ง์ด ํ๋์ค ํ ๋ฐ์." ๊ณ ์์ฐ๋ ์ฝ์์์ ์ณค๋ค. "์ฐ์ ์๊ฒ ๋ค๊ณ ๋ ํ์ง๋ง, ์์ํ ๋ฐ๋ผ ์ค ์๋ ์์ง." ์์๋ผ์ฅ์ด ๋ ๊ทน์ฅ ๋ฐ์์ ์๋จ์ ์ํฌ์ฐ์๊ฒ ์ ํ๋ฅผ ๊ฑธ์๋ค. "์ฑ์ฌ ๋๊ทน์ฅ์ผ๋ก ๋ฐ๋ฆฌ๋ฌ ์ฌ ์ ์์ด?" ์ํฌ์ฐ์ด ์์ํดํ๋ฉฐ ๋ฌผ์๋ค. "์ฝ๋์ธ๊ทธ ๋๊ณ ๊ฐ์์?" ์์ ์ ์์ ๋ด๋ ค๋ค๋ณธ ์๋จ์ ์กฐ๊ธ ์ ์ ์ถฉ๋ ๋๋ฌธ์ ์๊ธด ์์ฒ๋ฅผ ๋ฐ๊ฒฌํ๋ค. ์์ฒ๋ ์์์ง๋ง ๋๊ฒ ํผ์ ธ ์์๊ณ , ์ด์ ๋ ํผ๊ฐ ๋๊ธฐ ์์ํ๋ค. "๋ด ๋น์ฐธํ ๊ฒฐํผ ์ํ๊ณผ ํจ๊ป ์นจ๋ชฐํ์ด." ์ 4ํ ๋ฐฐ์จ ๊ฐ๋ฌธ์ ์ฐํ ์ด๋์ฅ ๊ทธ ํ๋ง๋ ๋ง์ ๋ด๊ธด ๋ป์ ์ดํดํ ์ํฌ์ฐ์ ์๊ฐ ์จ์ด ๋ฉ๋ ๋ฏํ๋ค. ํธ๊ธฐ์ฌ์ด ์๊ธด ๊ทธ๋ ๋ ์ฌ๋นจ๋ฆฌ ์ฐจ ํค๋ฅผ ์ฑ๊ฒจ ์๋จ์ ๋ฐ๋ฆฌ๋ฌ ๋๊ฐ๋ค. ์ํฌ์ฐ์ด ๊ณ ์๋๋ก๋ฅผ ๋ฐ๋ผ ์ง์ฃผํ๋ ํ๋ผ๋ฆฌ ์์์ ๋ฏฟ์ ์ ์๋ค๋ ๋ฏ์ด ์ธ์ณค๋ค. "๊ทธ ๋์ฐํ ์ปคํ์ ๊ทธ๋ฅ ๋ค์ด๋ฐ์ง ๊ทธ๋ฌ์ด?" ์๋จ์ ์นจ์ฐฉํ๊ฒ ์์ฒ๋ฅผ ์น๋ฃํ๋ฉด์ ๋๋ตํ๋ค. "๋ฒ์ ์ด๊ธฐ์ง ์๋ ํธ์ด ์ข์ผ๋๊น." ์ํฌ์ฐ์ ๋ง๋ฌธ์ด ๋งํ๋ค. ๊ทธ๋ ๋ ์๋จ์ด ์ด ๋ํ๋ฅผ ๊บผ๋ฆฐ๋ค๋ ๊ฒ์ ๊นจ๋ซ๊ณ ์ฌ๋นจ๋ฆฌ ์ฃผ์ ๋ฅผ ๋ฐ๊ฟจ๋ค. "์, ๊ทธ ์์ ์ฐํ ๋ง์ด์ผ. ๋ ํน๋ณ ๊ฒ์คํธ๋ก ์ด๋๋ฐ์์์. ์ด๋ฒ์๋ ๊ฐ ๊ฑฐ์ง?" ์๋จ์ด ๋๋ตํ๊ธฐ๋ ์ ์ ์ํฌ์ฐ์ด ๋งํ๋ค. "์ด์ฐจํผ ์ดํผํ ๊ฑฐ์์. ์ด์ ๊ทธ ๋ฉ์ฒญํ ๊ณ ์์ฐํํ ๋ ์ด์ ์จ๊ธธ ํ์ ์์ง ์์?" ์ํฌ์ฐ์ด ์ ์ ์์ฃฝ ๋ด๋ฐ๋ฉฐ ๋ง๋ถ์๋ค. "์ด๋ฒ ์ฐํ ์ค๋นํ๋๋ผ ์ผ๋ง๋ ๊ณ ์์ ํ๋๋ฐ. ์๋น ํํ ์ข์ ์ธ์์ ์ฃผ๊ณ ์ถ๋จ ๋ง์ด์ผ. ๋๋ ๋ด ๊ฐ์ฅ ์นํ ์น๊ตฌ์์. ์ฌ ๊ฑฐ์ง, ์?" "์์์ด." ์๋จ์ด ์ฒด๋ ํ ๋ฏํ ๋ฏธ์๋ฅผ ์ง์ผ๋ฉฐ ๋งํ๋ค. "๋ค๊ฐ ์ํ๋ค๋ฉด์ผ!" ์ํฌ์ฐ์ ๊ธฐ๋ป์ ์ ๋๊ฒ ๊ฒฝ์ ์ ์ธ๋ ค๋๋ค. "์ข์, ๋ด์ผ ์ฌ์ฏ ์ ์ ๊ฐ์ด์ผ! ์ด๋์์ ์ ๊ตฌ๋ก ๋ณด๋ผ๊ฒ!" ๊ทธ๋ ๋ ์์นจ ์ผ์ ์ ์๋ฒฝํ๊ฒ ์ํํ๊ณ , ํ์ฌ ์์ 30๋ถ ์ ์ ์ฌ์ ๋กญ๊ฒ ์ฐํ์ฅ์ ๋์ฐฉํ๋ค. ์๋จ์ ์ง์ง ์ ์ฒด๋ฅผ ์จ๊ธด๋ฐ๋ค ์ด์ ์ ์ฐธ์ ๋ป์ ์ ๋๋ก ๋ฐํ์ง ์์ ํ์ ๊ณต์ ์ด๋์ฅ์ ๋ฐ์ง ๋ชปํ๋ค. ๊ทธ๋์ ๊ทธ๋ ๋ ์ ๊ตฌ ๊ทผ์ฒ์ ์๋ ์์ ํ๋น๋ฆฌ์จ์ ์์ ์ปคํผ๋ฅผ ๋ง์๋ฉฐ ์ด๋์์ด ๋์ฐฉํ๊ธฐ๋ฅผ ๊ธฐ๋ค๋ฆฌ๊ณ ์์๋ค. ๊ทธ๋ ๊ฐ ์ปคํผ๋ฅผ ๋ฐ์ฏค ๋ง์ จ์ ๋ ์ด๋์์ด ๋ฌธ์๋ฅผ ๋ณด๋ด์๋ค. "๋ฆ์ด์ ์ฃ์กํฉ๋๋ค, ์ฒ์ฌ ๋์์ด๋๋! 10๋ถ ์์ ๋์ฐฉํด์!" ์๋จ์ด ์์ผ๋ก ์์ผ๋ฉฐ ๋ต์ฅ์ ๋ณด๋ด๋ ค๊ณ ํ๋ ๊ทธ ๋, ๋น๊ผฌ๋ ๋ฏํ ๋ชฉ์๋ฆฌ๊ฐ ๋ค๋ ค์๋ค. "์ด๊ฒ ๋๊ตฌ์ผ, ์๋จ ์จ์์์? ์ฌ๊ธฐ์ ๋น์ ์ ๋ง๋ ์ค์ ๋ชฐ๋๋ค์. ์์ฐ ์จ์๊ฒ ์์๋ฃ๋ฅผ ๋ฌ๋ผ๊ณ ๊ตฌ๊ฑธํ๋ฉด์ ๋ฐฐ์จ ๊ฐ๋ฌธ์ ์ฐํ๊น์ง ๋ฐ์ ๋ค์ด๋ ค๊ณ ํ๋ค๋. ํ์ง๋ง ๋ง์ด์ฃ ..." ๊ทธ๋ ์ ๋ชฉ์๋ฆฌ๊ฐ ์ ์ ์ฐจ๊ฐ์์ก๋ค. "์ด ์ฐํ๋ ๋น์ ๊ฐ์ ์ฌ๋์ด ์ฐธ์ํ ์ ์๋ ์๋ฆฌ๊ฐ ์๋์์. ์ฃผ์ ๋ฅผ ์์์ผ์ง." ์ 5ํ ๊ธฐ์ด์ด ์์ ๋๊ฒ ๋ง๋๋ ๊ฑฐ์ผ ์๋จ์ ๋ฉ์นซํ๋๋ ์ฒ์ฒํ ๊ณ ๊ฐ๋ฅผ ๋ค์๋ค. ํ์ง์ฐ๊ฐ ๊ฐ์์ ์ผ๋ก ๊ฑฑ์ ํด์ฃผ๋ ์ฒ ๊ทธ๋ ๋ฅผ ๋ด๋ ค๋ค๋ณด๊ณ ์์๋ค. ์๋จ์ ๋ถ์ ์ ์ ์ ๋ง์ ์ฌ๋ฆฌ๋ฉฐ ๋ ์นด๋กญ๊ฒ ๋๋ตํ๋ค. "๋น์ ์ด ๋ฌด์จ ์๊ด์ด์ฃ ? ๋ด๊ฐ ๋ฐฐ์จ ๊ฐ๋ฌธ ์ฐํ์ ๊ฐ๋ ๋ง๋ , ๋น์ ์ด ์ ๋ฐ ์๋์์์." ํ์ง์ฐ๋ ์๋จ์ ์ง์ค์ ์ธ ๋๋ต์ ์กฐ๊ธ ๋๋ ๋ฏ ๋์ด ๋๊ทธ๋์ก๋ค. ์๋จ์ ๋ฑ๋๋ฌด ์์์ ๊ธฐ๋์ด ์์ ๋ฌด์ฌํ๊ฒ ํธ๋ํฐ์ ํกํก ๋๋๋ ธ๋ค. ๊ทธ๋ ๋ ๋งคํน์ ์ธ ๋์ผ๋ก ํ์ง์ฐ๋ฅผ ๋๋ฆฌ๋ฏ์ด ์ณ๋ค๋ดค๋ค. ํ์ง์ฐ๋ ํ์คํ ๊ตํํ๋ค. ๋๊ตฌ๋ผ๋ ๋ฐ๋ํ ํ๋์ ๋งํฌ๋ฅผ ์ ์ฐ๋ ๊ฒ ๊ฐ์๋ค. "์๋จ?" ๋ฐ๋ก ๊ทธ๋, ๊ณ ์์ฐ๊ฐ ๋ค๊ฐ์๋ค. ๊ทธ๋ ์๋จ์ ์ฌ๊ธฐ์ ๋ณผ ์ค์ ์์์กฐ์ฐจ ๋ชปํ๋ค. ๊ณ ์์ฐ๊ฐ ๋์ด์ ์ฐํธ๋ ธ๊ณ , ๊ทธ์ ์์๊ธด ์ผ๊ตด์ด ์ฆ์ ์ด๋์์ก๋ค. "๋๋ฅผ ๋ง์ ์ํค๋ ค๊ณ ์ฌ๊ธฐ๊น์ง ์จ ๊ฑฐ์ผ?" ๊ณ ์์ฐ๋ ํ๋ฅผ ๋ด๋ฉฐ ์๋ฆฌ์ณค๋ค. "๊ทธ๋ฅ ์ข ๊บผ์ ธ!" ํ์ง์ฐ๋ ๋ง์น ์์ ์ ์ง์๋ฅผ ์ ์ธํ๊ธฐ๋ผ๋ ํ๋ฏ ์ผ๋ถ๋ฌ ๊ณ ์์ฐ์ ํ์ ๋์ด์์ผ๋ฉฐ ๋์ ์ ์ธ ๋๋น์ผ๋ก ์๋จ์ ๋ฐ๋ผ๋ดค๋ค. ์๋จ์ ๊ทธ๋ฐ ๋ฌด๋กํ ํ๋์ ์ฐธ๊ณ ๋์ด๊ฐ ์ฌ๋์ด ์๋์๋ค. ๊ทธ๋ ๋ ์๊ฐ๋ฝ์ ๊ฝ ์์ผ์ฅ๋๋ ๊ณ ์์ฐ๋ฅผ ๊ฒฝ๋ฉธ์ค๋ฝ๋ค๋ ๋ฏ์ด ๋ฐ๋ผ๋ณด๋ฉฐ ์ฐจ๊ฐ์ด ๋ฏธ์๋ฅผ ์ง์๋ค. "๋ค์ ๋งํด๋ณผ๋? ์ง๊ธ ๊ฐํ ๋๊ตฌ ๋ณด๊ณ ๊บผ์ง๋ผ๋ ๊ฑฐ์ผ?" ์๋จ์ ๊ฒ์์ ์คํฌ ์ฌ๋ฆฝ ๋๋ ์ค๋ฅผ ์ ๊ณ ๊ฐ๋๋ค๋ ๋ค๋ฆฌ๋ฅผ ์ฐ์ํ๊ฒ ๊ผฌ๊ณ ์์ ์์๋ค. ๊ทธ๋ ์ ํ ์ก์ ๋ฐ ์๋ ํผ๋ถ์ ๋๊ธธ์ ๋๋ ์ด๋ชฉ๊ตฌ๋น๋ ์์ฒญ๋ ๋งค๋ ฅ์ ์ ์ฌํ๋ค. ๊ทธ๋ ์ ๋ชฉ์๋ฆฌ๋ ํ๋ค๋ฆผ ์์ด ์ฐจ๋ถํ์ง๋ง, ์จ๋ชธ์์ ์ฐจ๊ฐ์ด ๋ถ์๊ธฐ๋ฅผ ๋ด๋ฟ๊ณ ์์๋ค. ์๋ฐ๊ฐ์ด ๊ธ์ตํด์๋ค. ๊ณ ์์ฐ๋ ๊ฐ์์ค๋ฝ๊ฒ ๋ณํ ๋ถ์๊ธฐ์ ๋นํฉํ ์ฑ ์ ์ ์ผ์ด๋ถ์๋ค. ์ด ์ฌ์๊ฐ ์ ๋ง๋ก ์์ข ์ ์ด๊ธฐ๋ง ํ๋ ๊ทธ์ ์๋ด๋ผ๋! ์ง์ฆ์ด ๋ ํ์ง์ฐ๋ ๋์ด์ ์ฐํธ๋ ธ๋ค. ๋ง์ง๋ง์ผ๋ก ์๋จ์ ๋ง๋ฌ์ ๋, ํ์ง์ฐ๋ ๊ทธ๋ ๊ฐ ์ ์ ์ด ๋๊ฐ ์ค ์์๋ค. ํ์ง์ฐ๋ ์๋จ์ด ๋ ๋ค์ ๋๋์ ๋ถ๋ ค ์์ ์ด ๋ง์ ๋นํ๊ฒ ๋ ๊น ๋ด ๊ฑฑ์ ๋์ด ๋ชฉ์๋ฆฌ๋ฅผ ๋๊ทธ๋ฌ๋จ๋ฆฌ๊ณ ์์งํ ์ฒ ์ฐ๊ธฐํ๋ค. "์๋จ ์จ, ์ด๋ง ๊ฐ ๋ณด์ธ์. ์ด๋์ฅ์ ํ๋ ๋ฐ์ ์๊ณ , ์์ฐ ์จ๋ ๋๋ฅผ ๋ฐ๋ฆฌ๊ณ ๋ค์ด๊ฐ๊ธฐ๋ก ํ์ด์. ์๋จ ์จ๊ฐ ์ฌ๊ธฐ์์ ๋ฒํฐ๊ณ ์๋๋ค๊ณ ํด์ ๋ค์ด๊ฐ ์ ์๋ ์ฐํ๊ฐ ์๋์์. ๊ฒ๋ค๊ฐ ์๋จ ์จ๋ ๋ฌธ์ ๋ง ์ผ์ผํค์์์. ์ ์๊พธ ์ผ์ ์ด๋ ต๊ฒ ๋ง๋๋ ๊ฑฐ์์?" ์๋จ์ ํ์ง์ฐ๋ฅผ ์ฐจ๊ฐ์ด ์์ ์ผ๋ก ์ณ๋ค๋ดค๋ค. ๊ทธ๋ ๋ ์ด๋ฏธ ๊ณ ์์ฐ์ ์ง์ง ๋ชจ์ต์ ํคํ ์ ์๊ณ ์๋ค. ์ด์ ๊ณ ์์ฐ์๊ฒ๋, ์ด ๊ฒฐํผ ์ํ๋ ์ฒ ์ ํ ํฌ๋ง์ ์์๋ค. ์ด์ ํ์ง์ฐ์ ํ๋๋ ๋ง์ ๊ทธ๋ ์๊ฒ ์๋ฌด๋ฐ ์ํฅ์ ๋ฏธ์น์ง ๋ชปํ๋ค. "๋น์ ์ด ๋ฌด์จ ์๊ด์ด์์?" ์๋จ์ ํ์ง์ฐ์ ๋ง์ ์ ํ ๋์ํ์ง ์๊ณ ์ฐจ๋ถํ๊ฒ ๋๋ตํ๋ค. ๊ทธ๋ ๋ ๋ฌด์ฌ์ฝ ์์ ๋ค์ด ๋นจ๋๋ก ํฌ๋์ฃผ์ค๋ฅผ ์ชผ๋ฅด๋ฅต ๋ง์ จ๋ค. "์ ๊ฐ๊ฒ ๋ค, ์ด๊ฑฐ์ผ? ๊ธฐ์ด์ด ์์ ๋๊ฒ ๋ง๋ค๋ ค๋ ๊ฑฐ์ผ!" ๊ณ ์์ฐ๊ฐ ์๋ฆฌ์ณค๋ค. ์๋จ์ ๊ณ ์์ฐ์ ๋ถ๋ ธ ํญ๋ฐํ ๋ฐ์์ ์ ํ ๋์ํ์ง ์์๊ณ , ๊ทธ๋ฅผ ์๋ ์ฌ๋ ์ทจ๊ธํ๋ค. ๊ณ ์์ฐ์ ํ์ ์ด ๋์ฑ ์ด๋์์ก๋ค. ์๋จ์ด ๊ผผ์ง๋ ํ์ง ์์ ์ง์ฆ์ด ๋ ๊ทธ๋ ๊ทธ๋ ๋ฅผ ๋์ด๋ด๊ธฐ ์ํด ํ ๊ฑธ์ ๋ค๊ฐ์ฐ๋ค. ์๋จ์ ๋์ด์ ์ฐํธ๋ ธ๋ค. ๊ทธ๋ ๊ฐ ๋ชธ์ ์์ง์ด๋ ค๋ ๊ทธ๋, ๊ณ ์์ฐ์ ๋ค์์ ํ ๋จ์์ ์จ ๊ฐ์ ๋ชฉ์๋ฆฌ๊ฐ ๋ค๋ ค์๋ค. "๋น์ผ!" ์ด๋์ต์ ์ฃผ์ ํ์ง ์๊ณ ๊ณ ์์ฐ์๊ฒ ๋ฌ๋ ค๋ค์ด ๋ง์น ์ฅ๋๊ฐ์ ์ก๋ฏ์ด ๊ทธ์ ์ท๊น์ ์์ผ์ฅ๊ณ ์์ผ๋ก ๋ด๋์ง ๋ค, ์๋จ์ ์์ ๊ฐ๋ก๋ง๊ณ ์์ ๋ณดํธ ํ์ธ๋ฅผ ์ทจํ๋ค. ํค๊ฐ 195์ผํฐ๋ฏธํฐ ๋๋ ์ด๋์์ ๋ชธ์ง์ด ๊ฑด์ฅํ๊ณ , ๊ทธ์ ๊ทผ์ก์ง ํ์ ๋ฌด์ฒ ํ์ธ ๋ณด์๋ค. "์ด๊ฒ ๋ญ ํ๋ ์ง์ ๋๊น?" ์ด๋์์ ๊ณ ์์ฐ๋ฅผ ์ฌ๋์ด ๋๋น์ผ๋ก ์์๋ณด๋ฉฐ ์๊ฐ๋ฝ ๊ด์ ์ด ๋ฑ๋ฑ ์๋ฆฌ๊ฐ ๋ ์ ๋๋ก ์ฃผ๋จน์ ๊ฝ ์ฅ๊ณ ๋งํ๋ค. "์ ์ฐ๋ฆฌ ๋๋๋ฅผ ๊ดด๋กญํ๋ ๊ฑฐ์ผ? ์ฃฝ๊ณ ์ถ์ด ํ์ฅํ์ด?" "๋๋ ๋๊ตฌ์ผ?" ์กฐ๊ธ ์ , ์ฐ๋ ๊ธฐ์ฒ๋ผ ๋ดํฝ๊ฐ์ณ์ก๋ ๊ณ ์์ฐ๊ฐ ์๋ฆฌ์ณค๋ค. ๊ทธ๋ ๋นํ๊ฑฐ๋ฆฌ๋ฉฐ ์ผ์ด๋์ ์ฑ๋ ๋๋น์ผ๋ก ์ด๋์์ ๋ ธ๋ ค๋ดค๋ค. ...... ์์ผ๋ก๋ ์ด๋ค ์ ๊ฐ๊ฐ ํผ์ณ์ง๊น์? ์์ ํ ์คํ ๋ฆฌ๋ฅผ ์ฆ๊ธฐ๊ณ ์ถ์ผ์๋ค๋ฉด ์๋์ ๋ฒํผ์ ๋๋ฌ App์ ๋ค์ด๋ก๋ ๋ฐ์ผ์ธ์. (App์ ์คํ ์ ์๋์ผ๋ก ์ด๋ ์ค์ธ ์ด ์ํ์ผ๋ก ์คํตํฉ๋๋ค) &9& | LEARN_MORE | https://fbweb.moboreader.net/65152436-fb_contact-k | Happy reading | https://www.facebook.com/61566043183664/ | 485 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn more | 0 | fbweb.moboreader.net | IMAGE | https://fbweb.moboreader.net/65152436-fb_contact-kra210_2-1203-core1.html?adid={{ad.id}}&char=124213&accid=1085029615921206&jump=1&rawadid=120213598975960274 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-2.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/469272970_8679765908808254_8421059193528692183_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60_tt6&_nc_cat=109&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=vr7XtzBwaewQ7kNvgEjR10O&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-2.xx&_nc_gid=AciAWQcocHWzhbKyRIxwROP&oh=00_AYCUZOufR3IK-HXSkpLEW2d7gLkcDXLCNPd80n0xuEGdaA&oe=677A598F | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Happy reading | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,656,625 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2656622}' |
Yes | 2024-12-31 18:39 | active | 2174 | 0 |
|
๐Attention! Do not read in public๏ผ๐ | At Grace Mansion, Carissa Sinclair stared at the man before herโher husband she had waited for a whole year. Barrett Warren, still in his battle armor, wore an expression of both determination and guilt. "Carissa, the king has issued a royal edict for my marriage to Aurora." he said, his voice steady, " She will be joining our household. There's no question about it." Carissa's eyes clouded with confusion. "The queen dowager has praised General Yates as a model for all women in the kingdom. Would she be willing to be a concubine?" Barrett's eyes flashed with a hint of annoyance. "No, she wonโt be a concubine. Sheโll be my legal wife, equal to you." "But calling her equal doesn't change the fact that sheโs still just a concubine," Carissa said, a soft smile playing on her lips. Barrett frowned. "Why can't you face the reality? Aurora and I fell in love with each other on the battlefield, and we earned this marriage with our glorified victory. In fact, I donโt really need your approval on it." Fell in love? Huh, looks like he is determined in breaking the vow he made a year ago... Carissa's soft smile wiped off by a mocking one, she had once believed Barrettโs victory would earn him a higher rank, freeing her from the burden of supporting the Warren household with her dowry. Yet instead, in exchange for his victory, he only asked the king for another woman's hand, and now he even dared to silence her with his so-called 'glorified victory'... Carissa felt a lump in her throat. Despite her disgust and reluctance, she asked, "What about your parents? Do they agree?" "They do. It was a royal edict, and Aurora is amicable. Mother liked her a lot upon seeing her, even her health seems to be improving." "Improving?" Carissa felt a whirlwind of emotions. "When you went to war, your mother was already gravely ill. I brought in the best physician, managed the estateโs affairs by day, and stayed up nights caring for her. That's how her condition started to improve." "But seeing Aurora has made my mother feel even better," Barrett said earnestly. "I know this is unfair to you, but for the greater good, please be generous enough to welcome Aurora." Carissa lowered her eyes, as if blinking away the tears. But inspected closely, that's actually her sharpened gaze. "Invite General Yates over. I have a few things to ask her." "There's no need," Barrett refused instantly. "Carissa, sheโs different from any woman you know. As a general, sheโs above household squabbles and wouldnโt want to meet you." Carissa retorted, "What are women I know like? Or tell me, what kind of woman am I to you? Have you forgotten? I'm also the daughter of the Marquis's family. My father and my six brothers sacrificed on the Southern Frontier three years ago-" "Thatโs them." Barrett interrupted, "You're still a delicate woman suited only for home comforts, while Aurora has no respect for that. Besides, she never holds back her true thoughts. Trust me, you won't want to hear it from her. Also rest assured. Mother has promised me that Aurora will never threaten your control of the household. Carissa, she couldn't care less about those things." โOh, that's what you and mother think I fear? Losing the control of this household?โ Carissa couldn't help but laughing. Little did Barrett know his household had been reduced to a hollow shell - managing it was a hot potato no one else would bear. Over the past year, it was Carissa's dowry alone that kept the Warren familyโs life respectable, and this was her reward. โEnough,โ Barrett snapped, his patience running thin. โIโve done my duty by informing you. Your opinion wonโt change anything.โ As Carissa watched hum storm out, her bitterness deepened. โMy lady, my lord has really crossed the line!โ Lulu, Carissaโs maid, said, wiping her tears. โDonโt call him that!โ Carissa gave her a stern look. โWe never consummated the marriage. Heโs not your lord. Now go fetch my dowry list.โ โWhy the dowry list?โ Lulu asked, puzzled. Carissa tapped her on the forehead. โSilly girl, we need to reckon everything before we leave.โ Lulu gasped. โLeave? But where can we go? To the Northwatch Estate?โ Suddenly Lulu held her tongue, aware that she had touched the sensitive subject. She spared Carissa a guilty look, "I'll get the list now, my lady." Upon the mention of Northwatch Estate, the always restrained Carissa finally let her tears fall. When she was fifteen, her father, the Marquis of Northwatch, had sacrificed his life on the battlefield. Then, just six months ago, her entire family at the Northwatch Estate was brutally slaughtered โ assassins rumored to be spies from the enemy nation, Westhaven. She rushed back after getting the news, only to find the dismembered bodies of her mother and grandmother. Even her youngest nephew, two years old, didn't escape death, neither. Now, she was the lone survivor of the marquis' family, the idea of restoring her familyโs former glory seemed impossibleโat least to outsiders. After all, she was presented mostly as a delicate, fragile woman, while Aurora Taytes had just made herself the first female general in history. It's only natural that the Warren family was more than happy to agree to the marriage. Yet, unbeknownst to the world, Carissa's martial talent was never beneath her father and brothers. If given a chance on the battlefield, she would definitely outshine Aurora Taytes, perhaps a million times more... Just then, Lulu had brought over the dowry list, "My lady, this year alone, you've spent over six thousand silver coins supporting the household. However, the shops, houses, and estates remain untouched. All the bank savings, along with the property deeds and land titles your mother left, are locked up in the chest." "I see." Carisse's gaze lingered on the list with melancholy. Her mother had given her such a substantial dowry, fearing she might face hardship in her husband's home. Yet now here she was. The Warren family had disregarded all her effort, and Barrett had even broken his vow to take no concubine - the very promise that led her mother to choose him over more eligible suitors, despite the Warren familyโs fall from grace. 'Was this really the life mother wanted me to have?' It took Carissa no time to made up her mind. โLulu, get prepared. There's somewhere we need to go tomorrow.โ ... Early the next morning, Carissa and Lulu boarded a carriage, heading straight for the royal palace. It was noon by the time they arrived. Under the scorching autumn sun, Carissa and Lulu stood like statues in front of the palace gates. They waited for a full hour, but no one came to let them in. In the palace's study, Derek Walker had already reported Carissaโs arrival to the king three times. โYour Majesty, Mrs. Warren is still waiting outside the palace gates,โ he repeated. The king, Salvador Quinton, set aside the document he was reading and rubbed his temples. โI canโt summon her in. The edict has been issued, and can't be taken back. Tell her to go home.โ โThe guards tried to persuade her, but she refused to leave. Sheโs been standing there for over an hour without moving.โ Salvador felt a pang of guilt. โBarrett requested the marriage as a reward for his military service. I didnโt want to agree, either, but not granting it would embarrass both him and General Yates. They have after all won a big war.โ โYour Majesty, when it comes to military achievements, no one can compare to the Marquis of Northwatch,โ Derek countered. Salvador thought of Hector Sinclair, the Marquis of Northwatch. When Salvador was a crown prince who had recently joined the military, it was Hector who had guided him. Back then, he had also known Carissa when she was only a cute kid. Salvador himself had fought a bloody path to the throne, paved with death. He understood the struggles of military officers, so when Barrett requested marriage as a reward, Salvador had hesitated but eventually agreed. But Derek was right. In terms of military merit, Barrett and Aurora were far inferior to Hector Sinclair. โAlright, let her in. If she agrees to this marriage, Iโll grant her whatever she wants, even if it's a noble title or an official rank,โ said Salvador. Derek breathed a sigh of relief. โAs always, you're wise, Your Majesty!โ ... Carissa knelt in the study with her head bowed. Recalling that Carissa was now the only one left in the Sinclair family, Salvador felt nothing but pity for her. "Rise and speak," he commanded. Carissa bowed deeply with her hands clasped. "Your Majesty, I know it's presumptuous of me to seek an audience today. But I also wish to implore for your grace." "Carissa Sinclair, I have already issued the edict of marriage. It's impossible to revoke it," Salvador said. Carissa shook her head gently. "Your Majesty, I'm not imploring you to reverse that edict, but imploring you for another edict - an amicable divorce with General Warren." The young king was taken aback. "Divorce? You want a divorce?" Carissa nodded her head firmly. She was never someone to pester some man. If Barret Warren loved Aurora Yates so much, then she would let him go. What she needed now was a single edict for an amicable divorce, so she could take away all her dowry and get rid of the despicable Warren family for good, dignified and head high... | LEARN_MORE | https://shgjfh.com/market/meganovel/13?lpid=13831& | Random Reading | https://www.facebook.com/61559743679549/ | 334 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn More | 0 | shgjfh.com | DCO | https://shgjfh.com/market/meganovel/13?lpid=13831&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}}&placement={{placement}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-1.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/465264232_561529746461680_3453754793134507972_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60_tt6&_nc_cat=101&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=oy1vAKbjbb4Q7kNvgEKUn0w&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-1.xx&_nc_gid=AhQvCO5pjzQdUbjZgtPHGAI&oh=00_AYB7KkKVjI93MwbKMq9yf4NK03YM12NW2VdZzoQKW8o3qw&oe=677A7472 | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Random Reading | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,656,617 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2656622}' |
Yes | 2024-12-31 18:39 | active | 2174 | 0 |
|
๐Attention! Do not read in public๏ผ๐ | At Grace Mansion, Carissa Sinclair stared at the man before herโher husband she had waited for a whole year. Barrett Warren, still in his battle armor, wore an expression of both determination and guilt. "Carissa, the king has issued a royal edict for my marriage to Aurora." he said, his voice steady, " She will be joining our household. There's no question about it." Carissa's eyes clouded with confusion. "The queen dowager has praised General Yates as a model for all women in the kingdom. Would she be willing to be a concubine?" Barrett's eyes flashed with a hint of annoyance. "No, she wonโt be a concubine. Sheโll be my legal wife, equal to you." "But calling her equal doesn't change the fact that sheโs still just a concubine," Carissa said, a soft smile playing on her lips. Barrett frowned. "Why can't you face the reality? Aurora and I fell in love with each other on the battlefield, and we earned this marriage with our glorified victory. In fact, I donโt really need your approval on it." Fell in love? Huh, looks like he is determined in breaking the vow he made a year ago... Carissa's soft smile wiped off by a mocking one, she had once believed Barrettโs victory would earn him a higher rank, freeing her from the burden of supporting the Warren household with her dowry. Yet instead, in exchange for his victory, he only asked the king for another woman's hand, and now he even dared to silence her with his so-called 'glorified victory'... Carissa felt a lump in her throat. Despite her disgust and reluctance, she asked, "What about your parents? Do they agree?" "They do. It was a royal edict, and Aurora is amicable. Mother liked her a lot upon seeing her, even her health seems to be improving." "Improving?" Carissa felt a whirlwind of emotions. "When you went to war, your mother was already gravely ill. I brought in the best physician, managed the estateโs affairs by day, and stayed up nights caring for her. That's how her condition started to improve." "But seeing Aurora has made my mother feel even better," Barrett said earnestly. "I know this is unfair to you, but for the greater good, please be generous enough to welcome Aurora." Carissa lowered her eyes, as if blinking away the tears. But inspected closely, that's actually her sharpened gaze. "Invite General Yates over. I have a few things to ask her." "There's no need," Barrett refused instantly. "Carissa, sheโs different from any woman you know. As a general, sheโs above household squabbles and wouldnโt want to meet you." Carissa retorted, "What are women I know like? Or tell me, what kind of woman am I to you? Have you forgotten? I'm also the daughter of the Marquis's family. My father and my six brothers sacrificed on the Southern Frontier three years ago-" "Thatโs them." Barrett interrupted, "You're still a delicate woman suited only for home comforts, while Aurora has no respect for that. Besides, she never holds back her true thoughts. Trust me, you won't want to hear it from her. Also rest assured. Mother has promised me that Aurora will never threaten your control of the household. Carissa, she couldn't care less about those things." โOh, that's what you and mother think I fear? Losing the control of this household?โ Carissa couldn't help but laughing. Little did Barrett know his household had been reduced to a hollow shell - managing it was a hot potato no one else would bear. Over the past year, it was Carissa's dowry alone that kept the Warren familyโs life respectable, and this was her reward. โEnough,โ Barrett snapped, his patience running thin. โIโve done my duty by informing you. Your opinion wonโt change anything.โ As Carissa watched hum storm out, her bitterness deepened. โMy lady, my lord has really crossed the line!โ Lulu, Carissaโs maid, said, wiping her tears. โDonโt call him that!โ Carissa gave her a stern look. โWe never consummated the marriage. Heโs not your lord. Now go fetch my dowry list.โ โWhy the dowry list?โ Lulu asked, puzzled. Carissa tapped her on the forehead. โSilly girl, we need to reckon everything before we leave.โ Lulu gasped. โLeave? But where can we go? To the Northwatch Estate?โ Suddenly Lulu held her tongue, aware that she had touched the sensitive subject. She spared Carissa a guilty look, "I'll get the list now, my lady." Upon the mention of Northwatch Estate, the always restrained Carissa finally let her tears fall. When she was fifteen, her father, the Marquis of Northwatch, had sacrificed his life on the battlefield. Then, just six months ago, her entire family at the Northwatch Estate was brutally slaughtered โ assassins rumored to be spies from the enemy nation, Westhaven. She rushed back after getting the news, only to find the dismembered bodies of her mother and grandmother. Even her youngest nephew, two years old, didn't escape death, neither. Now, she was the lone survivor of the marquis' family, the idea of restoring her familyโs former glory seemed impossibleโat least to outsiders. After all, she was presented mostly as a delicate, fragile woman, while Aurora Taytes had just made herself the first female general in history. It's only natural that the Warren family was more than happy to agree to the marriage. Yet, unbeknownst to the world, Carissa's martial talent was never beneath her father and brothers. If given a chance on the battlefield, she would definitely outshine Aurora Taytes, perhaps a million times more... Just then, Lulu had brought over the dowry list, "My lady, this year alone, you've spent over six thousand silver coins supporting the household. However, the shops, houses, and estates remain untouched. All the bank savings, along with the property deeds and land titles your mother left, are locked up in the chest." "I see." Carisse's gaze lingered on the list with melancholy. Her mother had given her such a substantial dowry, fearing she might face hardship in her husband's home. Yet now here she was. The Warren family had disregarded all her effort, and Barrett had even broken his vow to take no concubine - the very promise that led her mother to choose him over more eligible suitors, despite the Warren familyโs fall from grace. 'Was this really the life mother wanted me to have?' It took Carissa no time to made up her mind. โLulu, get prepared. There's somewhere we need to go tomorrow.โ ... Early the next morning, Carissa and Lulu boarded a carriage, heading straight for the royal palace. It was noon by the time they arrived. Under the scorching autumn sun, Carissa and Lulu stood like statues in front of the palace gates. They waited for a full hour, but no one came to let them in. In the palace's study, Derek Walker had already reported Carissaโs arrival to the king three times. โYour Majesty, Mrs. Warren is still waiting outside the palace gates,โ he repeated. The king, Salvador Quinton, set aside the document he was reading and rubbed his temples. โI canโt summon her in. The edict has been issued, and can't be taken back. Tell her to go home.โ โThe guards tried to persuade her, but she refused to leave. Sheโs been standing there for over an hour without moving.โ Salvador felt a pang of guilt. โBarrett requested the marriage as a reward for his military service. I didnโt want to agree, either, but not granting it would embarrass both him and General Yates. They have after all won a big war.โ โYour Majesty, when it comes to military achievements, no one can compare to the Marquis of Northwatch,โ Derek countered. Salvador thought of Hector Sinclair, the Marquis of Northwatch. When Salvador was a crown prince who had recently joined the military, it was Hector who had guided him. Back then, he had also known Carissa when she was only a cute kid. Salvador himself had fought a bloody path to the throne, paved with death. He understood the struggles of military officers, so when Barrett requested marriage as a reward, Salvador had hesitated but eventually agreed. But Derek was right. In terms of military merit, Barrett and Aurora were far inferior to Hector Sinclair. โAlright, let her in. If she agrees to this marriage, Iโll grant her whatever she wants, even if it's a noble title or an official rank,โ said Salvador. Derek breathed a sigh of relief. โAs always, you're wise, Your Majesty!โ ... Carissa knelt in the study with her head bowed. Recalling that Carissa was now the only one left in the Sinclair family, Salvador felt nothing but pity for her. "Rise and speak," he commanded. Carissa bowed deeply with her hands clasped. "Your Majesty, I know it's presumptuous of me to seek an audience today. But I also wish to implore for your grace." "Carissa Sinclair, I have already issued the edict of marriage. It's impossible to revoke it," Salvador said. Carissa shook her head gently. "Your Majesty, I'm not imploring you to reverse that edict, but imploring you for another edict - an amicable divorce with General Warren." The young king was taken aback. "Divorce? You want a divorce?" Carissa nodded her head firmly. She was never someone to pester some man. If Barret Warren loved Aurora Yates so much, then she would let him go. What she needed now was a single edict for an amicable divorce, so she could take away all her dowry and get rid of the despicable Warren family for good, dignified and head high... | LEARN_MORE | https://shgjfh.com/market/meganovel/13?lpid=13831& | Random Reading | https://www.facebook.com/61559743679549/ | 334 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn More | 0 | shgjfh.com | DCO | https://shgjfh.com/market/meganovel/13?lpid=13831&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}}&placement={{placement}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-1.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/465264232_561529746461680_3453754793134507972_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60_tt6&_nc_cat=101&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=oy1vAKbjbb4Q7kNvgEKUn0w&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-1.xx&_nc_gid=AhQvCO5pjzQdUbjZgtPHGAI&oh=00_AYB7KkKVjI93MwbKMq9yf4NK03YM12NW2VdZzoQKW8o3qw&oe=677A7472 | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Random Reading | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,656,468 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2656443}' |
Yes | 2024-12-31 18:39 | active | 2174 | 0 |
|
๐HOT! HOT!Do not read in public๏ผ๐ | My husband and mate, Elijah, is the Alpha of one of the most powerful packs in Fenrisa, the Iron Claw Pack. I am his wife and his mate. One would think that due to being fated, our relationship would be a good one. But thatโs far from the truth. The truth is, I am his second chance mate. โVerena, I want to reject our bond and get separated,โ Elijahโs voice doesn't hold an ounce of emotion as he sits across from me in the dim living room. I'd been waiting for him to celebrate our third wedding anniversary together. But when he arrived, there was this coldness about him. I figured he was just tired from work, but then he asked me to sit down and dropped a bombshell on me. "Why?" I blink in disbelief. He must be joking, right? But the intensity of his gaze chips away at my doubt, replacing it with a growing sense of worry. I know the reason. The one I've feared the most for so long. His mate has returned to the pack. Elijahโs first mate had left him just before the mating ceremony. The reason was unknown, but everyone assumed that she didnโt want a relationship with her mate and loved someone else. On the same day of their separation, Elijah found me and realized that I am his second chance mate. Second chance mates are rare, and it can be called a miracle that the Goddess gives Elijah a second chance in love by mating us. He hasnโt rejected his first mate, but one can find a second mate irrespective of rejecting their first mate. It's complicated and goes against the laws of the mate bond. Yet it's a blessing to the ones whose first mate dies or leaves them. Elijah sighs, โYou know about Nixie. She wants to be back with me.โ I clench my fist. โAnd you want to get back with her?โ My lips quiver, and I struggle to stop my body from trembling, but it's futile. Despite being Elijahโs second chance, heโs my first. My first mate, the only love of my life. No matter who your second chance is, the bond with the first mate is stronger, like the first love that you canโt move on from. Elijah feels the same towards Nixie, I know, but can I simply accept it? His face remains aloof, โNixie needs me, Verena. She is my mate and my wolf needs her.โ His first mate returned a week ago, claiming that she was kidnapped by our enemy pack and taken hostage for three years. The pack that captured her was destroyed due to a pack war, and the hostages were released. Thatโs how Nixie escaped and returned to our pack. "I canโt have two mates at the same time. Having you both is putting a lot of pressure and weakening my wolf. Over time, itโll get worse. So, Iโll have to reject one," he adds in a calm voice, while a storm is rising in my chest. "And you choose her," I reply, tears brimming in my eyes. I knew that Elijah hadnโt moved on from his first mate when I entered his life. But I had believed that I could heal him and show him that I can love him more. I did everything in my power to make him happy when we got married. Yet, sheโs the one he chooses. What about us? The relationship we built for all these years, does it mean nothing to him? When I walked into his life, he was emotionally unavailable and rude to me. But I stayed patient and he gradually started to warm up to me. Since then we had worked together on everything and he promised to stay beside me forever. I know that I wonโt be able to bear him a healthy child because I did not shift after I turned eighteen and it's been five years since I have been wolf-less. But I felt the mate bond when I saw Elijah at the Mating Ball. He also agreed to marry me because his pack needed a Luna and it was better to have a second chance mate than have no mate at all. โYou said you'd never leave me. You promised me,โ I remind him. โHow can you break it because of someone who left you years ago?โ His icy presence sends a chill through the room. "Rena, watch your words. Remember who you're speaking to," he warns, his tone sharp like a blade. "And do you expect me to overlook the fact that you intentionally drove Nixie away because you wanted to be with me?" My brows raise, โWhat are you talking about?โ He stands from the couch, โYou think I donโt know? Nixie returned to this pack just one year after our marriage and wanted to meet me. But you met her first and threatened her to not come close to me and disappear from the pack.โ A shadow falls on his chiseled face, making him look deadly and dangerous. I have always admired his ruthless side, especially when he makes sure to punish anyone who tries to hurt me. But today, heโs giving me this look as if heโs disgusted by me. โBecause of you, Nixie could not contact me and tell me what happened to her. I couldnโt be there for her when she needed me. Just because of you.โ He accuses me, and I feel like I have been stabbed in the chest. โI did not!โ I say and he tilts his head as if he did not expect that response from me. As much as I want Elijah all to myself, I know that he feels empty without Nixie. So I would have accepted them being together, just for the sake of Elijahโs happiness. He raises a brow, โSo you are not going to admit it?โ โAdmit what? I have no idea what you are talking about.โ I protest. "Fine, I'll call him then," Elijah's obsidian eyes glaze over as he connects through the mind-link. Seconds later, the door swings open and Joshua walks inside. โWhatโs the matter?โ He asks as he looks at both of us. He is Elijahโs Beta. โRena denies that she had not tried to kick Nixie out of the pack when she returned two years ago. Is that true?โ I look at Joshua expectantly. He will tell Elijah the truth. I relax a little, waiting for the truth to come out. But why do I have this bad feeling? โNo, I saw her two years ago with the Luna,โ Joshua replies calmly, with a subtle smile on his face. โThe Luna did threaten her and tell her to leave the pack.โ What?! โJoshua, what the hell are you saying?! I didn't even meet Nixie!โ I rise from my seat in shock and look at him in disbelief. โKeep your voice low, Rena. Joshua is saying what he saw and I am surprised that you believed heโd lie for you. After all, heโs the one who showed me pictures of your encounter with my mate.โ Elijah throws the pictures on the table and it feels like someone has pulled the rug off my feet. These are from a different time. They are manipulated. I look at the Beta who gives me a smirk. He betrayed me. I thought we were good friends butโฆ My shoulders slump as I look at the floor. This canโt be happening. โDo you have any evidence that the Beta is lying?โ Elijah asks. I donโt have an answer. My head spins, trying to process everything that has happened. โNo,โ I whisper. If I had known that heโll betray me like this, I would have been more cautious. But why would he do this? For a few minutes, silence hangs heavy in the air until Elijah gently grasps my chin, coaxing me to meet his gaze. His inky black hair falls messily across his face, reminding me of its softness when I touched it before. โIt's over, Rena. You knew how much I loved Nixie, yet you pushed her away from me. Then you pretended to love me when all you wanted was the power and wealth that comes with being my wife. I canโt let any of this slip away.โ he says, his voice gentle but deep and chilling. Pretend to love him? After all these years, he thinks it was an act. I know I donโt have any evidence to prove my innocence, but wonโt he try to believe me for once? I canโt help but wonder if he would have believed Nixie if she was in my shoes. He would have probably forgiven her, because mates tend to be possessive of their partners. But he wonโt treat me like that, because according to him, I am just his second chance. I am nothing compared to his first true mate, his first love. Tears glisten in my eyes as pain grips my heart. "Elijah, I mean it. I don't care about the position. I just want you." He growls, baring his canines and his eyes flash, โI had enough. You should be grateful that I am not imprisoning you for doing something like this. So if you donโt want to live in the cells, I advise you to accept the divorce and the rejection.โ He lets go of my chin and retrieves the divorce agreement. He slaps it onto the coffee table, making me flinch. "Sign it.โ I stare at the papers with a bleeding heart. All the good memories I had with him flash in my head. What did all of those moments mean? Was it a lie when he said that I make him smile? That I am special to him? That our bond is no lesser than a first mate bond? I slowly bend forward, and grab the pen. I sign the paper while holding back my tears.โHere, it's done,โ I whisper while holding the divorce agreement. For a brief moment, the iciness in his gaze melts, replaced by shock and hurt. But he swiftly regains his composure and accepts the paper from me. A sad smile curves my lips. So he would have gotten separated from me anyway. It did not matter what I did, he just needed a reason to reject me and have his mate back. โWhen is the rejection ceremony going to take place?โ I ask while looking down at my trembling arms. If I see his face, Iโm afraid Iโll break down completely. โTomorrow. I expect you to be present at the training ground at eight in the morning. Once the rejection is over, you can stay at the packhouse. Though Iโd prefer if you donโt come close to my mate. I donโt want you to cause a scene.โ he replied and it hurts how he calls Nixie โmy mateโ. I rise from my seat and turn around, โDonโt worry, you wonโt find me anywhere near you or Nixie after the rejection is over. Thatโll be my gift to you. Happy Marriage Anniversary, Alpha Elijah.โ Chapter 2 : Her, Nixie Verena It's alright. Things will get better. Elijah will change his mind, after all he loves meโ- My trembling hand freezes halfway as I reach for the plate on the dining table. Tear droplets splatter on the polished darkwood, and the sight of our signatures on the divorce agreement brings me crashing back to reality. We're divorced, and tomorrow he will reject me. Not being able to pretend anymore, I break down into sobs. My fingers curl on the edge of the table while I look at the hardwood floor with tears streaming down my eyes. He really divorced me. My relationship with Elijah hasnโt been a bed of roses. When we married, he was cold and distant. But I started to witness the softer, emotional side of him that he tried to hide from the rest of the world. I made his pain my own, and tried my best to keep him happy. He was gradually warming up to me. But then Nixie returned and he pushed me away like those years of our relationship meant nothing to him. My chest squeezes painfully at the thought of it. I just canโt accept that he doesn't want me anymore. But the untouched food on the table, and the red velvet cake with Happy Third Marriage Anniversary written on it is a reminder that it's true. It took me almost four hours to bake this cake, in high hopes of seeing a smile on Elijahโs face when he returns. โAre you finished with your nonsense?โ Maya, my maidโs voice, draws my attention to the door. She stands there with an annoyed expression, gesturing towards the wall. โUnlike you, I actually have work to do, like cleaning up this mess.โ I wipe my face, and take a step back, โYes, go ahead.โ My voice sounds dry. Maya rolls her eyes, her lips curl in disapproval as she walks over and eyes the table. โSuch a headache,โ she mutters while shaking her head. Despite being Luna, I am not liked in the packhouse. It's because I am an orphan who did not shift. Even an omega has a wolf, so it makes me appear way beneath in rank. So the people donโt approve of me as their Queen. Someone without a wolf canโt lead a pack of wolves. Thatโs what I have always been told. I have learned to live with it because that is how I have always been treated. And forcing people to like me through fear of my position goes beyond my values, so I try to make up for my weakness by putting my best efforts. But Elijah has punished anyone who has tried to misbehave with me, always taking my side when things went down. He was very protective of me. Was. I wonder if he believes now Nixie will be a better Luna than me because of having a wolf. She comes from a family of Gammas, so she has a strong wolf and anyone will choose her over me. Rip! My body jolts at the sudden sound of something being torn off, and I notice Maya ruthlessly tearing the fairy lights and red balloons off the wall behind the table. With each delicate adornment being stripped away, I feel a prick in my chest. My friends Dory and Drake helped me set up the decorations last night, and we were so proud of it. Maya does not hold back on the food either, and I flinch at the way she just dumps the cake into the dustbin. I feel like that cake, dumped into trash. My head feels dizzy at the overwhelming emotions. I need a shower. I walk out of the dining hall, and my legs feel heavy for some reason. Now that I think about it, I've been feeling quite sick since this morning. My throat itches, I feel nauseous, and I've been unusually tired lately. Maybe it's because of Elijah. Not paying any attention to my surroundings, my hand subconsciously reaches to open the door to the bedroom. But the moment the door swings back, a pleasant musky scent hits my nose. Thereโs another scent with it that makes my nose crinkle. My body freezes in place when I notice Elijah sitting on the bed. With Nixie on his lap. With brown hair that brushes her shoulders in curls and a floral print mini skirt riding up her slender, milky white thighs, Nixie looks like any manโs wet dream. Compared to her, I look basic in my plain blue dress and straight midnight blue hair. They seem to be having a moment as her arms are wrapped around his neck, while his hand is on her slim waist. Elijah notices my presence, โRena,โ he takes my name with his deep, velvety voice that tugs at my heart and lets go of Nixieโs waist. Nixie gets off his lap and stands beside him, fixing her skirt. โOh my Goddess, Rena. I-I didnโt know you would be coming,โ her pale skin turns red as if sheโs embarrassed. Even when I donโt have a wolf, I can still feel the sting of their intimacy. My heart pounds painfully in my chest. โRena, why are you here?โ Elijah asks, staring at me with his cold obsidian eyes. I canโt tell what he is thinking. Chapter 3 : He, with Her Verena โIโฆumโฆโ the words feel stuck in my throat. My legs feel weak. I canโt believe he started to get so intimate with her after a few hours of our divorce. If heโs this affectionate with her, then it means that he has already moved on. Though maybe he did not need to move on in the first place. โRena?โ He takes my name again, and I regain my composure. I need to get a hold on myself. Heโs no longer my husband, and soon heโll reject me from the mate bond. So I shouldnโt be feeling anything. โDid I interrupt something?โ I ask, my gaze sliding to Nixie who stares at me with her big doe green eyes. Anyone would fall for the innocence those eyes portray, but I can see the malice behind it. Elijah narrows his gaze, and places a hand over his mouth. He does that when heโs curious, and annoyed. โYou did,โ he replies sharply, and I'm struck by his words. โIโโ โRena, you should remember that you need to ask for the Alphaโs permission before entering his room.โ My lips part in shock, and my brows lift. โWhat?โ โYou heard me. Still, Iโd let this go because we arenโt officially rejected and you are my mate.โ His voice puts me in an icy chokehold. Just a few hours, and our relationship has completely changed. Where is the man who waited for me every single night in bed to fall asleep together? Who is he? โWow, I did not know that it was your room now, Alpha. The same room we shared for three years,โ I retort, crossing my arms. My eyes flit to the bed where he was sitting with Nixie on his lap. His jaw clenches at my words. โWe are divorced now. So isnโt it obvious that we wonโt be sharing the same room anymore?โ He tilts his head, gauging my reaction. I smirk, โSure. I mean, you wonโt like me barging into your โroomโ while you spend some quality time with your mate,โ I emphasize the last word and my gaze shifts to Nixie. โRena, before you say something to insult Nixie, Iโll warn you. I have been lenient with you, but I wonโt this time. So choose your words wisely.โ He speaks in a low, commanding voice, reminding me of whoโs in charge. His words crush my soul. It's as if I am the problem in his life. โElijah, it's alright,โ Nixie moves closer to him, and slides her hand over his shoulder. โI can understand that sheโs hurt so I am fine with it.โ A growl leaves my lips as I stare at her hand placement. Elijah raises a brow, and I realize what I have done. Heโs still my mate, and it's not easy for me to watch someone else touch him, even if that person is his first mate. โIโI am sorry if I made you upset, Rena,โ Nixie looks at me with quivering lips, โBut you have to understand that I love him and canโt stay away from him.โ Tears fill her eyes, and she starts to sob. โNixie, donโt cry. It's not your fault,โ Elijah gets up, and wraps an arm around her. My insides scream at that sight, but I donโt let a word out of my mouth. I silently watch him comfort her when I am the one in need of comfort. โRena and I have come to a mutual agreement, so it's our decision.โ I scowl. It was never my decision to get separated from him. Elijah looks at me with a pointed look, โYou did not tell me why you are here.โ His voice is gentle as always, but I can tell that he does not want me here. He feels that I will sabotage his relationship with Nixie. My jaw trembles, โIt's nothing. I am sorry for interrupting whatever you both were doing,โ I storm out of the door while the tears trickle down my eyes. The paintings and furniture on the hallway start to look unfamiliar as I rush past them. Why? Why do I have to go through this? My head starts to throb, and I stop in my steps. I feel dizzy. The nausea grows, crawling up my chest and through my blurry vision, I see two figures on the other side of the hall. They look concerned as they walk towards me. โLuna, are you alright?โ I recognize the voice. It's Dory, โYou look no wellโโ I donโt hear the rest of her sentence as the air shifts, and I grace the floor. Shadows dance in my vision before everything turns dark. Beep. Beep. My eyes flutter open on hearing a sound, and I find myself in a hospital bed. A dull ache throbs in my head. โSheโs awake,โ I feel Doryโs warm hand on my back as I slowly get up. She helps me sit. โThank Goddess!โ Drake exclaims as he stands beside her. They are twins, and work for me in the pack. I groan, feeling the same throbbing sensation. โI passed out?โ โYeah. We brought you to the hospital as soon as possible. Are you okay now?โ Drake asks. I nod, โYeah.โ The door opens, and a woman walks in wearing a white coat and holding a clipboard. "Oh, you're awake. That's good," she says with a smile as she approaches me. My gaze falls onto the tag on her coat. Dr. Shalini, Senior Gynaecologist. โIs it an infection?โ I ask. Her smile widens, โNo, Luna. I have good news for you. I hope that the Alpha throws us a party after this.โ she says and my frown deepens. My gaze shifts to Drake and Dory. Drake shrugs while Dory shakes her head. โI donโt understand,โ I say. โCongratulations, my Luna. You are going to be a mother.โ she replies. Chapter 4 : A Baby? Verena The world seems to stop as I hear what she said. I amโฆcarrying a baby now? โWhat?โ I gasp. The woman nods, her eyes glinting with excitement. โYes, Luna. I ran a USG scan, and it shows the pregnancy.โ Dory shrieks, โOh my Goddess! That's wonderful news.โ She grins at me, and hugs Drake, who is taken aback by her sisterโs excitement. The doctor looks at my confused expression and asks, โIs everything alright?โ I stare at my lap. How can I be? Drake senses my confusion and turns to the doctor, โCan we have some time alone with her? Weโll call you if we need anything. Thank you for the news, doc.โ โUm, alright,โ she says hesitantly, giving me one last glance before walking out of the room. Dory senses the change in mood and asks me, โWhatโs wrong, Luna?โ โI think I understand why she is confused,โ Drake answers, and Dory looks at him. โWe all know that Luna does not have a wolf.โ Doryโs brows shoot up in realization. โOh my, thatโs right. Then, how?โ She looks at me, the colors of excitement on her face completely gone. A she-wolf who did not shift canโt bear another male wolfโs child, let alone that of an Alphaโs child. Our genetics act like one of a normal human, and we are not compatible with carrying a shifterโs child. So how can I having a baby? โWe should get the report checked or tell them to run another test on you. The report can be wrong,โ Drake says in a calm voice. He is always calm in these situations and looks at every problem through a logical perspective. As advised by Drake, I undergo another USG scan to confirm if the report is accurate or not. Dory insists that I get some rest, so I return to the packhouse after the test is over. She promises to bring me the test report, so I anxiously wait for her in one of my spare rooms. When the second test report arrives, my eyes stay glued to the report file, my hands trembling. Test resultโpositive. Sweet tears blur my vision. I canโt believe this. โIt's really true, Luna. You are with child,โ Dory remarks with a huge smile plastered on her face. My hand reaches to my belly. There is a life growing inside me. When I had not shifted after my 18th birthday, I had lost all hope of conceiving. Elijah was unhappy about my barren state, and it was another reason for him to act cold towards me in the initial stages of our marriage. An Alpha needs an heir, and I was incapable of providing one. โBut how is this possible? I never shifted,โ I mutter. โI have a theory in my mind,โ Dory replies as she stands before me with her hands crossed. I look up from the file, and a thoughtful look darkens her eyes, โThere have been a few cases where the shifter did not transform at the right age because their wolf was still in a developmental phase.โ I raise a brow, โDevelopmental phase?โ She hums, โMost wolves start to develop in our bodies from the time of our birth. The average age for any healthy transformation is from eighteen to nineteen. Usually, after that time, no shifter ever transforms, meaning their wolf could not grow properly because of the lack of strength in the personโs body. But there was this one case study in the Moonlight Pack where the Alpha got his wolf at the age of twenty-six. Rumor has it that his predecessors also got their wolves late.โ โSo it's in the bloodline?โ I ask, rubbing my belly, โIsnโt the Moonlight Pack Alpha a powerful one who has magical powers?โ She nods, โThatโs what everyone says. But recently, no one has seen the Alpha around, and some say that it's just baseless rumors. If he truly had magical powers, then he would have shown them, but thereโs no incident as such. Heโs been a mystery for the last ten years.โ I hum in agreement. It's hard to tell what my condition is, but I donโt care. If Elijah learns about this, I am sure heโll annul the divorce. He canโt reject me after knowing that I have his baby. It will put the childโs life at risk. I need to tell him. He has to change his mind after this. He canโt get separated from me if he knows that I am carrying his future heir. I get up from the bed and tell Dory, โIโll show this to the Alpha.โ Not wasting another second, I am rushing out of the guestroom. Thank Selene! She has blessed me with a child. She believes that Elijah and I are meant to be together. A smile curves my lips. The moment I reach his office, I knock the door twice with my knuckles while excitement bubbles through me. I hear his deep voice through the door, โCome in.โ I step in, feeling a little nervous as I find him sitting on his office chair, wearing his blue-light glasses with a white rim. They frame his obsidian eyes that scrutinize me. He looks so handsome in them. But then my gaze falls on Nixie, whose arm rests on his shoulder. She is way too close to him, and frowns when she notices me. It's not hard to see the malicious look in her eyes. Once I settle things with Elijah, Iโll make sure she never gets a chance to come close to him. โWhat brings you here, Rena?โ Elijah asks, shifting his gaze to his computer screen. I am about to respond when he says, โI hope it's not โnothingโ like last time. You should know that I am a busy person, and my time has value." He speaks in a frosty demeanor that reminds me of winter. โI am carrying your baby, Elijah,โ I say, hoping that the news will shock him. He has always been looking forward to having an heir. Now his wish has come true. Chapter 5: Will He Be Back? Verena His gaze lifts from the display screen and darkens with disappointment, โIs this your new trick to get me back?โ he retorts, and the corner of Nixieโs lips curls into a smirk. I blink in confusion. Trick? โWhyโwhy would I trick you with something like this?โ His jaw clenches, and the air turns cold with his icy gaze, โYou tell me, Rena. You want me to believe that without having a wolf, you can carry the child of an Alpha?โ I flinch at his words. I am not proud of my condition. But it's out of my control. โI know it's hard to believe. I did not believe it either. Thatโs why I ran two tests to confirm the report. I am really carrying a baby.โ I take a step towards his desk and hand him the file. He flips through it, his eyes going over the report. Nixie leans in to also check, and her face turns pale. It makes me a little happy. This child will be the one to save our relationship and this pack. โI get it now,โ he says, staring at the table in thought, and I breathe in relief. โYou went to Shadow Den after the divorce for this reason. To create a fake pregnancy report.โ He adds, and suddenly it feels like I have been punched in the gut. โWhat?! What are you talking about?โ I ask, my eyes wide in horror. Shadow Den is a shady place at the borders of the pack where all kinds of illegal activities take place, including creating fake documents. A dignified lady will never step into that place because it reeks of crime and rogue trafficking. โI told my men to keep an eye on you, and they reported that you went to Shadow Den. At first, I couldnโt believe it and punished them for lying to me. But now it seems that they were telling me the truth.โ The look Elijah gives me completely shatters my soul. It feels like the respect he had for me is broken now. I shake my head frantically, โNo! I did not go there, Elijah. Please trust me!โ He scoffs, his eyes swirling with hurt. โHow can I trust you when you are doing things behind my back? You know how much I have desired a child. It pains me to think you have gone this far.โ โThatโs not true. I will never do something like this, you know that,โ The corner of my eyes prick. How can he believe that I will fake childbirth? โI can prove myself this time. Call the hospital and ask if I had done a test there or not.โ I raise my voice, holding my ground as much as I can. Elijah dials the number on his phone. He puts it on the loudspeaker and places it on the desk for me to hear. With each ring, my heart beats with anticipation. This has to work. The clinic keeps records of their patients. โLarsen's Clinic speaking. How may I help you, Alpha?โ The female receptionistโs voice comes from the receiving end. Elijah places his hands on the desk and asks, โIs there any record of my wife Verena Donovan getting a USG test done today at your clinic?โ โGive me a second please, Alpha,โ the receptionist answers politely. Patient records are confidential, but since it's the Alpha asking for information, the hospital has to obey his orders. I fidget, waiting for her to confirm it. Each second feels like an hour, making me grow nervous. Her voice finally comes through, โThereโs no record of her checking in our clinic today, Alpha.โ My heart drops, and for a second I forget how to breathe. No, this canโt be possible. I was there. They saw me. Then, why? Elijah hangs up the phone. Nixieโs eyes glint with victory as she stares at me. The walls around the office feel like they are closing in on me. Why did the clinic lie? Is someone else behind this? My gaze shifts to Nixie, who has a smug look on her face. It is strange how she has been so silent and did not try to stop me from showing the reports. He sighs and takes off his glasses. โRena, look. Your excuses are not going to work on me. This rejection is going to happen because as an Alpha, I have to be with my rightful mate.โ He rises from the chair and approaches me. Standing close to me, he adds โAnd I am letting you stay here. I wonโt banish you from the pack, so you donโt have to use these cheap tricks.โ Cheap tricks? My hand goes to my belly. The man I have spent my life with for three years did not try to believe me for once. This proves that he never trusted me in all these years, and I thought that we had a good relationshipโone that was built out of mutual love and respect. It was all in my head. โThis is the extent of my kindness, Rena,โ Elijah adds, โDonโt test my patience any further.โ I donโt need his kindness. The only thing I wanted from him was to take my side, to have faith in me. But he pushed it all away. I decide to leave silently and walk towards the door. When I grab the handle with my shaking hand, his voice stops me. โRena.โ I look over my shoulder and find him staring at me. There is something in his gaze. โI hope you remember the time of the rejection ceremony tomorrow. Donโt try to bail on me because then Iโll have to force you to join me at the training grounds.โ My chest tightens at the lack of empathy in his voice. โI wonโt,โ I hold back the tears that threaten to fall by clenching the doorknob tightly. He wants to get rid of me so badly. But I am worried about my child. I can only pray to have the strength to protect my baby from his rejection. Chapter 6 : Loveโs Not Enough Verena โSo, when is the Alpha throwing us a party?โ Dory asks as she walks into my room with a cheerful smile. She does not know. The only thing she knows is that I went to Elijah to tell him the good news. โYou definitely have to tell me the names you are deciding on, especially if it's a girl. I donโt want our princess to have a terrible name like mine. Also Iโโ โWe are going to have a rejection ceremony today,โ I say with a grim expression. Dory blinks a few times, โWhat? Thatโs such a bad joke.โ My lips curve in a sad smile while I sit on the armchair, โIt's not.โ The girlโs smile drops, โNo, thatโs not possible.โ My gaze dips to the jar sheโs holding in her hand, โDid you bring the herbs I asked you to?โ Her brows pucker, โYeah, I did. But the herbs you asked for are used to protect an unborn from any strong supernatural forces. Why would you ask for something likeโโ her lips stop moving as her eyes light up with realization. There are certain herbs that protect an unborn child in the womb of a mother who gets rejected from her mate. I told her to bring one of those so that no harm comes to my baby. She stays still for a few seconds, โWhat? Iโ Are you really getting rejected?โ I answer her with my silence. She stands still, as if processing everything. โThe Alpha...heโs behind this, isnโt he?โ she grits her teeth. โI should have known it. Something felt off about you staying in this room, and looking so pale.โ She clenches her fist. I slowly rise from my armchair, โDory, calm down.โ โNo for this case!โ she slams the jar into the bedside, and stomps out of the room. Crap! I run up to her. Sheโs going to argue with Elijah. Stepping out of the room, I get hold of her wrist, and stop her, โStop! Donโt do it.โ She whips her head at me, rage burning like coal in her eyes, โLuna, I respect you. But I canโt accept this. How can he do this to you? Iโll go and knock some sense into him!โ โNo, no, no.โ I pull her back. She is acting like a dog who has gone feral, and needs to be kept on a leash. Most of the time she is calm and rational. But when it comes to the people she cares for, she becomes hot-headed and does something regretful. If she talks back to Elijah, she can be put into the cells or even banished. โCalm down. This decision is mutual,โ I say, and she freezes. She turns to me with a face as if lightning has struck her. โWhat about the child? How can you get separated when the future heir of this pack is growing inside you?โ She points at my belly and I place my palm on it. Despite what the clinic said, I believe that a life is growing inside me. I can feel it in my bones. But I donโt want to tell Dory everything. She does not need to be involved in my problems. "It's because of the new girl who joined the pack, isnโt it?โ Dory asks suddenly, and I jerk my head up at her, my heart skipping a beat. I did not expect her to catch on to it so quickly. She notices my face, โYou donโt need to worry about her, Luna. Iโll teach her a lesson that sheโll run out of the borders of this pack and never look back,โ she says with determination. I sigh. This girl has no sense of danger. โYouโll do nothing like that. Promise me.โ She frowns, โButโโ โI said what I said. Donโt argue with your Luna,โ I will be ex-Luna soon but there is time left for the rejection ceremony. So I will use my authority to make sure Dory does not put herself in danger. Her shoulders sag, and she reluctantly nods. โBut why are you not doing anything? Will you let another girl just take everything from you?โ Her words prick me. I did try, but when Elijah wants me to step out of his life, then there is nothing I can do. Even our child could not save our relationship because he does not even believe in its existence. โIt's pointless. Also, it's better to end things. Our marriage was like an agreement and since he has no use for me now, the agreement has ended.โ It was a mistake. If I had known that I would be treated like this after the return of his fated mate, I would have never agreed to this marriage. Second chance mates after all areโฆsecond choice, not first. โBut Lunaโฆโ She steps closer to me, her brown eyes staring at me, โYou love him, more than your own life. I know you.โ Her words squeeze my chest tightly and warm tears cover my vision. She has seen how much dedicated I have been to Elijah. I blink to push my tears back, and amidst the silence of the gloomy morning my words come out like a sad symphony, โMy love is not enough.โ A tear slips down my left eye. Dory's eyes glisten with pain as she wraps her arms around me in a gentle embrace. The warmth of her act stirs something inside me, and I break down into sobs. Now that she's here, I realize how much I needed someone's presence to share my sorrow. With no parents or many friends whom I can trust to open up to, given my focus on work and Elijah, her presence feels like a cool shade after hours of walking in scorching heat. "I am so sorry this is happening to you. If the Alpha can't see how much you have sacrificed for him, then he does not deserve you!" she cries, and I hug her tighter. It brings me some relief knowing that there's someone for me. "Don't worry sweetheart, it's okay. I can make it." I pat Dory on the back. "Later I'll go to Elijah's room and get my stuff back, they must not want to see me in this house, and neither do I.โ Chapter 7: Shattered Expectations An hour later, I step inside Elijahโs bedroom to get all my stuff. The walls of the room make me suffocated as it reminds me of the times we have spent here. Brushing those thoughts away, I focus on my task at hand. There is no point in staying in this packhouse so Iโll pack my things and leave. The money I have saved from my stock investments will get me to stay for six months in a five-star hotel. I will use that time to find a job. Since I have always been focused on my duties as the Luna of this pack, I never got the time to pursue anything else, especially my dream to open a bakery. Now that I no longer have any duties towards the pack, I can focus on my dream and have a bakery shop of my own. Feeling a little energetic from the idea, I start to pull out all my accessories from the drawer when my eyes fall on a photo frame. Bright blue sky, palm trees and sand fill the background before which stands a couple smiling at me. The ladyโs cheeks are pink, and the shine in her eyes is unavoidable as her man has his arm wrapped around her waist. โHaha! You canโt catch me!โ I scream as I run across the sand, the warmth of the sun on my skin, and the cool breeze tangling my hair. Elijah has a challenging look on his face as he chases me, but thereโs a subtle smile on his handsome sun-kissed face. Before I know it, his strong arms grab me from behind, โLooks like I won,โ I gasp as he gently lifts me off my feet, my heart fluttering in my chest. With a playful smile, he swings me around. Our laughter mixes and rings in the air, the world fading away as we get lost into the moment. My hand trembles as I run my palm over the picture in the photo frame. Those were some of our best moments, filled with joy and sweetness. Our relationship wasnโt one of love, but he was slowly warming up to me. "Oh, looks like there is a thief in here," Nixie's voice startles me as I find her standing inside the room. "How dare you try to steal my things?" she accuses me with her arms crossed. I look at the clothes that I am holding. "These are my things." She scoffs, "No more. Whatever you had before, it all belongs to me now. Including Elijah." Her words cut deep, and she smiles in satisfaction, enjoying the effect her words have on me. Her eyes lower to my hand, zeroing in on the ring I am wearing. I look at the diamond ring. It's a very special ring to me as Elijah gifted it to me on my birthday. "This ring will protect you from everything and my heart is in it. I give it to you," He said when he slid it onto my index finger. It's a rare diamond that can't be bought with money. "Hand over that ring right now," Nixie says, her eyes beaming with greed. I take a step back, holding my hand. "No." This ring means a lot to me. Even if I am separated from Elijah, I still want to keep a part of him with me forever. โI wonโt say it again. Give it to me; it's my order! Your Lunaโs order,โ she shouts. โYou'll never be my Luna. And I'm not giving this to you,โ I reply confidently. โHow dare you!โ she grabs my wrist forcefully, and I yelp as a sharp pain shoots through my finger to my spine as she pulls the ring out of me forcefully. โGive it to me or Iโll cut your fingers off, you useless lowly beast!โ she yells. Instinctively, I push her away with my other hand, and she stumbles back onto someoneโs chest. My eyes go round when I see Elijah holding her from behind. His eyes are as cold as the Arctic, freezing me in my spot. โWhat is happening here?โ โE-elijah,โ Nixie starts crying, and wraps her arms around his neck, โIโโ she sniffs, โI was only asking her how costly the ring is and she pushed me away.โ She sobs like a baby. โThatโs not true. She was trying to take the ring from me!โ I protest. โSo what if she did?โ he asks, his face like a carved stone with no emotions. I stare at him, trying to process what he said for a moment. โI told her that she can have the ring when she asked me about it.โ My eyes widen in disbelief, unblinking as they stare at him. Time stands still. I canโt believe what he is saying. โHand over the ring to her, Rena,โ he demands in a frosty voice. My feet feel glued to the floor. Nixieโs lips curl in a smile as she watches me in despair. The room closes around me, suffocating me with the weight of its shattered expectations. My lips curve upwards, a smile tugging at the corners of my mouth. It's devoid of any joy and is a mask to hide the emptiness within. Why did I even hope that heโll care for me? Stupid, stupid me. I walk towards them and pull out the ring from my finger. โHere, take it,โ I say while the smile remains intact. โYou can have everything else here too. I donโt want it anymore.โ It's exhausting to keep hoping that things will change, that heโll take me back. Those are my last words, and I walk out of the room, accepting my defeat. Nixie wins, I lose. Suddenly, I feel a hand grab my wrist from behind and hear Elijahโs voice, โRena.โ I freeze. His voice is so gentle. My heart pounds in my chest, and I look past my shoulder to meet his black eyes. โThe rejection ceremony is going to start soon. Iโll wait for you at the training grounds.โ Chapter 8 : The Rejection Verena I smile, while my heart breaks in pain. He is so good at crushing my heart, like it's an object. โI will be there in time.โ Saying that, I pull my hand away from him, engraving his touch for the last time in my head. A while later, I look at my reflection in the mirror. Dark eye bags hang under my green eyes, like someone has sucked the soul out of me. Only half an hour left before the ceremony begins, and after that, I will be separated from Elijah completely. I have mentally prepared myself for it, but physically, I am in a mess. Nixie took all my clothes and accessories, even the ones I bought myself. I am not that interested in fashion, so most of my clothes and jewelry were gifted by Elijah. So now, I have nothing to wear except this dress that I have on. My hands tremble a little in concern. Without anything, it will be hard for me to survive. But then I remind myself that I will be a mother soon. Stress is not good for the baby. I rub my belly, โMamma promises to be strong from now on. You hang in there, pup.โ I will need to dip into some of my savings to purchase new clothes and other necessities. But first, I must find a good hotel to stay in. My thoughts are interrupted by the loud sound of footsteps, and my face sours when I see Nixie walk in through the door, looking very chirpy. Now, what does she want? "Why are you here?" I ask in frustration, deciding not to turn around and act as though I am busy. Searching for hotels will be a better use of my time. I feel her close in, and she waves her hand before my face from behind. My gaze falls on the diamond ring on her finger, the ring I thought Elijah had gifted me as a sign of his love. My heart crumbles at the sight of it. "It suits me more than you, doesn't it? Elijah said that it looks better on me," she giggles, adding salt to my wound. I intentionally stay silent and focus on scrolling through a site that shows the various hotels available with their ratings and reviews. "Hello? I am talking to you!" she waves her hand again, clearly annoyed by not receiving her expected response. I refuse to give her the satisfaction of seeing me in pain, so I continue to avoid her. There's a groan from behind before she slaps my phone away, causing it to hit the hard, hardwood floor. I gasp at its state and immediately pick it up. The screen has cracked. "Now, that's a proper reaction," she says, smirking. Clenching my jaw, I face her. "Whatโs your problem, you mad woman?! I have divorced Elijah, and we are rejecting each other. That should be more than enough for you!" She sneers at me. "Don't act like you're doing me a favor. Actually, I'll do you a favor. Once you're rejected, I'll make sure you get banished after that." My face drains of all colors. Banishment? No! If I'm banished, I'll become a rogue with nowhere to live and no means to survive. That's assuming I don't get hurt by the dangerous creatures outside the borders or get captured by rogue traffickers who might sell me to some nasty, old Alpha as a slave first. I can't let my child be born in those circumstances. "Why? I'll leave this packhouse after rejection, so I won't be a threat to you anymore," I protest. She scowls. "Of course you are. I don't know what Elijah saw in you, but he seems to still care about you. He was telling me to return your clothes since he gave them to you," she rolls her eyes, "And he won't allow me to turn you into a slave for this packhouse either. So it means you're a threat to my position." I gulp, feeling a little relieved knowing that Elijah said that. But it's quickly replaced by Nixie's warning. "Be prepared to be kicked out. See you in the training grounds," she waves her hand and walks away humming a tune. My legs give out, and I collapse to the floor. My fingers curl around the bedsheet for support as I try to calm the crumbling anxiety inside me. What do I do now? I can't become a rogue. Dory walks in, her eyes falling on me. "Luna, are you okay?" she rushes up to me and helps me stand. She touches my forehead. "You're burning up. Did something happen?" I shake my head. "I'm fine. Is it time?" Her face falls, and she nods once. Taking a deep breath, I gather some courage. "Alright, let's go." Chapter 9 : Rejection I have to fight this. If Nixie wins, my pup will be in danger. I won't let that happen. We walk down the stairs and step outside. The sky is filled with gray clouds. On the large training grounds where the air usually buzzes with excitement and the energy of warriors, there's a damp, silent atmosphere among the people who came to watch the ceremony. None of them seem sad to watch me get rejected. They've never wanted me as their Luna because I'm an orphan. I take my place in the center of the ground. The people on the left clear a path for Elijah to walk through by standing in two rows, and he stops before the space created for the ceremony. Our eyes meet for a few seconds before he turns to the crowd. โI wonโt waste time on explaining whatโs happening here as most of you present are already aware. But know that I wonโt tolerate anyone breaking the rules. If anyone dares to say a bad word to Verena or insults her in any way, I will have your head. Rejected or not, she is still a respected member of our family and this pack. So you all are expected to treat her fairly. Is that clear?โ The people nod in unison, fearing Elijahโs wrath. A part of me is glad that he is rejecting me in a respectful manner. It would have hurt a lot more if he just allowed anyone to publicly berate me, especially when I go through the rejection. Elijah walks closer to me, and looks into my eyes. I feel his breathing was a little erratic and his face didn't look quite right.. Is he drunk? "I, Elijah Donovan, Alpha of the Iron Claw Pack, reject you, Verena, as my fated mate and my Luna," he declares. I close my eyes, attempting to block out the pain threatening to consume me. But even in the darkness behind my eyelids, I feel the strength of the rejection, as it threatens to tear my body apart. The pain rattles through my bones, clogging my nostrils and leaving me breathless. Elijah extends his arm to help me, but I take a step back. I will endure this pain alone. "I, Verena, current Luna of the Iron Claw Pack, accept your rejection, Alpha Elijah," I declare. My legs wobble beneath my dress as the ache in my chest intensifies. I feel a strong convulsion in my belly, causing me to lose my balance and drop to the ground, clutching my stomach. My baby! "Rena, are you alright?" Elijah inquires, but I know better than to believe that he actually cares for me. Gradually, the pain subsides, and I feel the herbs taking action to protect my baby from the effects of the rejection. "I am fine," I manage to say, wiping my tear-soaked face. "You accepted it," he mutters under his breath. Was he not expecting it? I donโt even understand him at this point. My limbs feel weak, so I remain in my place, trying to prevent myself from passing out. Just as I begin to feel like I have regained some control over my body, a strong scent hits my nose. It smells like lemons and grass, reminiscent of summer. I glance in the direction from which it's coming and spot a man walking into the crowd, looking around anxiously. Heโs as tall as Elijah, broad and well-built, with spiky light-blond hair, deep blue eyes, and a tattoo running down his left arm. His aura is powerful, like that of an Alpha. The moment his eyes land on me, he growls ferociously, his wolf showing in his eyes, "Mine!" | LEARN_MORE | https://wwwedb.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=16560&u | New world publications | https://www.facebook.com/100090352943774/ | 3,781 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn More | 0 | wwwedb.com | DCO | https://wwwedb.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=16560&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}}&placement={{placement}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-2.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/470211616_1089749272699128_268792006170706946_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60_tt6&_nc_cat=100&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=dxuQQCAXqygQ7kNvgHQLK_Q&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-2.xx&_nc_gid=AMaFzaCKiDlLSkjSgUamEk9&oh=00_AYBGQpZ9elAmRM3XGfXMozbYQWnMGgW_PVEeTzO5TVKqog&oe=677A581C | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | New world publications | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,656,932 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2656930}' |
Yes | 2024-12-31 18:39 | active | 2174 | 0 |
|
COMPRA TUS BOLETOS | ๐ฃMISSION, TEXAS๐ฃ PORQUE USTEDES LO PIDIERON: Regreso el JUE/9 DE ENERO ๐ en el LADA 52 con mi show ''Prohibido No Reรญr'' ๐ ๐คฃ๐ Vayan a divertirse un rato, se van a reir de principio a fin! ๐๏ธBoletos ya a la venta por TICKETON! | SHOP_NOW | https://ticketon.com/events/rogelio-ramos-en-tx-mi | Rogelio Ramos Show | https://www.facebook.com/RogelioRamosShow/ | 1,750,079 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Shop Now | 0 | ticketon.com | DCO | {{product.description}} | https://ticketon.com/events/rogelio-ramos-en-tx-mission-tx-2025-01-09-uw50dkswxfk0?code=A6otNx | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-2.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/472016175_9033989390014419_8984823153620843106_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60_tt6&_nc_cat=103&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=yjj2G4pwZlEQ7kNvgEYJ4UQ&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-2.xx&_nc_gid=AG44x0evIOYOBUeMR3dRgeH&oh=00_AYAwGa0QwAtaqWVkpbh5OmlvbHapAznKBaTv67zchDWLuQ&oe=677A70DD | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Rogelio Ramos Show | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | |||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,656,863 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
null |
Yes | 2024-12-31 18:39 | active | 2174 | 0 | Read next chapter๐ | As the real heiress returns, onlookers mock at how the fake heiress will end. She, however, comes back as the daughter of a top billionaire, taking on the role of a judge in the real heiress competition, terminating her foster parents'contract, backed by business tycoons, and stunning everyone! ===== "Madisyn, for years, we've raised you, never imagining you capable of such cruelty. This house can no longer bear your presence. You must leave immediately." Declared the imposing woman before Madisyn Chapman, her gaze laden with disdain and a bitter chill, her elegant attire contrasting sharply with the harshness of her words. "Mom, please, it was an accident. I lost my footing and tumbled down the stairs on my own. Madisyn had no part in this," said a young girl from her seat on the sofa. Just half an hour prior, Jenna Chapman, the biological daughter of the Chapmans, had suffered a fall on the staircase. At that time, Madisyn had been alone on the upper floor. Everyone believed Madisyn had pushed Jenna... Now, the looks that the Chapmans shot at Madisyn were filled with venom and disgust, a stark contrast to their attitude just a week prior, when they had professed their reluctance to ever part with her. Madisyn looked down at the floor, a fleeting shadow of irony passing through her eyes. Once, Madisyn was the sole daughter of the Chapmans. Though she never basked in parental favoritism, she lacked for nothing, her basic needs always met. The facade shattered when Jeffry Chapman, whom she had known as her father, met with a grave accident necessitating an urgent bl**d transfusion. The subsequent tests unveiled a startling truth--Madisyn was not his biological child. Jeffry then harnessed his extensive network to uncover the whereabouts of his true daughter, Jenna. The Chapman family was a prestigious household in Gemond, and news like this naturally spread quickly. To manage the public narrative and preserve their esteemed reputation, they declared an unwavering commitment to Madisyn, the girl they had raised, asserting their intention to treat her as their own for a while longer before she returned to her biological family. Behind closed doors, however, their plans were starkly different. They wanted to quickly send Madisyn away at once. Upon Jenna's arrival, the Chapman family blamed Madisyn for Jenna's years of hardship, relegating Madisyn from her room to a mere storage space, diminishing her status drastically. She was tasked with menial chores, her status far beneath even those of the household servants. Jenna, however, still wanted Madisyn gone. She had crafted several schemes against Madisyn, yet her parents turned a blind eye, their disdain for Madisyn thinly veiled. These tribulations stripped away any illusions Madisyn had about her former family, fueling a resolve to confront the injustices imposed upon her. As the tensions reached a boiling point, she faced Jenna, her voice resolute as she said, "I'll leave, but not before setting the record straight, Jenna!" Jenna's composure wavered under the intensity of Madisyn's icy stare, her body trembling slightly. Was this the same Madisyn who had once submitted quietly to every slight? A dark glint flickered in Jenna's eyes. She was the rightful heiress to the Chapman family assets, not this usurper, Madisyn, who had been living in luxury undeserved. She had to drive this impostor out! "Madisyn, I have no idea what you're going on about!" Jenna's voice dripped with feigned confusion. "Ever since I reclaimed my rightful place, receiving the affection rightfully owed to me by our parents, I've sensed your discontent. Despite your actions, I've remained tolerant. But my legs... how could you? Dancing is my soul's expression. Had I known you coveted the national competition spot so desperately, I would not have contested it." Her insinuation was clear: Madisyn had sabotaged her out of it. The gaze of Jenna's mother, Phyllis Chapman, hardened at Jenna's words, her voice laced with disdain. "Jenna, you possesses a remarkable talent that Madisyn could never hope to match. That competition spot was yours by right. And you, Madisyn!" She turned sharply towards Madisyn, adding, "Pack your belongings and leave immediately!" Madisyn's usually somber expression seemed only to fuel her contempt. Meanwhile, Jenna, ever the docile and talented daughter, shone brightly in her eyes--a true Chapman. Amidst the unfolding drama, Jeffry finally broke his silence, his voice heavy with disappointment. "Madisyn, our agreement was to keep you until the public scrutiny waned, yet here we are, facing your deep-seated resentment towards Jenna. We have no choice but to return you to your true family today." Jenna's eyes glittered with a triumphant gleam as her father pronounced Madisyn's imminent departure. In stark contrast, Madisyn's face remained an unreadable mask as she went up the stairs to gather her possessions. Her prolonged stay on the upper floor kindled a flicker of anxiety in Jenna. "What if she attempts to take everything with her?" After all, everything of value in the house rightfully belonged to her--how could she allow a fake to leave with any part of her wealth? Eventually, Madisyn reappeared, descending the staircase slowly, her movements deliberate. She carried a small, unassuming black bag. As her gaze swept coolly across the living room, it unsettled Jeffry enough for him to divert his eyes. Phyllis's eyebrows knitted together at the sight of Madisyn's minimal luggage. "Is that all you've packed? What's in there? Show me," she demanded, suspicion lacing her tone. Jeffry, however, raised a hand to halt his wife's interrogation. "Let her be." It was probably just the bank card he gave her, which had a mere hundred thousand dollars left on it. Unfazed, Madisyn placed her bag squarely on the table, her expression stoic. "Inspect it if you must." Phyllis, unable to mask her distrust, scoffed. "Maybe she has packed something valuable," she muttered as she unzipped the bag. Peering inside, she found nothing more than a notebook, a few seeds, and a small stack of cash--hardly the valuables she had feared. Phyllis, her face flushed with embarrassment from her baseless accusation, straightened up. "I'll let the driver take you there," she said crisply. Jeffry, the weight of the situation bearing down on him, reached into his pocket and pulled out a card. "Madisyn, when you return, listen to your parents. They're farmers, yes... but they are good, simple people. You should help them." Madisyn looked at the offered card with her beautiful eyes, her expression calm. "Everyone has their own destiny to fulfill," she replied quietly, pushing the card back towards Jeffry. "But before I leave, there needs to be clarity. Jenna, how did you truly fall down those stairs? This is your last chance to tell the truth." Jenna seethed internally, infuriated by Madisyn's serene composure, which seemed to elevate her above everyone else despite her humble origins. Madisyn was not from a wealthy family! She was just two farmers' daughter! "Madisyn, what are you implying? That I threw myself down the stairs?" Jenna retorted. "My legs are my life; they are essential for my dancing. Why would I ever get them injured?" As she spoke, Jenna's emotions crescendoed, and she dissolved into theatrical tears, collapsing into Phyllis's arms. Suddenly, Jennainstinctively leaped to her feet because of a shattered vase. Silence enveloped the room as everyone, including Phyllis and Jeffry, turned their shocked gazes towards her. Jenna's sudden agility was startling--didn't she say she couldn't stand up because of her injuries? &9& | LEARN_MORE | https://fbweb.moboreader.net/60743322-fb_contact-e | Hello reading-K | https://www.facebook.com/61569719435565/ | 48 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn more | 0 | fbweb.moboreader.net | VIDEO | https://fbweb.moboreader.net/60743322-fb_contact-enp65_2-c2-0827-core2.html?adid={{ad.id}}&char=124213&accid=1983022462166766&rawadid=120214047077220250 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-1.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/469095123_2118491501900205_153239335510083297_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60_tt6&_nc_cat=110&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=Lt2HrXPKhXMQ7kNvgGz0631&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-1.xx&_nc_gid=AkljogfFwOJTYottsJURDvQ&oh=00_AYBHnqAeAd08ihil_vNG2Tbj46Y50ciz0YcmBbuj-w3CsA&oe=677A79D4 | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Hello reading-K | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | |||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,656,563 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2656411}' |
Yes | 2024-12-31 18:39 | active | 2174 | 0 |
|
He drunkenly hugged her โCall me husband again ......โ | ๐Nyla Jayston was in her third month of trying to conceive when she saw a message on her husband Clark Sumner's phone from a contact named "Jordyn Cheatham". Jordyn: [I think my new nightgown is a bit tight. Why don't you come over and check if it fits?] Attached was a selfie of a woman in a deep V-neck red slip dress, her body partly exposed, exuding seduction. Nyla's grip on the phone tightened. She scrolled up and found Clark and Jordyn's previous exchanges to be strictly work-related, which made her frown. 'Was the text sent by mistake? Orโฆ' A hand wrapped around Nyla's waist from behind, breaking her thoughts. Clark pressed his warm body against hers and gently nibbled her earlobe. "Honey, I'm all cleaned up. Do you want to do it on the couch or the bed?" Before Nyla could respond, Clark picked her up and laid her on the couch, his tall frame looming over her. "Since you're not saying anything, I'll choose. Let's do it on the couch," Clark said, his voice husky and his eyes filled with a flicker of fire that made Nyla blush instantly. Nyla was already beautiful, and the slight flush on her cheeks made her look like a tempting, ripe, juicy peach under the light. Clark's gaze grew darker. He leaned in to kiss Nyla, but she suddenly turned her head away. Sensing her resistance, he looked at her with confusion. "Honey, what's wrong?" Clark, usually assertive at work, now looked at Nyla with a mix of confusion and hurt, which softened her heart momentarily. Despite that, she hadn't forgotten the explicit selfie she had just seen. She stopped him with one hand on his chest and held up his phone with the other, showing him the screen. "Explain this first." Clark glanced at the screen and immediately frowned, grabbing the phone to make a call. It was quickly answered. "Mr. Sumner, what can I do for you?" Clark glowered, and his voice turned icy. "I didnโt know my secretary started soliciting clients." There was a moment of silence before Jordyn's panicked voice came through. "M-Mr. Sumner, I'm sorry. That message was meant for my boyfriend. I must have sent it to you by mistake..." "Next time it happens, pack your things and leave!" Clark hung up and looked back at Nyla, his expression softening, even showing a hint of grievance. "Honey, she sent it by mistake. If you're still upset, I'll fire her tomorrow. It's late now, so letโs not waste time on someone unworthy. We haven't seen each other in a week. You need to make it up to me tonight." Clark pulled Nyla in for a kiss, but her mood was ruined despite the issue being cleared up. She wasn't in the mood anymore and pushed him away. "I'm tired tonight. Let's continue tomorrow." A flash of disappointment crossed Clark's eyes, but he didn't pressure her. "Alright, you sleep first. I'm not tired yet, so I'll go to the study to handle some work." "Okay." โฆ It started raining heavily in the middle of the night. The sound woke Nyla, and she reached out only to feel the cold space beside her. She glanced at the clockโ3:16 a.m. Nyla wondered whether Clark was still working. She got up, put on a robe, and went to the study, but it was dark and empty. Her grip on the doorknob tightened, and her heart sank. Nylaโs phone suddenly chimed, startling her in the quiet night. Seeing that it was a text from a stranger, she had a gut feeling that reading it would mean no turning back for her and Clark. A thunderclap boomed outside, startling her into accidentally pressing it. [Still awake? Because your husband isn't with you?] [I was scared because of the thunder and power outage, and he came to comfort me.] [Don't you want to know where your husband is?] As Nyla read the messages and the boastful tone, her hands trembled uncontrollably. After a long while, another text came in with an address and a series of digits. Nyla bit her lip, grabbed her car keys, and drove straight there. By the time she reached the villa, it was past 4:00 a.m. She entered the code, and the door unlocked. The living room lights were on. From the entrance to the bedroom door, a man's suit and a woman's lingerie were strewn about, revealing the urgency of their actions. Seeing the torn red nightgown at the bedroom door, Nyla felt a sense of absurdity. Although the distance from the entrance to the bedroom was only a few meters, it felt like an eternity to Nyla. Standing at the bedroom door, she felt light-headed and dizzy. She reached out, trembling, and slowly pushed the slightly open door. The sight of the messy bed and the bared couple entwinedโtheir heavy breathing filling the roomโpierced Nyla's heart. The couple was so engrossed that they didn't notice her standing there. Nyla's hand on the door frame turned white from gripping it too hard, leaving red marks on her palm. She had been with Clark for eight years, from school days to marriage, envied by everyone around them. Until today, she had never imagined betrayal between them. Now, reality dealt her a cruel blow. Even the most sincere wedding vows couldn't withstand a fickle heart. Unable to bear the sight, Nyla turned and stumbled out, driving away. She stopped by a bar on the way and decided to go in. โฆ By the time Valarie Weir arrived, Nyla had already downed two bottles of whiskey, her gaze slightly unfocused. "Valarie, you're here..." Seeing Nyla surrounded by several men, Valarie frowned. "All of you, leave!" "No, they're fine hereโ" "I said, leave!" After driving the men away, Valarie sat next to Nyla. "What happened? Did Clark really cheat on you?" Valarie was Nyla's university roommate and had witnessed Nyla and Clarkโs journey from school to marriage. She had seen Clark treat Nyla well all these years, so she couldn't believe he would cheat. Upon hearing Clarkโs name, Nyla's gaze dimmed, and the heart-wrenching pain came rushing back. "I don't want to hear that name right now." Chapter 2 Nyla downed her drink in one gulp. She had never imagined Clark would betray her. Seeing him in bed with another woman felt like a dagger through her heart. "I just can't believe it. He loved you so much. He didn't seem like the type to cheat. Maybe there's a misunderstanding," Valarie suggested. Nyla let out a cold laugh. "I saw it with my own eyes. How could that be a misunderstanding?" The room fell silent. Watching Nyla drink like there was no tomorrow, Valarie grabbed the glass from her hand. "Even if he cheated, you shouldn't punish yourself by getting drunk. What are you going to do now?" "I'm getting a divorce. Just thinking about him with that woman makes me sick." Upon seeing the defiance in Nylaโs red eyes, Valarie's heart ached. "Don't think about it now. You need to rest. Decide what to do next once youโre calm. I'll take you home." Nyla shook her head. "No... I don't want to go back." Returning to that house would only bring back the sickening images of Clarkโs betrayal. Each recollection made her feel nauseous. Seeing Nylaโs reluctance, Valarie didn't insist. "I'll book you a hotel room then." โฆ After booking a room, Valarie took Nyla to the hotel entrance. "Are you sure you don't want me to take you up?" Nyla shook her head. "No, you go rest. I'll be fine." She waved with the room card and walked into the hotel. Seeing Nyla walk steadily, Valarie finally breathed a sigh of relief and drove away once Nyla was inside the hotel. What she didn't know was that Nyla, when drunk, appeared sober but was actually a mess inside. Nyla entered the elevator, scanned her card, and the elevator began to ascend. Soon, the doors opened with a ding. As Nyla stepped out onto the carpet, her legs almost gave out. She steadied herself against the wall, massaging her aching temples while searching for her room number. The wine was taking its toll, and her vision blurred. She found Room 8919 and tried the card on the door. Hearing no beep, she frowned and was about to push the door when it suddenly opened. Nyla froze. Before she could react, a large hand yanked her into the dark room. The door slammed shut, cutting off the light from the hallway. She was pressed against the door, a man's breath hot against her ear, making her shiver. The familiar scent of pine filled her senses, but before she could place it, she felt the warmth of his lips on hers. "Mmph!" Realizing what was happening, Nyla struggled. Damon was strong, and with the wine dulling her strength, her hands felt weak, almost inviting as she pushed against his chest. Damonโs hands roamed her body, leaving a trail of fire, and her body grew more responsive under his touch. Nyla tried to push him away, but he easily caught her wrists and pinned them above her head. "Letโ Mmph! Let me goโฆ" He stopped kissing her and chuckled. "No need to play hard to get." His fingers traced her collar, the cool touch making her shudder. His body heat seemed to melt her, and her legs grew weak. In the dark, Nylaโs senses heightened. She felt Damon unbuttoning her clothes, her mouth dry, her last bit of rationality warning her that this was going too far. "Let me go!" She mustered all her strength to push him, but he simply picked her up and threw her onto the bed. The bed was soft, so Nyla didnโt feel pain, but the impact made her head spin. She tried to get up, but Damon pinned her down. Soon, her clothes were gone, and they were both nearly bared. He pressed against her, ready. His dominating presence made her tremble. She pushed against his chest, biting her lip to stay calm and clear-headed. "Mister, I think I entered the wrong room. Please let me goโฆ" Nylaโs voice shook with tension. "Tsk!" Damon's voice was impatient, his tone cold. "Still playing?" He was about to get up and kick Nyla out when the room light suddenly came on. Nyla had accidentally hit the light switch in her struggle. The sudden light made Damon squint. He was shocked when he saw the terrified woman beneath him. Nyla, recognizing Damon, felt the blood drain from her face. The fear sobered her instantly. She couldnโt believe itโthe man who almost violated her was Clarkโs uncle, Damon Summer! "Uncle Damonโฆ" Nyla had always been wary of Damon. He was the youngest son of Richard Sumner and Marie Thorne, doted on by them and known for his unpredictable, cold nature. Even outsiders avoided crossing him. When she married Clark, he had warned her to steer clear of Damon. "Shut up!" Damon's face was dark, his gaze icy, as he contemplated whether to silence her for good. Then, his eyes shifted to her bare body, darkening further. He turned away, getting off the bed. "Get dressed and get out!" As Damon moved, Nyla caught a glimpse of him where she shouldn't, and her face turned red with embarrassment. Upon seeing her flushed face, Damon's expression soured even more. "Still not leaving?" Nyla could not care less about her embarrassment as she hastily dressed and left without looking back. Once outside, she checked the room number and realized her mistakeโit wasnโt Room 8919, but Room 8916! She had entered the wrong room and almost slept with her husbandโs uncle. The thought made her headache worse. She should have let Valarie take her up. Unfortunately, it was too late for regrets now. After Nyla left, Damon dialed a number with a glower on his face. "Delete all surveillance footage from the Empire Skyview Hotel tonight!" Upon hanging up, he looked at the messy bed and sheets, his irritation growing. He had almost slept with his nephewโs wife... What a mess! Chapter 3 On Nyla's way back, she hesitated for a long time before finally messaging Damon, someone whose contact she had had for three years but had never contacted. Nyla: [Uncle Damon... Can we pretend tonight never happened? I was really drunk and went to the wrong room.] She waited for a long time, but there was no response from Damon. Frowning, she sent another message. Nyla: [?] As soon as she sent it, a red exclamation mark appeared: [You are no longer friends with this user. Please send a friend request to continue chatting.] Nyla bit her lip. Damon had deleted her. He must not want to bring this up again. Relieved, she finally felt a bit of peace. โฆ When Nyla got home, it was already past 6:00 a.m. As soon as she opened the door, she saw Clark sitting on the sofa. He turned sharply at the sound of the door, his eyes bloodshot from a sleepless night. "Where were you last night? I called you dozens of times. Why didnโt you answer?" Clark stood up and walked quickly toward her, reaching out to grab her hand, but she pulled away. He froze, about to speak, but she spoke first, her tone icy. "You can stay out all night, but I can't?" Nyla had always been gentle. In their eight years together, they had hardly ever argued. This was the first time she had spoken to him so coldly. Clark sensed something was wrong and noticed her red, swollen eyes. His expression changed, and his hand clenched at his side. "You know, don't you?" His voice was calm, without a trace of guilt or panic, as if he had expected this day to come. Upon seeing his unapologetic demeanor, Nyla's long-suppressed emotions finally exploded. She swung her bag at him, her eyes red with fury, like a madwoman. All the good times they had shared, all the happy moments, were shattered the moment she saw him in bed with another woman. They could never be pieced together again. "Clark Sumner, how could you do something so disgusting?! If you didnโt love me anymore, you could have divorced me. Why did you have to hurt me like this?" Nyla had assumed that no third party could ever come between them. Unfortunately, reality gave her a harsh slap, waking her from the lies he had woven and turning her love for him into a joke. Seeing her red, tear-filled eyes, Clark felt a pang in his chest. He grabbed her hand and pulled her into his arms. "Nyla, Iโm sorry..." Nyla shoved him away, wanting to laugh but only tears came. "Donโt touch me with your filthy hands! "Is it that hard to stay faithful? "Since we got married, Iโve met many excellent men, and some have shown interest in me. But Iโve never crossed the line. If I can do it, why canโt you?!" Clark clenched his fists when he saw the disappointment and anger in her eyes. "Nyla, youโre the only one I loveโฆ It was just an accident with herโฆ" His explanation sounded so weak that Nyla found it both laughable and nauseating. "So youโre saying I could sleep with another man and then tell you it was an accident? That I may have betrayed you physically, but my heart still belongs to you?" A flash of ruthlessness crossed Clark's eyes. "If you dare, Iโll end you and that man together in bed." Seeing his icy gaze, Nyla felt a chill in her heart. If he knew betrayal was unforgivable, why would he still betray her? She took a deep breath and spoke slowly. "Do you remember what I told you when you proposed?" She had said that if he ever betrayed her, she would not forgive him but leave him. Clarkโs expression changed. "I will not let you leave!" Nyla wiped her tears, her expression a mixture of ridicule and hatred. "Whether you agree or not, Iโve made up my mind. Iโm divorcing you. You donโt deserve my forgiveness." With that, she ignored his reaction and went upstairs. Clark stared at her back, his gaze dark. โฆ Back in the bedroom, Nyla went straight to the bathroom to shower, unable to stand the smell of wine on herself. While applying body wash, she noticed red marks on her chest and paused. The image of Damonโs hands roaming her body flashed through her mind, making her frown. She scrubbed the marks hard until the skin around them turned red, trying to erase his touch. After her shower, she saw Clark sitting on the bed with his head down, lost in thought. She frowned and decided to ignore him. They would be divorced soon anyway. Clark looked up and saw Nyla coming out in just a towel. Her damp hair dripped water, her freshly washed face flushed like a blooming rose with an enticing fragrance. The towel barely covered her behinds, revealing her long, fair legs. His breath hitched, his gaze glued on her. Nyla didnโt notice Clark's reaction. She walked to the wardrobe to grab her pajamas when a pair of arms suddenly wrapped around her from behind. "Nyla..." Clark's voice was husky, filled with undisguised desire. Clark had been thinking about how to win her back downstairs after she left. The only way he could think of was to have a child with her. He had come upstairs to discuss this with her, planning to take it slow. However, he lost control upon seeing her just out of the shower. In the past, such behavior would have stirred Nyla's feelings, but all she felt now was disgust. She turned and pushed him away, her gaze full of revulsion. "Donโt touch me. I feel dirty." Hurt flashed in Clark's eyes. He grabbed her hands, his expression earnest. "Didnโt you always want a child? Letโs have one now, okay?" Nyla shook him off at his matter-of-fact attitude. "That was before. I might have a child in the future, but it wonโt be yours." Her words enraged Clark. He grabbed her and threw her onto the bed, pinning her down. "Say that again!" His eyes were full of anger, but Nyla didnโt care. "It doesnโt matter how many times I say it. Iโm disgusted by you. Iโd rather die than have your child." As soon as she finished speaking, Clark kissed her fiercely. Chapter 4 Nyla froze for a moment, then struggled desperately. Just the thought of Clark kissing another woman the night before filled her with disgust and rage. "Let go!" Her struggles were futile against Clark, who only tightened his grip around her waist. As she fought, her towel loosened, revealing her body. His gaze darkened, and he felt a rush of desire. Their bodies were pressed tightly together, and Nyla quickly noticed the change in Clark. Furious, she bit him hard, tasting blood in their mouths. Instead of letting go, Clark's other hand slipped under Nyla's towel. She had nothing on underneath, having just come out of the shower. She stiffened and struggled even more fiercely. "Clark, get off me!" Clark ignored Nyla, his fingers teasing her sensitive spots. "Nyla, you need me too, don't you?" Nylaโs struggles were in vain, and she grew increasingly desperate. As Clark positioned himself, she closed her eyes in despair. "Clark, don't make me hate you." Clark halted abruptly. Seeing Nyla filled with despair and pain, like a fragile porcelain doll about to shatter, made him pause. He wanted her desperately, but a voice in his head warned that if he took her now, it would be the end of them. He stared at her, his hand tightening around her waist. After several tense seconds, he suddenly let go and got off the bed, leaving the room quickly. The door slammed shut with a loud bang, making Nyla flinch. She clutched the blanket tightly. โฆ For the next few days, Clark didn't come home. Nyla called him several times to discuss the divorce, but he didn't respond. โฆ The weekend arrived. Nyla was in the living room, sending out job applications when she heard the front door open. Clark walked in, looking haggard. They stared at each other in silence until Nyla broke it, closing her laptop and standing up calmly. "Since you're back, let's talk about the divorce." Clark frowned. "I told you, I won't divorce you. I'm here to remind you that we have to go to the family dinner tonight." The Sumners held a monthly dinner, and ever since their wedding, Clark and Nyla had attended together. The family wasn't kind to Nyla, often treating her poorly. She endured it because she believed Clark loved her. After seeing him with another woman, however, she couldn't lie to herself anymore. "I don't want to go. Go by yourself." Clarkโs expression turned impatient. "Nyla, how long are you going to keep this up?" He had ignored her calls and messages, hoping she would calm down, but she was still the same. "I'm not keeping anything up. I just want a divorce." Upon hearing the word "divorce", Clark's patience wore thin. He looked at Nyla as if she were unreasonable. "Divorce? You haven't worked since we got married. How will you support yourself? Which company would hire you? And what about your father's exorbitant medical bills? Can you afford those? "Nyla, you're not a teenager anymore. You're 28. It's time to grow up. "I'm the CEO of the Sumner Group. I face temptations all the time. Sometimes, it's hard to resist, but those women will never take your place as my wife. What more do you want?" Clark couldn't understand why Nyla didn't see that he still loved her, even if he couldn't commit to being with her forever. Seeing Clarkโs arrogant demeanor, Nyla couldn't reconcile this man with the shy boy who had once blushed while confessing his love and promising never to hurt her. Maybe this was his true selfโselfish, proud, and condescending. "If being mature means tolerating your infidelity, then I'm sorry, I can't do that. Find someone else. Here are the divorce papers I've had drafted. Sign them when you have time." Clark glanced at the documents, sneering when he saw the section on asset division. "Quite the appetite you have, asking for half my assets. Do you really think that's possible?" "I deserve it. Why not?" Clark chuckled, his tone mocking. "Look around this house. Did you buy anything here? I've been covering your father's medical expenses for years. If we tally things up, you should be paying me. Should I have my lawyer do the math?" As Nyla watched his bitter expression, she couldn't believe she had once loved this man. He had hidden his true self so well that, until she caught him cheating, she had thought he was a great guy. "Don't forget, if it weren't for me giving you that patent, you wouldn't be the Sumner Group's CEO. And you were the one who told me to stay home after we got married. If I had continued my research, I would have earned far more than what you've given me." Unfazed, Clark replied, "Who would believe you about the patent now? "I don't want to argue about money, but if you insist on a divorce, we'll have to settle accounts. Nyla, as long as you drop the divorce idea, my money is still yours to use." "Clark, you're despicable!" Since he refused to divorce, she'd have to sue. She turned to leave, but he blocked her. "Change your clothes. We're going to the family dinner." "I said I'm not going. Tell them I'm not feeling well." Clark grabbed her wrist. "Nyla, I'm running out of patience. Don't force me to cut off your father's medical expenses." "You wouldn't dare!" Clark took out his phone and called his secretary. "Cancel my father-in-law's medical payment for next monthโ" Furious, Nyla grabbed his phone and ended the call. "You're crossing a line, Clark." "Crossing a line?" Clark's gaze was full of contempt as he yanked her closer. "Everything you have is because of me. Don't you think you're the one crossing the line? Change your clothes, or I have numerous ways to make you comply." Chapter 5 Seeing the coldness in Clark's eyes, Nyla realized how blind she had been to fall in love with such a man. Her eyes stung with unshed tears, but she refused to show any vulnerability in front of him. She yanked her hand away, took a deep breath, and headed upstairs. The only thought in her mind was to find a job quickly so she could move out and divorce Clark. She grabbed a random outfit, tied her hair up with a hairpin, and went back downstairs. She was never one to fuss over her appearance. In the past, she had dressed up for the Sumners' gatherings to make a good impression. Now, she couldn't care less. Hearing her footsteps, Clark looked up. Nyla wore a fitted white dress, her waist so slender it seemed it could be encircled with one hand. Her hair was secured with a jade hairpin, revealing her delicate neck. She was breathtakingly beautiful. The grace she exuded was just like when they first met. However, the look in her eyes now was devoid of any warmth. "Letโs go," she said. They drove to the Sumner residence in silence. As they arrived and were about to get out of the car, a black Range Rover sped up and stopped abruptly in front of them. Upon recognizing the car, Clark's expression darkened. It was Damon's car, someone he both feared and disliked. Damon was known for his reckless and unpredictable behavior. He had refused to take over the Sumner Group when Richard wanted him to run the company, choosing to start his own business instead. Everyone had expected him to fail, but within five years, his company had grown to be worth several times more than the Sumner Group. Clark couldn't stand Damon, partly out of jealousy. Once, a comment Clark made about Damon reached Damon's ears, and in retaliation, Damon refused to collaborate with the Sumner Group, costing them millions. Damon rarely attended family dinners, and Clark had hoped to avoid him. Luck wasnโt on his side todayโthey met at the door. He didnโt notice Nylaโs stiffened expression when she saw Damon get out of his car. Clark opened the car door and greeted, "Uncle Damon." Damon glanced at him indifferently, his gaze briefly landing on the passenger seat before he nodded and walked into the house. Nyla let out a deep breath. When Damon looked her way, she had forgotten to breathe, fearing he might say something outrageous. He was known for his unpredictable nature, always doing whatever he pleased. Fortunately, he said nothing. She decided she needed to talk to him privately later. As Clark and Nyla walked into the living room, they saw it was already filled with people. Richard and Marie, the family heads, were chatting with Damon. He was the kind of person who naturally stood out in a crowd. Noticing Nylaโs gaze on Damon, Clark frowned. "Why are you staring at my uncle?" Nyla withdrew her gaze and replied coolly, "None of your business." Her coldness irritated Clark. "Nyla, you know I donโt like you paying attention to other men." Ever since they got together, Clark had been extremely controlling, not allowing Nyla to interact with other men. She used to think this was a sign of his love, but now it seemed laughable. She sneered. "And I donโt like you sleeping with other women, but you seem to enjoy it just fine." Clark said through gritted teeth, "This is a family dinner. Weโll deal with this later." "If you donโt want me to bring it up, then stay out of my business," she retorted. Clark didnโt want to cause a scene now because it might affect the Sumner Group and his standing with Richard, who still held all the companyโs shares. As they talked, Marie called out, "Nyla, Clark, youโre here! Come sit down!" Nyla took a deep breath, forcing a smile as she approached. She might not like the Sumners, but she maintained basic manners. "Hello, Grandpa, Grandma," she greeted with a smile. Marie, who had been urging Damon to settle down and get married, looked pleased to see the couple. "Come, sit down." She turned to Damon with a hint of dissatisfaction. "Look at Clark. He manages the company well and has a beautiful wife. They might have children soon. And you? Almost 30 and still single. If you donโt bring a girlfriend next time, donโt bother coming!" Damon glanced at the couple with a smirk. "She is indeed beautiful." He just wondered how that petite frame would suffer if she were to have children. Nyla frowned, feeling uncomfortable with Damonโs gaze. Clark also noticed the inappropriate way Damon looked at Nyla. It wasnโt the look of an elder but more like a man admiring a woman. His hand clenched into a fist, and his body tensed. Marie sighed. "My point is, when will you bring me a daughter-in-law?" "Depends. If I meet someone I like, maybe Iโll bring her back tomorrow," Damon replied nonchalantly. "Youโre too picky! Iโve arranged a good match for you. Date's tomorrow, donโt ruin it." "Then youโll probably have to apologize to another old friend tomorrow." Frustrated, Marie snapped, โYouโre going to drive me crazy!โ Damon glanced at Clark. โClark's been married for years. Instead of pushing me, why donโt you encourage him to have kids?โ Marie nodded, realizing Damon wouldnโt listen to her. She turned to Nyla and Clark, her expression softening. โNyla, you and Clark have been married for a few years now. When are you planning to have children?โ Chapter 6 Nyla lifted her head to speak, but Clark grabbed her hand and smiled. "Grandma, we're working on it!" Nyla tried to pull her hand away, but Clark's grip was too tight. If he wouldn't let her be, she wouldn't make it easy for him either. She turned to Marie. "Grandma, I'm looking for a job right now, so having children might have to wait." The room fell silent. Clark's grip on Nyla's hand tightened painfully, and she winced. Damon glanced at Clark's hand on Nyla, noticing the bulging veins, then looked away indifferently. Clarkโs aunt, Anne Sumner, sneered. "Nyla, don't blame me for being blunt. You've been married for years. How can you not have a child yet? If it weren't for Clark insisting on marrying you, do you think your family could have ever married into the Sumners? "You should be grateful. If you don't want to have Clark's child, there are plenty of women who do. If someone else steps in, youโll be the one looking silly." Besides, Anne thought, "Who knows if Nyla is fertile?" She sounded like she meant well, but her gaze at Nyla was filled with an air of superiority. Marie frowned at Anne, disapproving. "Anne, enough." Anne pursed her lips but stayed silent. Marie turned back to Nyla with a kind smile. "Nyla, you and Clark are still young. If you don't want children yet, that's fine. Just don't overwork yourself. Our family isn't short on money. You can work if you want, but take it easy." Nyla nodded. "I understand, Grandma." With that, the awkward moment passed, and the room returned to its previous warmth. Seeing the attention shift away, Clark pulled Nyla out of the living room. Once they reached the gazebo in the backyard, he released her. "Nyla, have you lost your mind? Do you want everyone to know about our fight?" Nyla rubbed her sore hand and said, "I was just being honest." "Honest?" Clark scowled. "Should I call your father then?" Harrison Jayston was ill and couldn't handle stress. Nyla planned to divorce Clark before breaking the news to him gently. She glared at Clark. "You wouldnโt dare! You were the one who cheated. What right do you have to be so self-righteous?" Clark clenched his hands, a flicker of guilt crossing his face before it was replaced by impatience. "I promised it wouldnโt happen again. If you don't want to see Jordyn, I'll fire her. What more do you want?" Nyla felt like there was a communication breakdown between them and turned away. "I don't want to argue with you here." When Clark saw her red-rimmed eyes, he softened. "Nyla, I truly know I was wrong. Just don't mention divorce, and I'll make it up to you. I love you. I can't let you go." Nyla found it laughable. How could he claim to love her while being with another woman? Just thinking about him with someone else made her sick. "I will never forgive you." Betrayal was her bottom line. She couldnโt pretend nothing had happened or reconcile with him. Clark knew Nyla well enough to understand that he had to be patient. He believed she still had feelings for him. Otherwise, she would have made a bigger scene when she found out. As long as he refused to divorce her, she would eventually forgive him. "Fine, we won't talk about it now. If you don't want kids yet, weโll postpone it to two years later. Since you want to work, I'll have my secretary find you a position at the Sumner Group." Nyla laughed at his arrangement, a mocking look in her eyes. "Clark, do you see me as a puppet you can control?" Hurt by her gaze, Clark frowned. "How am I controlling you? You don't want kids now, so I agreed to wait two years. You want to work, so I'll arrange it. What more do you want?" "Stop pretending. I don't want kids because I want a divorce. I want to work to sever ties with you." Clark looked at Nyla's stubborn face, displeased. Since their wedding, she had been like a canary in his cage. He couldn't let her go. "As long as I don't agree, this marriage won't end. Even if you tell a lawyer I cheated, do you have proof?" Clark's confident tone and controlling demeanor made Nyla step back, trembling with anger. She finally saw how selfish and disgusting he was. She had wasted eight yearsโthe best years of her life, from 18 to 26โloving this man. "You make me sick, Clark!" Seeing the undisguised disgust in Nyla's eyes, Clar | LEARN_MORE | https://findedc.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=15692& | Indulge in story | https://www.facebook.com/61552702618591/ | 910 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn More | 0 | findedc.com | DCO | https://findedc.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=15692&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}}&placement={{placement}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-2.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/468455042_1262834138099234_1389968434765802098_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60_tt6&_nc_cat=105&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=iv3KycLhnWIQ7kNvgHh8CH0&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-2.xx&_nc_gid=AhQvCO5pjzQdUbjZgtPHGAI&oh=00_AYDWwb2ZOYN7qP6NAPHTOaZtZbod3fvoM8RhiwNJpRbgKQ&oe=677A5507 | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Indulge in story | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,656,588 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2656411}' |
Yes | 2024-12-31 18:39 | active | 2174 | 0 |
|
He drunkenly hugged her โCall me husband again ......โ | ๐Nyla Jayston was in her third month of trying to conceive when she saw a message on her husband Clark Sumner's phone from a contact named "Jordyn Cheatham". Jordyn: [I think my new nightgown is a bit tight. Why don't you come over and check if it fits?] Attached was a selfie of a woman in a deep V-neck red slip dress, her body partly exposed, exuding seduction. Nyla's grip on the phone tightened. She scrolled up and found Clark and Jordyn's previous exchanges to be strictly work-related, which made her frown. 'Was the text sent by mistake? Orโฆ' A hand wrapped around Nyla's waist from behind, breaking her thoughts. Clark pressed his warm body against hers and gently nibbled her earlobe. "Honey, I'm all cleaned up. Do you want to do it on the couch or the bed?" Before Nyla could respond, Clark picked her up and laid her on the couch, his tall frame looming over her. "Since you're not saying anything, I'll choose. Let's do it on the couch," Clark said, his voice husky and his eyes filled with a flicker of fire that made Nyla blush instantly. Nyla was already beautiful, and the slight flush on her cheeks made her look like a tempting, ripe, juicy peach under the light. Clark's gaze grew darker. He leaned in to kiss Nyla, but she suddenly turned her head away. Sensing her resistance, he looked at her with confusion. "Honey, what's wrong?" Clark, usually assertive at work, now looked at Nyla with a mix of confusion and hurt, which softened her heart momentarily. Despite that, she hadn't forgotten the explicit selfie she had just seen. She stopped him with one hand on his chest and held up his phone with the other, showing him the screen. "Explain this first." Clark glanced at the screen and immediately frowned, grabbing the phone to make a call. It was quickly answered. "Mr. Sumner, what can I do for you?" Clark glowered, and his voice turned icy. "I didnโt know my secretary started soliciting clients." There was a moment of silence before Jordyn's panicked voice came through. "M-Mr. Sumner, I'm sorry. That message was meant for my boyfriend. I must have sent it to you by mistake..." "Next time it happens, pack your things and leave!" Clark hung up and looked back at Nyla, his expression softening, even showing a hint of grievance. "Honey, she sent it by mistake. If you're still upset, I'll fire her tomorrow. It's late now, so letโs not waste time on someone unworthy. We haven't seen each other in a week. You need to make it up to me tonight." Clark pulled Nyla in for a kiss, but her mood was ruined despite the issue being cleared up. She wasn't in the mood anymore and pushed him away. "I'm tired tonight. Let's continue tomorrow." A flash of disappointment crossed Clark's eyes, but he didn't pressure her. "Alright, you sleep first. I'm not tired yet, so I'll go to the study to handle some work." "Okay." โฆ It started raining heavily in the middle of the night. The sound woke Nyla, and she reached out only to feel the cold space beside her. She glanced at the clockโ3:16 a.m. Nyla wondered whether Clark was still working. She got up, put on a robe, and went to the study, but it was dark and empty. Her grip on the doorknob tightened, and her heart sank. Nylaโs phone suddenly chimed, startling her in the quiet night. Seeing that it was a text from a stranger, she had a gut feeling that reading it would mean no turning back for her and Clark. A thunderclap boomed outside, startling her into accidentally pressing it. [Still awake? Because your husband isn't with you?] [I was scared because of the thunder and power outage, and he came to comfort me.] [Don't you want to know where your husband is?] As Nyla read the messages and the boastful tone, her hands trembled uncontrollably. After a long while, another text came in with an address and a series of digits. Nyla bit her lip, grabbed her car keys, and drove straight there. By the time she reached the villa, it was past 4:00 a.m. She entered the code, and the door unlocked. The living room lights were on. From the entrance to the bedroom door, a man's suit and a woman's lingerie were strewn about, revealing the urgency of their actions. Seeing the torn red nightgown at the bedroom door, Nyla felt a sense of absurdity. Although the distance from the entrance to the bedroom was only a few meters, it felt like an eternity to Nyla. Standing at the bedroom door, she felt light-headed and dizzy. She reached out, trembling, and slowly pushed the slightly open door. The sight of the messy bed and the bared couple entwinedโtheir heavy breathing filling the roomโpierced Nyla's heart. The couple was so engrossed that they didn't notice her standing there. Nyla's hand on the door frame turned white from gripping it too hard, leaving red marks on her palm. She had been with Clark for eight years, from school days to marriage, envied by everyone around them. Until today, she had never imagined betrayal between them. Now, reality dealt her a cruel blow. Even the most sincere wedding vows couldn't withstand a fickle heart. Unable to bear the sight, Nyla turned and stumbled out, driving away. She stopped by a bar on the way and decided to go in. โฆ By the time Valarie Weir arrived, Nyla had already downed two bottles of whiskey, her gaze slightly unfocused. "Valarie, you're here..." Seeing Nyla surrounded by several men, Valarie frowned. "All of you, leave!" "No, they're fine hereโ" "I said, leave!" After driving the men away, Valarie sat next to Nyla. "What happened? Did Clark really cheat on you?" Valarie was Nyla's university roommate and had witnessed Nyla and Clarkโs journey from school to marriage. She had seen Clark treat Nyla well all these years, so she couldn't believe he would cheat. Upon hearing Clarkโs name, Nyla's gaze dimmed, and the heart-wrenching pain came rushing back. "I don't want to hear that name right now." Chapter 2 Nyla downed her drink in one gulp. She had never imagined Clark would betray her. Seeing him in bed with another woman felt like a dagger through her heart. "I just can't believe it. He loved you so much. He didn't seem like the type to cheat. Maybe there's a misunderstanding," Valarie suggested. Nyla let out a cold laugh. "I saw it with my own eyes. How could that be a misunderstanding?" The room fell silent. Watching Nyla drink like there was no tomorrow, Valarie grabbed the glass from her hand. "Even if he cheated, you shouldn't punish yourself by getting drunk. What are you going to do now?" "I'm getting a divorce. Just thinking about him with that woman makes me sick." Upon seeing the defiance in Nylaโs red eyes, Valarie's heart ached. "Don't think about it now. You need to rest. Decide what to do next once youโre calm. I'll take you home." Nyla shook her head. "No... I don't want to go back." Returning to that house would only bring back the sickening images of Clarkโs betrayal. Each recollection made her feel nauseous. Seeing Nylaโs reluctance, Valarie didn't insist. "I'll book you a hotel room then." โฆ After booking a room, Valarie took Nyla to the hotel entrance. "Are you sure you don't want me to take you up?" Nyla shook her head. "No, you go rest. I'll be fine." She waved with the room card and walked into the hotel. Seeing Nyla walk steadily, Valarie finally breathed a sigh of relief and drove away once Nyla was inside the hotel. What she didn't know was that Nyla, when drunk, appeared sober but was actually a mess inside. Nyla entered the elevator, scanned her card, and the elevator began to ascend. Soon, the doors opened with a ding. As Nyla stepped out onto the carpet, her legs almost gave out. She steadied herself against the wall, massaging her aching temples while searching for her room number. The wine was taking its toll, and her vision blurred. She found Room 8919 and tried the card on the door. Hearing no beep, she frowned and was about to push the door when it suddenly opened. Nyla froze. Before she could react, a large hand yanked her into the dark room. The door slammed shut, cutting off the light from the hallway. She was pressed against the door, a man's breath hot against her ear, making her shiver. The familiar scent of pine filled her senses, but before she could place it, she felt the warmth of his lips on hers. "Mmph!" Realizing what was happening, Nyla struggled. Damon was strong, and with the wine dulling her strength, her hands felt weak, almost inviting as she pushed against his chest. Damonโs hands roamed her body, leaving a trail of fire, and her body grew more responsive under his touch. Nyla tried to push him away, but he easily caught her wrists and pinned them above her head. "Letโ Mmph! Let me goโฆ" He stopped kissing her and chuckled. "No need to play hard to get." His fingers traced her collar, the cool touch making her shudder. His body heat seemed to melt her, and her legs grew weak. In the dark, Nylaโs senses heightened. She felt Damon unbuttoning her clothes, her mouth dry, her last bit of rationality warning her that this was going too far. "Let me go!" She mustered all her strength to push him, but he simply picked her up and threw her onto the bed. The bed was soft, so Nyla didnโt feel pain, but the impact made her head spin. She tried to get up, but Damon pinned her down. Soon, her clothes were gone, and they were both nearly bared. He pressed against her, ready. His dominating presence made her tremble. She pushed against his chest, biting her lip to stay calm and clear-headed. "Mister, I think I entered the wrong room. Please let me goโฆ" Nylaโs voice shook with tension. "Tsk!" Damon's voice was impatient, his tone cold. "Still playing?" He was about to get up and kick Nyla out when the room light suddenly came on. Nyla had accidentally hit the light switch in her struggle. The sudden light made Damon squint. He was shocked when he saw the terrified woman beneath him. Nyla, recognizing Damon, felt the blood drain from her face. The fear sobered her instantly. She couldnโt believe itโthe man who almost violated her was Clarkโs uncle, Damon Summer! "Uncle Damonโฆ" Nyla had always been wary of Damon. He was the youngest son of Richard Sumner and Marie Thorne, doted on by them and known for his unpredictable, cold nature. Even outsiders avoided crossing him. When she married Clark, he had warned her to steer clear of Damon. "Shut up!" Damon's face was dark, his gaze icy, as he contemplated whether to silence her for good. Then, his eyes shifted to her bare body, darkening further. He turned away, getting off the bed. "Get dressed and get out!" As Damon moved, Nyla caught a glimpse of him where she shouldn't, and her face turned red with embarrassment. Upon seeing her flushed face, Damon's expression soured even more. "Still not leaving?" Nyla could not care less about her embarrassment as she hastily dressed and left without looking back. Once outside, she checked the room number and realized her mistakeโit wasnโt Room 8919, but Room 8916! She had entered the wrong room and almost slept with her husbandโs uncle. The thought made her headache worse. She should have let Valarie take her up. Unfortunately, it was too late for regrets now. After Nyla left, Damon dialed a number with a glower on his face. "Delete all surveillance footage from the Empire Skyview Hotel tonight!" Upon hanging up, he looked at the messy bed and sheets, his irritation growing. He had almost slept with his nephewโs wife... What a mess! Chapter 3 On Nyla's way back, she hesitated for a long time before finally messaging Damon, someone whose contact she had had for three years but had never contacted. Nyla: [Uncle Damon... Can we pretend tonight never happened? I was really drunk and went to the wrong room.] She waited for a long time, but there was no response from Damon. Frowning, she sent another message. Nyla: [?] As soon as she sent it, a red exclamation mark appeared: [You are no longer friends with this user. Please send a friend request to continue chatting.] Nyla bit her lip. Damon had deleted her. He must not want to bring this up again. Relieved, she finally felt a bit of peace. โฆ When Nyla got home, it was already past 6:00 a.m. As soon as she opened the door, she saw Clark sitting on the sofa. He turned sharply at the sound of the door, his eyes bloodshot from a sleepless night. "Where were you last night? I called you dozens of times. Why didnโt you answer?" Clark stood up and walked quickly toward her, reaching out to grab her hand, but she pulled away. He froze, about to speak, but she spoke first, her tone icy. "You can stay out all night, but I can't?" Nyla had always been gentle. In their eight years together, they had hardly ever argued. This was the first time she had spoken to him so coldly. Clark sensed something was wrong and noticed her red, swollen eyes. His expression changed, and his hand clenched at his side. "You know, don't you?" His voice was calm, without a trace of guilt or panic, as if he had expected this day to come. Upon seeing his unapologetic demeanor, Nyla's long-suppressed emotions finally exploded. She swung her bag at him, her eyes red with fury, like a madwoman. All the good times they had shared, all the happy moments, were shattered the moment she saw him in bed with another woman. They could never be pieced together again. "Clark Sumner, how could you do something so disgusting?! If you didnโt love me anymore, you could have divorced me. Why did you have to hurt me like this?" Nyla had assumed that no third party could ever come between them. Unfortunately, reality gave her a harsh slap, waking her from the lies he had woven and turning her love for him into a joke. Seeing her red, tear-filled eyes, Clark felt a pang in his chest. He grabbed her hand and pulled her into his arms. "Nyla, Iโm sorry..." Nyla shoved him away, wanting to laugh but only tears came. "Donโt touch me with your filthy hands! "Is it that hard to stay faithful? "Since we got married, Iโve met many excellent men, and some have shown interest in me. But Iโve never crossed the line. If I can do it, why canโt you?!" Clark clenched his fists when he saw the disappointment and anger in her eyes. "Nyla, youโre the only one I loveโฆ It was just an accident with herโฆ" His explanation sounded so weak that Nyla found it both laughable and nauseating. "So youโre saying I could sleep with another man and then tell you it was an accident? That I may have betrayed you physically, but my heart still belongs to you?" A flash of ruthlessness crossed Clark's eyes. "If you dare, Iโll end you and that man together in bed." Seeing his icy gaze, Nyla felt a chill in her heart. If he knew betrayal was unforgivable, why would he still betray her? She took a deep breath and spoke slowly. "Do you remember what I told you when you proposed?" She had said that if he ever betrayed her, she would not forgive him but leave him. Clarkโs expression changed. "I will not let you leave!" Nyla wiped her tears, her expression a mixture of ridicule and hatred. "Whether you agree or not, Iโve made up my mind. Iโm divorcing you. You donโt deserve my forgiveness." With that, she ignored his reaction and went upstairs. Clark stared at her back, his gaze dark. โฆ Back in the bedroom, Nyla went straight to the bathroom to shower, unable to stand the smell of wine on herself. While applying body wash, she noticed red marks on her chest and paused. The image of Damonโs hands roaming her body flashed through her mind, making her frown. She scrubbed the marks hard until the skin around them turned red, trying to erase his touch. After her shower, she saw Clark sitting on the bed with his head down, lost in thought. She frowned and decided to ignore him. They would be divorced soon anyway. Clark looked up and saw Nyla coming out in just a towel. Her damp hair dripped water, her freshly washed face flushed like a blooming rose with an enticing fragrance. The towel barely covered her behinds, revealing her long, fair legs. His breath hitched, his gaze glued on her. Nyla didnโt notice Clark's reaction. She walked to the wardrobe to grab her pajamas when a pair of arms suddenly wrapped around her from behind. "Nyla..." Clark's voice was husky, filled with undisguised desire. Clark had been thinking about how to win her back downstairs after she left. The only way he could think of was to have a child with her. He had come upstairs to discuss this with her, planning to take it slow. However, he lost control upon seeing her just out of the shower. In the past, such behavior would have stirred Nyla's feelings, but all she felt now was disgust. She turned and pushed him away, her gaze full of revulsion. "Donโt touch me. I feel dirty." Hurt flashed in Clark's eyes. He grabbed her hands, his expression earnest. "Didnโt you always want a child? Letโs have one now, okay?" Nyla shook him off at his matter-of-fact attitude. "That was before. I might have a child in the future, but it wonโt be yours." Her words enraged Clark. He grabbed her and threw her onto the bed, pinning her down. "Say that again!" His eyes were full of anger, but Nyla didnโt care. "It doesnโt matter how many times I say it. Iโm disgusted by you. Iโd rather die than have your child." As soon as she finished speaking, Clark kissed her fiercely. Chapter 4 Nyla froze for a moment, then struggled desperately. Just the thought of Clark kissing another woman the night before filled her with disgust and rage. "Let go!" Her struggles were futile against Clark, who only tightened his grip around her waist. As she fought, her towel loosened, revealing her body. His gaze darkened, and he felt a rush of desire. Their bodies were pressed tightly together, and Nyla quickly noticed the change in Clark. Furious, she bit him hard, tasting blood in their mouths. Instead of letting go, Clark's other hand slipped under Nyla's towel. She had nothing on underneath, having just come out of the shower. She stiffened and struggled even more fiercely. "Clark, get off me!" Clark ignored Nyla, his fingers teasing her sensitive spots. "Nyla, you need me too, don't you?" Nylaโs struggles were in vain, and she grew increasingly desperate. As Clark positioned himself, she closed her eyes in despair. "Clark, don't make me hate you." Clark halted abruptly. Seeing Nyla filled with despair and pain, like a fragile porcelain doll about to shatter, made him pause. He wanted her desperately, but a voice in his head warned that if he took her now, it would be the end of them. He stared at her, his hand tightening around her waist. After several tense seconds, he suddenly let go and got off the bed, leaving the room quickly. The door slammed shut with a loud bang, making Nyla flinch. She clutched the blanket tightly. โฆ For the next few days, Clark didn't come home. Nyla called him several times to discuss the divorce, but he didn't respond. โฆ The weekend arrived. Nyla was in the living room, sending out job applications when she heard the front door open. Clark walked in, looking haggard. They stared at each other in silence until Nyla broke it, closing her laptop and standing up calmly. "Since you're back, let's talk about the divorce." Clark frowned. "I told you, I won't divorce you. I'm here to remind you that we have to go to the family dinner tonight." The Sumners held a monthly dinner, and ever since their wedding, Clark and Nyla had attended together. The family wasn't kind to Nyla, often treating her poorly. She endured it because she believed Clark loved her. After seeing him with another woman, however, she couldn't lie to herself anymore. "I don't want to go. Go by yourself." Clarkโs expression turned impatient. "Nyla, how long are you going to keep this up?" He had ignored her calls and messages, hoping she would calm down, but she was still the same. "I'm not keeping anything up. I just want a divorce." Upon hearing the word "divorce", Clark's patience wore thin. He looked at Nyla as if she were unreasonable. "Divorce? You haven't worked since we got married. How will you support yourself? Which company would hire you? And what about your father's exorbitant medical bills? Can you afford those? "Nyla, you're not a teenager anymore. You're 28. It's time to grow up. "I'm the CEO of the Sumner Group. I face temptations all the time. Sometimes, it's hard to resist, but those women will never take your place as my wife. What more do you want?" Clark couldn't understand why Nyla didn't see that he still loved her, even if he couldn't commit to being with her forever. Seeing Clarkโs arrogant demeanor, Nyla couldn't reconcile this man with the shy boy who had once blushed while confessing his love and promising never to hurt her. Maybe this was his true selfโselfish, proud, and condescending. "If being mature means tolerating your infidelity, then I'm sorry, I can't do that. Find someone else. Here are the divorce papers I've had drafted. Sign them when you have time." Clark glanced at the documents, sneering when he saw the section on asset division. "Quite the appetite you have, asking for half my assets. Do you really think that's possible?" "I deserve it. Why not?" Clark chuckled, his tone mocking. "Look around this house. Did you buy anything here? I've been covering your father's medical expenses for years. If we tally things up, you should be paying me. Should I have my lawyer do the math?" As Nyla watched his bitter expression, she couldn't believe she had once loved this man. He had hidden his true self so well that, until she caught him cheating, she had thought he was a great guy. "Don't forget, if it weren't for me giving you that patent, you wouldn't be the Sumner Group's CEO. And you were the one who told me to stay home after we got married. If I had continued my research, I would have earned far more than what you've given me." Unfazed, Clark replied, "Who would believe you about the patent now? "I don't want to argue about money, but if you insist on a divorce, we'll have to settle accounts. Nyla, as long as you drop the divorce idea, my money is still yours to use." "Clark, you're despicable!" Since he refused to divorce, she'd have to sue. She turned to leave, but he blocked her. "Change your clothes. We're going to the family dinner." "I said I'm not going. Tell them I'm not feeling well." Clark grabbed her wrist. "Nyla, I'm running out of patience. Don't force me to cut off your father's medical expenses." "You wouldn't dare!" Clark took out his phone and called his secretary. "Cancel my father-in-law's medical payment for next monthโ" Furious, Nyla grabbed his phone and ended the call. "You're crossing a line, Clark." "Crossing a line?" Clark's gaze was full of contempt as he yanked her closer. "Everything you have is because of me. Don't you think you're the one crossing the line? Change your clothes, or I have numerous ways to make you comply." Chapter 5 Seeing the coldness in Clark's eyes, Nyla realized how blind she had been to fall in love with such a man. Her eyes stung with unshed tears, but she refused to show any vulnerability in front of him. She yanked her hand away, took a deep breath, and headed upstairs. The only thought in her mind was to find a job quickly so she could move out and divorce Clark. She grabbed a random outfit, tied her hair up with a hairpin, and went back downstairs. She was never one to fuss over her appearance. In the past, she had dressed up for the Sumners' gatherings to make a good impression. Now, she couldn't care less. Hearing her footsteps, Clark looked up. Nyla wore a fitted white dress, her waist so slender it seemed it could be encircled with one hand. Her hair was secured with a jade hairpin, revealing her delicate neck. She was breathtakingly beautiful. The grace she exuded was just like when they first met. However, the look in her eyes now was devoid of any warmth. "Letโs go," she said. They drove to the Sumner residence in silence. As they arrived and were about to get out of the car, a black Range Rover sped up and stopped abruptly in front of them. Upon recognizing the car, Clark's expression darkened. It was Damon's car, someone he both feared and disliked. Damon was known for his reckless and unpredictable behavior. He had refused to take over the Sumner Group when Richard wanted him to run the company, choosing to start his own business instead. Everyone had expected him to fail, but within five years, his company had grown to be worth several times more than the Sumner Group. Clark couldn't stand Damon, partly out of jealousy. Once, a comment Clark made about Damon reached Damon's ears, and in retaliation, Damon refused to collaborate with the Sumner Group, costing them millions. Damon rarely attended family dinners, and Clark had hoped to avoid him. Luck wasnโt on his side todayโthey met at the door. He didnโt notice Nylaโs stiffened expression when she saw Damon get out of his car. Clark opened the car door and greeted, "Uncle Damon." Damon glanced at him indifferently, his gaze briefly landing on the passenger seat before he nodded and walked into the house. Nyla let out a deep breath. When Damon looked her way, she had forgotten to breathe, fearing he might say something outrageous. He was known for his unpredictable nature, always doing whatever he pleased. Fortunately, he said nothing. She decided she needed to talk to him privately later. As Clark and Nyla walked into the living room, they saw it was already filled with people. Richard and Marie, the family heads, were chatting with Damon. He was the kind of person who naturally stood out in a crowd. Noticing Nylaโs gaze on Damon, Clark frowned. "Why are you staring at my uncle?" Nyla withdrew her gaze and replied coolly, "None of your business." Her coldness irritated Clark. "Nyla, you know I donโt like you paying attention to other men." Ever since they got together, Clark had been extremely controlling, not allowing Nyla to interact with other men. She used to think this was a sign of his love, but now it seemed laughable. She sneered. "And I donโt like you sleeping with other women, but you seem to enjoy it just fine." Clark said through gritted teeth, "This is a family dinner. Weโll deal with this later." "If you donโt want me to bring it up, then stay out of my business," she retorted. Clark didnโt want to cause a scene now because it might affect the Sumner Group and his standing with Richard, who still held all the companyโs shares. As they talked, Marie called out, "Nyla, Clark, youโre here! Come sit down!" Nyla took a deep breath, forcing a smile as she approached. She might not like the Sumners, but she maintained basic manners. "Hello, Grandpa, Grandma," she greeted with a smile. Marie, who had been urging Damon to settle down and get married, looked pleased to see the couple. "Come, sit down." She turned to Damon with a hint of dissatisfaction. "Look at Clark. He manages the company well and has a beautiful wife. They might have children soon. And you? Almost 30 and still single. If you donโt bring a girlfriend next time, donโt bother coming!" Damon glanced at the couple with a smirk. "She is indeed beautiful." He just wondered how that petite frame would suffer if she were to have children. Nyla frowned, feeling uncomfortable with Damonโs gaze. Clark also noticed the inappropriate way Damon looked at Nyla. It wasnโt the look of an elder but more like a man admiring a woman. His hand clenched into a fist, and his body tensed. Marie sighed. "My point is, when will you bring me a daughter-in-law?" "Depends. If I meet someone I like, maybe Iโll bring her back tomorrow," Damon replied nonchalantly. "Youโre too picky! Iโve arranged a good match for you. Date's tomorrow, donโt ruin it." "Then youโll probably have to apologize to another old friend tomorrow." Frustrated, Marie snapped, โYouโre going to drive me crazy!โ Damon glanced at Clark. โClark's been married for years. Instead of pushing me, why donโt you encourage him to have kids?โ Marie nodded, realizing Damon wouldnโt listen to her. She turned to Nyla and Clark, her expression softening. โNyla, you and Clark have been married for a few years now. When are you planning to have children?โ Chapter 6 Nyla lifted her head to speak, but Clark grabbed her hand and smiled. "Grandma, we're working on it!" Nyla tried to pull her hand away, but Clark's grip was too tight. If he wouldn't let her be, she wouldn't make it easy for him either. She turned to Marie. "Grandma, I'm looking for a job right now, so having children might have to wait." The room fell silent. Clark's grip on Nyla's hand tightened painfully, and she winced. Damon glanced at Clark's hand on Nyla, noticing the bulging veins, then looked away indifferently. Clarkโs aunt, Anne Sumner, sneered. "Nyla, don't blame me for being blunt. You've been married for years. How can you not have a child yet? If it weren't for Clark insisting on marrying you, do you think your family could have ever married into the Sumners? "You should be grateful. If you don't want to have Clark's child, there are plenty of women who do. If someone else steps in, youโll be the one looking silly." Besides, Anne thought, "Who knows if Nyla is fertile?" She sounded like she meant well, but her gaze at Nyla was filled with an air of superiority. Marie frowned at Anne, disapproving. "Anne, enough." Anne pursed her lips but stayed silent. Marie turned back to Nyla with a kind smile. "Nyla, you and Clark are still young. If you don't want children yet, that's fine. Just don't overwork yourself. Our family isn't short on money. You can work if you want, but take it easy." Nyla nodded. "I understand, Grandma." With that, the awkward moment passed, and the room returned to its previous warmth. Seeing the attention shift away, Clark pulled Nyla out of the living room. Once they reached the gazebo in the backyard, he released her. "Nyla, have you lost your mind? Do you want everyone to know about our fight?" Nyla rubbed her sore hand and said, "I was just being honest." "Honest?" Clark scowled. "Should I call your father then?" Harrison Jayston was ill and couldn't handle stress. Nyla planned to divorce Clark before breaking the news to him gently. She glared at Clark. "You wouldnโt dare! You were the one who cheated. What right do you have to be so self-righteous?" Clark clenched his hands, a flicker of guilt crossing his face before it was replaced by impatience. "I promised it wouldnโt happen again. If you don't want to see Jordyn, I'll fire her. What more do you want?" Nyla felt like there was a communication breakdown between them and turned away. "I don't want to argue with you here." When Clark saw her red-rimmed eyes, he softened. "Nyla, I truly know I was wrong. Just don't mention divorce, and I'll make it up to you. I love you. I can't let you go." Nyla found it laughable. How could he claim to love her while being with another woman? Just thinking about him with someone else made her sick. "I will never forgive you." Betrayal was her bottom line. She couldnโt pretend nothing had happened or reconcile with him. Clark knew Nyla well enough to understand that he had to be patient. He believed she still had feelings for him. Otherwise, she would have made a bigger scene when she found out. As long as he refused to divorce her, she would eventually forgive him. "Fine, we won't talk about it now. If you don't want kids yet, weโll postpone it to two years later. Since you want to work, I'll have my secretary find you a position at the Sumner Group." Nyla laughed at his arrangement, a mocking look in her eyes. "Clark, do you see me as a puppet you can control?" Hurt by her gaze, Clark frowned. "How am I controlling you? You don't want kids now, so I agreed to wait two years. You want to work, so I'll arrange it. What more do you want?" "Stop pretending. I don't want kids because I want a divorce. I want to work to sever ties with you." Clark looked at Nyla's stubborn face, displeased. Since their wedding, she had been like a canary in his cage. He couldn't let her go. "As long as I don't agree, this marriage won't end. Even if you tell a lawyer I cheated, do you have proof?" Clark's confident tone and controlling demeanor made Nyla step back, trembling with anger. She finally saw how selfish and disgusting he was. She had wasted eight yearsโthe best years of her life, from 18 to 26โloving this man. "You make me sick, Clark!" Seeing the undisguised disgust in Nyla's eyes, Clar | LEARN_MORE | https://findedc.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=15692& | Indulge in story | https://www.facebook.com/61552702618591/ | 910 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn More | 0 | findedc.com | DCO | https://findedc.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=15692&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}}&placement={{placement}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-2.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/468455042_1262834138099234_1389968434765802098_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60_tt6&_nc_cat=105&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=iv3KycLhnWIQ7kNvgHh8CH0&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-2.xx&_nc_gid=AhQvCO5pjzQdUbjZgtPHGAI&oh=00_AYDWwb2ZOYN7qP6NAPHTOaZtZbod3fvoM8RhiwNJpRbgKQ&oe=677A5507 | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Indulge in story | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,656,574 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2656411}' |
Yes | 2024-12-31 18:39 | active | 2174 | 0 |
|
He drunkenly hugged her โCall me husband again ......โ | ๐Nyla Jayston was in her third month of trying to conceive when she saw a message on her husband Clark Sumner's phone from a contact named "Jordyn Cheatham". Jordyn: [I think my new nightgown is a bit tight. Why don't you come over and check if it fits?] Attached was a selfie of a woman in a deep V-neck red slip dress, her body partly exposed, exuding seduction. Nyla's grip on the phone tightened. She scrolled up and found Clark and Jordyn's previous exchanges to be strictly work-related, which made her frown. 'Was the text sent by mistake? Orโฆ' A hand wrapped around Nyla's waist from behind, breaking her thoughts. Clark pressed his warm body against hers and gently nibbled her earlobe. "Honey, I'm all cleaned up. Do you want to do it on the couch or the bed?" Before Nyla could respond, Clark picked her up and laid her on the couch, his tall frame looming over her. "Since you're not saying anything, I'll choose. Let's do it on the couch," Clark said, his voice husky and his eyes filled with a flicker of fire that made Nyla blush instantly. Nyla was already beautiful, and the slight flush on her cheeks made her look like a tempting, ripe, juicy peach under the light. Clark's gaze grew darker. He leaned in to kiss Nyla, but she suddenly turned her head away. Sensing her resistance, he looked at her with confusion. "Honey, what's wrong?" Clark, usually assertive at work, now looked at Nyla with a mix of confusion and hurt, which softened her heart momentarily. Despite that, she hadn't forgotten the explicit selfie she had just seen. She stopped him with one hand on his chest and held up his phone with the other, showing him the screen. "Explain this first." Clark glanced at the screen and immediately frowned, grabbing the phone to make a call. It was quickly answered. "Mr. Sumner, what can I do for you?" Clark glowered, and his voice turned icy. "I didnโt know my secretary started soliciting clients." There was a moment of silence before Jordyn's panicked voice came through. "M-Mr. Sumner, I'm sorry. That message was meant for my boyfriend. I must have sent it to you by mistake..." "Next time it happens, pack your things and leave!" Clark hung up and looked back at Nyla, his expression softening, even showing a hint of grievance. "Honey, she sent it by mistake. If you're still upset, I'll fire her tomorrow. It's late now, so letโs not waste time on someone unworthy. We haven't seen each other in a week. You need to make it up to me tonight." Clark pulled Nyla in for a kiss, but her mood was ruined despite the issue being cleared up. She wasn't in the mood anymore and pushed him away. "I'm tired tonight. Let's continue tomorrow." A flash of disappointment crossed Clark's eyes, but he didn't pressure her. "Alright, you sleep first. I'm not tired yet, so I'll go to the study to handle some work." "Okay." โฆ It started raining heavily in the middle of the night. The sound woke Nyla, and she reached out only to feel the cold space beside her. She glanced at the clockโ3:16 a.m. Nyla wondered whether Clark was still working. She got up, put on a robe, and went to the study, but it was dark and empty. Her grip on the doorknob tightened, and her heart sank. Nylaโs phone suddenly chimed, startling her in the quiet night. Seeing that it was a text from a stranger, she had a gut feeling that reading it would mean no turning back for her and Clark. A thunderclap boomed outside, startling her into accidentally pressing it. [Still awake? Because your husband isn't with you?] [I was scared because of the thunder and power outage, and he came to comfort me.] [Don't you want to know where your husband is?] As Nyla read the messages and the boastful tone, her hands trembled uncontrollably. After a long while, another text came in with an address and a series of digits. Nyla bit her lip, grabbed her car keys, and drove straight there. By the time she reached the villa, it was past 4:00 a.m. She entered the code, and the door unlocked. The living room lights were on. From the entrance to the bedroom door, a man's suit and a woman's lingerie were strewn about, revealing the urgency of their actions. Seeing the torn red nightgown at the bedroom door, Nyla felt a sense of absurdity. Although the distance from the entrance to the bedroom was only a few meters, it felt like an eternity to Nyla. Standing at the bedroom door, she felt light-headed and dizzy. She reached out, trembling, and slowly pushed the slightly open door. The sight of the messy bed and the bared couple entwinedโtheir heavy breathing filling the roomโpierced Nyla's heart. The couple was so engrossed that they didn't notice her standing there. Nyla's hand on the door frame turned white from gripping it too hard, leaving red marks on her palm. She had been with Clark for eight years, from school days to marriage, envied by everyone around them. Until today, she had never imagined betrayal between them. Now, reality dealt her a cruel blow. Even the most sincere wedding vows couldn't withstand a fickle heart. Unable to bear the sight, Nyla turned and stumbled out, driving away. She stopped by a bar on the way and decided to go in. โฆ By the time Valarie Weir arrived, Nyla had already downed two bottles of whiskey, her gaze slightly unfocused. "Valarie, you're here..." Seeing Nyla surrounded by several men, Valarie frowned. "All of you, leave!" "No, they're fine hereโ" "I said, leave!" After driving the men away, Valarie sat next to Nyla. "What happened? Did Clark really cheat on you?" Valarie was Nyla's university roommate and had witnessed Nyla and Clarkโs journey from school to marriage. She had seen Clark treat Nyla well all these years, so she couldn't believe he would cheat. Upon hearing Clarkโs name, Nyla's gaze dimmed, and the heart-wrenching pain came rushing back. "I don't want to hear that name right now." Chapter 2 Nyla downed her drink in one gulp. She had never imagined Clark would betray her. Seeing him in bed with another woman felt like a dagger through her heart. "I just can't believe it. He loved you so much. He didn't seem like the type to cheat. Maybe there's a misunderstanding," Valarie suggested. Nyla let out a cold laugh. "I saw it with my own eyes. How could that be a misunderstanding?" The room fell silent. Watching Nyla drink like there was no tomorrow, Valarie grabbed the glass from her hand. "Even if he cheated, you shouldn't punish yourself by getting drunk. What are you going to do now?" "I'm getting a divorce. Just thinking about him with that woman makes me sick." Upon seeing the defiance in Nylaโs red eyes, Valarie's heart ached. "Don't think about it now. You need to rest. Decide what to do next once youโre calm. I'll take you home." Nyla shook her head. "No... I don't want to go back." Returning to that house would only bring back the sickening images of Clarkโs betrayal. Each recollection made her feel nauseous. Seeing Nylaโs reluctance, Valarie didn't insist. "I'll book you a hotel room then." โฆ After booking a room, Valarie took Nyla to the hotel entrance. "Are you sure you don't want me to take you up?" Nyla shook her head. "No, you go rest. I'll be fine." She waved with the room card and walked into the hotel. Seeing Nyla walk steadily, Valarie finally breathed a sigh of relief and drove away once Nyla was inside the hotel. What she didn't know was that Nyla, when drunk, appeared sober but was actually a mess inside. Nyla entered the elevator, scanned her card, and the elevator began to ascend. Soon, the doors opened with a ding. As Nyla stepped out onto the carpet, her legs almost gave out. She steadied herself against the wall, massaging her aching temples while searching for her room number. The wine was taking its toll, and her vision blurred. She found Room 8919 and tried the card on the door. Hearing no beep, she frowned and was about to push the door when it suddenly opened. Nyla froze. Before she could react, a large hand yanked her into the dark room. The door slammed shut, cutting off the light from the hallway. She was pressed against the door, a man's breath hot against her ear, making her shiver. The familiar scent of pine filled her senses, but before she could place it, she felt the warmth of his lips on hers. "Mmph!" Realizing what was happening, Nyla struggled. Damon was strong, and with the wine dulling her strength, her hands felt weak, almost inviting as she pushed against his chest. Damonโs hands roamed her body, leaving a trail of fire, and her body grew more responsive under his touch. Nyla tried to push him away, but he easily caught her wrists and pinned them above her head. "Letโ Mmph! Let me goโฆ" He stopped kissing her and chuckled. "No need to play hard to get." His fingers traced her collar, the cool touch making her shudder. His body heat seemed to melt her, and her legs grew weak. In the dark, Nylaโs senses heightened. She felt Damon unbuttoning her clothes, her mouth dry, her last bit of rationality warning her that this was going too far. "Let me go!" She mustered all her strength to push him, but he simply picked her up and threw her onto the bed. The bed was soft, so Nyla didnโt feel pain, but the impact made her head spin. She tried to get up, but Damon pinned her down. Soon, her clothes were gone, and they were both nearly bared. He pressed against her, ready. His dominating presence made her tremble. She pushed against his chest, biting her lip to stay calm and clear-headed. "Mister, I think I entered the wrong room. Please let me goโฆ" Nylaโs voice shook with tension. "Tsk!" Damon's voice was impatient, his tone cold. "Still playing?" He was about to get up and kick Nyla out when the room light suddenly came on. Nyla had accidentally hit the light switch in her struggle. The sudden light made Damon squint. He was shocked when he saw the terrified woman beneath him. Nyla, recognizing Damon, felt the blood drain from her face. The fear sobered her instantly. She couldnโt believe itโthe man who almost violated her was Clarkโs uncle, Damon Summer! "Uncle Damonโฆ" Nyla had always been wary of Damon. He was the youngest son of Richard Sumner and Marie Thorne, doted on by them and known for his unpredictable, cold nature. Even outsiders avoided crossing him. When she married Clark, he had warned her to steer clear of Damon. "Shut up!" Damon's face was dark, his gaze icy, as he contemplated whether to silence her for good. Then, his eyes shifted to her bare body, darkening further. He turned away, getting off the bed. "Get dressed and get out!" As Damon moved, Nyla caught a glimpse of him where she shouldn't, and her face turned red with embarrassment. Upon seeing her flushed face, Damon's expression soured even more. "Still not leaving?" Nyla could not care less about her embarrassment as she hastily dressed and left without looking back. Once outside, she checked the room number and realized her mistakeโit wasnโt Room 8919, but Room 8916! She had entered the wrong room and almost slept with her husbandโs uncle. The thought made her headache worse. She should have let Valarie take her up. Unfortunately, it was too late for regrets now. After Nyla left, Damon dialed a number with a glower on his face. "Delete all surveillance footage from the Empire Skyview Hotel tonight!" Upon hanging up, he looked at the messy bed and sheets, his irritation growing. He had almost slept with his nephewโs wife... What a mess! Chapter 3 On Nyla's way back, she hesitated for a long time before finally messaging Damon, someone whose contact she had had for three years but had never contacted. Nyla: [Uncle Damon... Can we pretend tonight never happened? I was really drunk and went to the wrong room.] She waited for a long time, but there was no response from Damon. Frowning, she sent another message. Nyla: [?] As soon as she sent it, a red exclamation mark appeared: [You are no longer friends with this user. Please send a friend request to continue chatting.] Nyla bit her lip. Damon had deleted her. He must not want to bring this up again. Relieved, she finally felt a bit of peace. โฆ When Nyla got home, it was already past 6:00 a.m. As soon as she opened the door, she saw Clark sitting on the sofa. He turned sharply at the sound of the door, his eyes bloodshot from a sleepless night. "Where were you last night? I called you dozens of times. Why didnโt you answer?" Clark stood up and walked quickly toward her, reaching out to grab her hand, but she pulled away. He froze, about to speak, but she spoke first, her tone icy. "You can stay out all night, but I can't?" Nyla had always been gentle. In their eight years together, they had hardly ever argued. This was the first time she had spoken to him so coldly. Clark sensed something was wrong and noticed her red, swollen eyes. His expression changed, and his hand clenched at his side. "You know, don't you?" His voice was calm, without a trace of guilt or panic, as if he had expected this day to come. Upon seeing his unapologetic demeanor, Nyla's long-suppressed emotions finally exploded. She swung her bag at him, her eyes red with fury, like a madwoman. All the good times they had shared, all the happy moments, were shattered the moment she saw him in bed with another woman. They could never be pieced together again. "Clark Sumner, how could you do something so disgusting?! If you didnโt love me anymore, you could have divorced me. Why did you have to hurt me like this?" Nyla had assumed that no third party could ever come between them. Unfortunately, reality gave her a harsh slap, waking her from the lies he had woven and turning her love for him into a joke. Seeing her red, tear-filled eyes, Clark felt a pang in his chest. He grabbed her hand and pulled her into his arms. "Nyla, Iโm sorry..." Nyla shoved him away, wanting to laugh but only tears came. "Donโt touch me with your filthy hands! "Is it that hard to stay faithful? "Since we got married, Iโve met many excellent men, and some have shown interest in me. But Iโve never crossed the line. If I can do it, why canโt you?!" Clark clenched his fists when he saw the disappointment and anger in her eyes. "Nyla, youโre the only one I loveโฆ It was just an accident with herโฆ" His explanation sounded so weak that Nyla found it both laughable and nauseating. "So youโre saying I could sleep with another man and then tell you it was an accident? That I may have betrayed you physically, but my heart still belongs to you?" A flash of ruthlessness crossed Clark's eyes. "If you dare, Iโll end you and that man together in bed." Seeing his icy gaze, Nyla felt a chill in her heart. If he knew betrayal was unforgivable, why would he still betray her? She took a deep breath and spoke slowly. "Do you remember what I told you when you proposed?" She had said that if he ever betrayed her, she would not forgive him but leave him. Clarkโs expression changed. "I will not let you leave!" Nyla wiped her tears, her expression a mixture of ridicule and hatred. "Whether you agree or not, Iโve made up my mind. Iโm divorcing you. You donโt deserve my forgiveness." With that, she ignored his reaction and went upstairs. Clark stared at her back, his gaze dark. โฆ Back in the bedroom, Nyla went straight to the bathroom to shower, unable to stand the smell of wine on herself. While applying body wash, she noticed red marks on her chest and paused. The image of Damonโs hands roaming her body flashed through her mind, making her frown. She scrubbed the marks hard until the skin around them turned red, trying to erase his touch. After her shower, she saw Clark sitting on the bed with his head down, lost in thought. She frowned and decided to ignore him. They would be divorced soon anyway. Clark looked up and saw Nyla coming out in just a towel. Her damp hair dripped water, her freshly washed face flushed like a blooming rose with an enticing fragrance. The towel barely covered her behinds, revealing her long, fair legs. His breath hitched, his gaze glued on her. Nyla didnโt notice Clark's reaction. She walked to the wardrobe to grab her pajamas when a pair of arms suddenly wrapped around her from behind. "Nyla..." Clark's voice was husky, filled with undisguised desire. Clark had been thinking about how to win her back downstairs after she left. The only way he could think of was to have a child with her. He had come upstairs to discuss this with her, planning to take it slow. However, he lost control upon seeing her just out of the shower. In the past, such behavior would have stirred Nyla's feelings, but all she felt now was disgust. She turned and pushed him away, her gaze full of revulsion. "Donโt touch me. I feel dirty." Hurt flashed in Clark's eyes. He grabbed her hands, his expression earnest. "Didnโt you always want a child? Letโs have one now, okay?" Nyla shook him off at his matter-of-fact attitude. "That was before. I might have a child in the future, but it wonโt be yours." Her words enraged Clark. He grabbed her and threw her onto the bed, pinning her down. "Say that again!" His eyes were full of anger, but Nyla didnโt care. "It doesnโt matter how many times I say it. Iโm disgusted by you. Iโd rather die than have your child." As soon as she finished speaking, Clark kissed her fiercely. Chapter 4 Nyla froze for a moment, then struggled desperately. Just the thought of Clark kissing another woman the night before filled her with disgust and rage. "Let go!" Her struggles were futile against Clark, who only tightened his grip around her waist. As she fought, her towel loosened, revealing her body. His gaze darkened, and he felt a rush of desire. Their bodies were pressed tightly together, and Nyla quickly noticed the change in Clark. Furious, she bit him hard, tasting blood in their mouths. Instead of letting go, Clark's other hand slipped under Nyla's towel. She had nothing on underneath, having just come out of the shower. She stiffened and struggled even more fiercely. "Clark, get off me!" Clark ignored Nyla, his fingers teasing her sensitive spots. "Nyla, you need me too, don't you?" Nylaโs struggles were in vain, and she grew increasingly desperate. As Clark positioned himself, she closed her eyes in despair. "Clark, don't make me hate you." Clark halted abruptly. Seeing Nyla filled with despair and pain, like a fragile porcelain doll about to shatter, made him pause. He wanted her desperately, but a voice in his head warned that if he took her now, it would be the end of them. He stared at her, his hand tightening around her waist. After several tense seconds, he suddenly let go and got off the bed, leaving the room quickly. The door slammed shut with a loud bang, making Nyla flinch. She clutched the blanket tightly. โฆ For the next few days, Clark didn't come home. Nyla called him several times to discuss the divorce, but he didn't respond. โฆ The weekend arrived. Nyla was in the living room, sending out job applications when she heard the front door open. Clark walked in, looking haggard. They stared at each other in silence until Nyla broke it, closing her laptop and standing up calmly. "Since you're back, let's talk about the divorce." Clark frowned. "I told you, I won't divorce you. I'm here to remind you that we have to go to the family dinner tonight." The Sumners held a monthly dinner, and ever since their wedding, Clark and Nyla had attended together. The family wasn't kind to Nyla, often treating her poorly. She endured it because she believed Clark loved her. After seeing him with another woman, however, she couldn't lie to herself anymore. "I don't want to go. Go by yourself." Clarkโs expression turned impatient. "Nyla, how long are you going to keep this up?" He had ignored her calls and messages, hoping she would calm down, but she was still the same. "I'm not keeping anything up. I just want a divorce." Upon hearing the word "divorce", Clark's patience wore thin. He looked at Nyla as if she were unreasonable. "Divorce? You haven't worked since we got married. How will you support yourself? Which company would hire you? And what about your father's exorbitant medical bills? Can you afford those? "Nyla, you're not a teenager anymore. You're 28. It's time to grow up. "I'm the CEO of the Sumner Group. I face temptations all the time. Sometimes, it's hard to resist, but those women will never take your place as my wife. What more do you want?" Clark couldn't understand why Nyla didn't see that he still loved her, even if he couldn't commit to being with her forever. Seeing Clarkโs arrogant demeanor, Nyla couldn't reconcile this man with the shy boy who had once blushed while confessing his love and promising never to hurt her. Maybe this was his true selfโselfish, proud, and condescending. "If being mature means tolerating your infidelity, then I'm sorry, I can't do that. Find someone else. Here are the divorce papers I've had drafted. Sign them when you have time." Clark glanced at the documents, sneering when he saw the section on asset division. "Quite the appetite you have, asking for half my assets. Do you really think that's possible?" "I deserve it. Why not?" Clark chuckled, his tone mocking. "Look around this house. Did you buy anything here? I've been covering your father's medical expenses for years. If we tally things up, you should be paying me. Should I have my lawyer do the math?" As Nyla watched his bitter expression, she couldn't believe she had once loved this man. He had hidden his true self so well that, until she caught him cheating, she had thought he was a great guy. "Don't forget, if it weren't for me giving you that patent, you wouldn't be the Sumner Group's CEO. And you were the one who told me to stay home after we got married. If I had continued my research, I would have earned far more than what you've given me." Unfazed, Clark replied, "Who would believe you about the patent now? "I don't want to argue about money, but if you insist on a divorce, we'll have to settle accounts. Nyla, as long as you drop the divorce idea, my money is still yours to use." "Clark, you're despicable!" Since he refused to divorce, she'd have to sue. She turned to leave, but he blocked her. "Change your clothes. We're going to the family dinner." "I said I'm not going. Tell them I'm not feeling well." Clark grabbed her wrist. "Nyla, I'm running out of patience. Don't force me to cut off your father's medical expenses." "You wouldn't dare!" Clark took out his phone and called his secretary. "Cancel my father-in-law's medical payment for next monthโ" Furious, Nyla grabbed his phone and ended the call. "You're crossing a line, Clark." "Crossing a line?" Clark's gaze was full of contempt as he yanked her closer. "Everything you have is because of me. Don't you think you're the one crossing the line? Change your clothes, or I have numerous ways to make you comply." Chapter 5 Seeing the coldness in Clark's eyes, Nyla realized how blind she had been to fall in love with such a man. Her eyes stung with unshed tears, but she refused to show any vulnerability in front of him. She yanked her hand away, took a deep breath, and headed upstairs. The only thought in her mind was to find a job quickly so she could move out and divorce Clark. She grabbed a random outfit, tied her hair up with a hairpin, and went back downstairs. She was never one to fuss over her appearance. In the past, she had dressed up for the Sumners' gatherings to make a good impression. Now, she couldn't care less. Hearing her footsteps, Clark looked up. Nyla wore a fitted white dress, her waist so slender it seemed it could be encircled with one hand. Her hair was secured with a jade hairpin, revealing her delicate neck. She was breathtakingly beautiful. The grace she exuded was just like when they first met. However, the look in her eyes now was devoid of any warmth. "Letโs go," she said. They drove to the Sumner residence in silence. As they arrived and were about to get out of the car, a black Range Rover sped up and stopped abruptly in front of them. Upon recognizing the car, Clark's expression darkened. It was Damon's car, someone he both feared and disliked. Damon was known for his reckless and unpredictable behavior. He had refused to take over the Sumner Group when Richard wanted him to run the company, choosing to start his own business instead. Everyone had expected him to fail, but within five years, his company had grown to be worth several times more than the Sumner Group. Clark couldn't stand Damon, partly out of jealousy. Once, a comment Clark made about Damon reached Damon's ears, and in retaliation, Damon refused to collaborate with the Sumner Group, costing them millions. Damon rarely attended family dinners, and Clark had hoped to avoid him. Luck wasnโt on his side todayโthey met at the door. He didnโt notice Nylaโs stiffened expression when she saw Damon get out of his car. Clark opened the car door and greeted, "Uncle Damon." Damon glanced at him indifferently, his gaze briefly landing on the passenger seat before he nodded and walked into the house. Nyla let out a deep breath. When Damon looked her way, she had forgotten to breathe, fearing he might say something outrageous. He was known for his unpredictable nature, always doing whatever he pleased. Fortunately, he said nothing. She decided she needed to talk to him privately later. As Clark and Nyla walked into the living room, they saw it was already filled with people. Richard and Marie, the family heads, were chatting with Damon. He was the kind of person who naturally stood out in a crowd. Noticing Nylaโs gaze on Damon, Clark frowned. "Why are you staring at my uncle?" Nyla withdrew her gaze and replied coolly, "None of your business." Her coldness irritated Clark. "Nyla, you know I donโt like you paying attention to other men." Ever since they got together, Clark had been extremely controlling, not allowing Nyla to interact with other men. She used to think this was a sign of his love, but now it seemed laughable. She sneered. "And I donโt like you sleeping with other women, but you seem to enjoy it just fine." Clark said through gritted teeth, "This is a family dinner. Weโll deal with this later." "If you donโt want me to bring it up, then stay out of my business," she retorted. Clark didnโt want to cause a scene now because it might affect the Sumner Group and his standing with Richard, who still held all the companyโs shares. As they talked, Marie called out, "Nyla, Clark, youโre here! Come sit down!" Nyla took a deep breath, forcing a smile as she approached. She might not like the Sumners, but she maintained basic manners. "Hello, Grandpa, Grandma," she greeted with a smile. Marie, who had been urging Damon to settle down and get married, looked pleased to see the couple. "Come, sit down." She turned to Damon with a hint of dissatisfaction. "Look at Clark. He manages the company well and has a beautiful wife. They might have children soon. And you? Almost 30 and still single. If you donโt bring a girlfriend next time, donโt bother coming!" Damon glanced at the couple with a smirk. "She is indeed beautiful." He just wondered how that petite frame would suffer if she were to have children. Nyla frowned, feeling uncomfortable with Damonโs gaze. Clark also noticed the inappropriate way Damon looked at Nyla. It wasnโt the look of an elder but more like a man admiring a woman. His hand clenched into a fist, and his body tensed. Marie sighed. "My point is, when will you bring me a daughter-in-law?" "Depends. If I meet someone I like, maybe Iโll bring her back tomorrow," Damon replied nonchalantly. "Youโre too picky! Iโve arranged a good match for you. Date's tomorrow, donโt ruin it." "Then youโll probably have to apologize to another old friend tomorrow." Frustrated, Marie snapped, โYouโre going to drive me crazy!โ Damon glanced at Clark. โClark's been married for years. Instead of pushing me, why donโt you encourage him to have kids?โ Marie nodded, realizing Damon wouldnโt listen to her. She turned to Nyla and Clark, her expression softening. โNyla, you and Clark have been married for a few years now. When are you planning to have children?โ Chapter 6 Nyla lifted her head to speak, but Clark grabbed her hand and smiled. "Grandma, we're working on it!" Nyla tried to pull her hand away, but Clark's grip was too tight. If he wouldn't let her be, she wouldn't make it easy for him either. She turned to Marie. "Grandma, I'm looking for a job right now, so having children might have to wait." The room fell silent. Clark's grip on Nyla's hand tightened painfully, and she winced. Damon glanced at Clark's hand on Nyla, noticing the bulging veins, then looked away indifferently. Clarkโs aunt, Anne Sumner, sneered. "Nyla, don't blame me for being blunt. You've been married for years. How can you not have a child yet? If it weren't for Clark insisting on marrying you, do you think your family could have ever married into the Sumners? "You should be grateful. If you don't want to have Clark's child, there are plenty of women who do. If someone else steps in, youโll be the one looking silly." Besides, Anne thought, "Who knows if Nyla is fertile?" She sounded like she meant well, but her gaze at Nyla was filled with an air of superiority. Marie frowned at Anne, disapproving. "Anne, enough." Anne pursed her lips but stayed silent. Marie turned back to Nyla with a kind smile. "Nyla, you and Clark are still young. If you don't want children yet, that's fine. Just don't overwork yourself. Our family isn't short on money. You can work if you want, but take it easy." Nyla nodded. "I understand, Grandma." With that, the awkward moment passed, and the room returned to its previous warmth. Seeing the attention shift away, Clark pulled Nyla out of the living room. Once they reached the gazebo in the backyard, he released her. "Nyla, have you lost your mind? Do you want everyone to know about our fight?" Nyla rubbed her sore hand and said, "I was just being honest." "Honest?" Clark scowled. "Should I call your father then?" Harrison Jayston was ill and couldn't handle stress. Nyla planned to divorce Clark before breaking the news to him gently. She glared at Clark. "You wouldnโt dare! You were the one who cheated. What right do you have to be so self-righteous?" Clark clenched his hands, a flicker of guilt crossing his face before it was replaced by impatience. "I promised it wouldnโt happen again. If you don't want to see Jordyn, I'll fire her. What more do you want?" Nyla felt like there was a communication breakdown between them and turned away. "I don't want to argue with you here." When Clark saw her red-rimmed eyes, he softened. "Nyla, I truly know I was wrong. Just don't mention divorce, and I'll make it up to you. I love you. I can't let you go." Nyla found it laughable. How could he claim to love her while being with another woman? Just thinking about him with someone else made her sick. "I will never forgive you." Betrayal was her bottom line. She couldnโt pretend nothing had happened or reconcile with him. Clark knew Nyla well enough to understand that he had to be patient. He believed she still had feelings for him. Otherwise, she would have made a bigger scene when she found out. As long as he refused to divorce her, she would eventually forgive him. "Fine, we won't talk about it now. If you don't want kids yet, weโll postpone it to two years later. Since you want to work, I'll have my secretary find you a position at the Sumner Group." Nyla laughed at his arrangement, a mocking look in her eyes. "Clark, do you see me as a puppet you can control?" Hurt by her gaze, Clark frowned. "How am I controlling you? You don't want kids now, so I agreed to wait two years. You want to work, so I'll arrange it. What more do you want?" "Stop pretending. I don't want kids because I want a divorce. I want to work to sever ties with you." Clark looked at Nyla's stubborn face, displeased. Since their wedding, she had been like a canary in his cage. He couldn't let her go. "As long as I don't agree, this marriage won't end. Even if you tell a lawyer I cheated, do you have proof?" Clark's confident tone and controlling demeanor made Nyla step back, trembling with anger. She finally saw how selfish and disgusting he was. She had wasted eight yearsโthe best years of her life, from 18 to 26โloving this man. "You make me sick, Clark!" Seeing the undisguised disgust in Nyla's eyes, Clar | LEARN_MORE | https://findedc.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=15692& | Indulge in story | https://www.facebook.com/61552702618591/ | 910 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn More | 0 | findedc.com | DCO | https://findedc.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=15692&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}}&placement={{placement}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-2.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/468455042_1262834138099234_1389968434765802098_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60_tt6&_nc_cat=105&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=iv3KycLhnWIQ7kNvgHh8CH0&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-2.xx&_nc_gid=AhQvCO5pjzQdUbjZgtPHGAI&oh=00_AYDWwb2ZOYN7qP6NAPHTOaZtZbod3fvoM8RhiwNJpRbgKQ&oe=677A5507 | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Indulge in story | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,656,703 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2656798}' |
No | 2024-12-31 18:39 | active | 2174 | 0 |
|
๐Read the next chapters๐ | "Dexter Bamford,let's get a divorce." Dexter could hardly believe what he had just heard. Throughout his marriage with Angela,he had only ever seen a submissive and hopeful look in her eyes.He knew she feared losing him. The term"divorce"was probably the thing she had feared hearing the most in the past three years. But now,she had uttered it so casually. Dexter questioned in a cold voice,"What?Are you upset because I didn't accompany you yesterday?Or is it because I refused to let you participate in that ridiculous competition? "Angela,are you out of your mind?You cried and begged to be Mrs.Bamford.You live in a villa and have luxury cars to drive you around.I even propped up your failing family.What more could you possibly be dissatisfied with?" The disdain and contempt in his words made Angela feel a chill run down her spine. She couldn't hold back anymore.She retorted loudly,almost shouting,"Mrs.Bamford?So what if I'm Mrs.Bamford?Have you ever seen a rich man's wife as pathetic as I am?" She stormed into the study,grabbed a bulky contract,and threw it in front of Dexter forcefully."You should know what this is better than I do!I'm expected to keep up appearances in front of your family.But when I come home,even the household staff can show me attitude! "What kind of wife spends her birthday being yet another portfolio addition to a fireworks designer and is given the very same six-inch birthday cake that was given to the nanny? "While it is true that I got to become Mrs.Bamford because of my family's plotting,I don't want it anymore!Do you have a problem with that?" He raised an eyebrow mockingly."Do you think you can come and go as you please in the Bamford family?What about the debt you and your family owe me?" | LEARN_MORE | https://beokn.com/market/buenovela/3?lpid=15824&ut | Random Reading | https://www.facebook.com/61559743679549/ | 334 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn More | 0 | beokn.com | DCO | https://beokn.com/market/buenovela/3?lpid=15824&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}}&placement={{placement}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-2.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/467993308_1971135373330962_6152744400347345039_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60_tt6&_nc_cat=103&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=M7ZeXcGXqa8Q7kNvgFvCNbY&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-2.xx&_nc_gid=Aq0spFD969MqsLdVMIPxMuI&oh=00_AYD53EMzxcNgf8x0Pye0OecFD1sGrhhcTbbeQuUIeT7XAw&oe=677A6F1B | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Random Reading | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,656,765 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2656477}' |
Yes | 2024-12-31 18:39 | active | 2174 | 0 |
|
ใใใใฏใชใใฏใใฆ็กๆใงใ่ชญใฟใใ ใใ๏ผ | ๅคซใฏ็งใจ้ขๅฉใใๅๆ็ธๆใจ็ตๅฉใใใใฃใฆใใใ ใใฎๆฅใๅฝผๅฅณใจ็งใฏๅๆใซๆฐดใซ่ฝใกใใๅคซใฏๅฝผๅฅณใๅฉใใ็งใๆฐดใฎไธญใซๆฎใใใ็ตๅฑใๅฝผใใฎๅญไพใฏๅฉใใใ็งใฎๅญไพใฏไบกใใชใฃใใ ใใใงใใ็งใฏ้ขๅฉใๆใพใชใใฃใใ ใใใใ่็ใฎ่จบๆญๅ ฑๅใๅใใๆใ่ใใๅคใใฃใใ ๆฎใๆฐใถๆใใ็ใใใใชใใจใใใฃใไปใ็ถใๅฐใใใใใชใใ 2ๅนดๅใซ็ ด็ฃใใฆไปฅๆฅใ็ถใฏๆ็ก็ถๆ ใง็ ้ขใซๅ ฅ้ขใใฆใใใ ไฝ่คๅณปไปใๆไบบใจไธ็ทใซๅญไพใฎๅฅๅบท่จบๆญใฎใใใ็ ้ขใซ่กใฃใฆใใๆใ็งใฏๅฝผใซ้ป่ฉฑใใใใใ ใๅณปไปใ้ขๅฉใใพใใใใ็งใฏๅท้ใซ่จใฃใใ ใ้ซๆฉๅชๅญใใพใไฝใไผใใงใใใใ ๏ผใๅฝผใฏ็ฌใฃใใ ็งใฏ็ฎใ้ใใใใๅฎถใงๅพ ใฃใฆใใใ ๅฎถใฏๅทใใ็ฉบใฃใฝใงใใใ ใ้ใใ ใฃใใ ๅณปไปใฏ็งใใๅ ใซๅฐ็ใใฆใใใ ็งใฏ็ ้ขใใ้จใฎไธญใ่ตฐใฃใฆๅฎถใซๅใใฃใฆใใใ ใใฉใใซ่กใฃใฆใใใ ๏ผใๅณปไปใฏๅทใใๅฐใญใใ ใใใคใใ็งใฎใใจใซ่ๅณใๆใคใใใซใชใฃใใฎ๏ผใ็งใฏ็ก่กจๆ ใง็ญใใใ ใใๅใซไฝใๅ้กใใฃใใใๆธ้กใซใตใคใณใงใใชใใชใใใใชใๅณปไปใฏๅฒใใใใซ่จใฃใใ ็งใฏๆธ้กใใใคใใณใฐใใผใใซใซ็ฝฎใใใๅณปไปใฏใ้ขๅฉใใจใใ่จ่ใใใฃใจ่ฆใคใใฆใใใ ใๅฎๅฟใใฆใใใใตใคใณๆธใฟใใ ็งใซใฏไธใคใ ใ่ฆๆฑใใใฃใใใใใฏไธๅไธใฎๆ ฐ่ฌๆใ ใฃใใ ใใๅใๆฅใซ้ขๅฉใๆฟ่ซพใใ็็ฑใใใใฃใใใ็ตๅฑใ้ใฎใใใใๅฝผใฏๅฒ็ฌใใใ ไปฅๅใฎ็งใชใๅผ่งฃใใใ ใใใใไปใฏใใ ็ฒใๅใฃใฆใใใ ใๆฌๆฅใชใใใใชใใฎ่ณ็ฃใฎๅๅใๅใๆจฉๅฉใใใใฎใใไฝ่คใใใใงใไธๅไธใ ใใซใใใฎใใใชใใ้ ๆ ฎใใฆใใใฎใใ ๅณปไปใฏไธๆญฉๅใซๅบใฆใๅฝฑใ็งใฎ่บซใซ่ฝใจใใใ ๅฝผใฏ็ดฐใๆใง็งใฎ้กใๆดใฟใๅทใใไฝใๅฃฐใง่จใฃใใใไฝใฆๅผใใ ๏ผใ ใไฝ่คใใใๆฐใซๅ ฅใใชใใชใใๅ ๅคซใจใงใๅผใณใพใใใใใใตใคใณใใใๅบใฆ่กใฃใฆใ ใใใใฏไฟบใฎๅฎถใ ใๅฝผใฏ่จใฃใใ ใ็ขบใใซใ็งใฏใใฎๆจฉๅฉใๆใฃใฆใใชใใใๅฟ้ ใใชใใงใไฝ่คใใใ้ขๅฉ่จผๆใๅใๅใฃใใๅบใฆ่กใใใ ใใ่จใใชใใใ็งใฏๅฝผใฎๆใๆใใฎใใๅฝผใฎ็ฎใ็ใฃ็ดใ่ฆใคใใใ ใไฝ่คใใใๆๆฅๆ9ๆใซๅธๅฝนๆใงๆธ้กใๆใฃใฆใใฆใ็งใใกใใใฃใกใ็ตใใใใพใใใใ | LEARN_MORE | https://heplk.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=13074&ut | ๅฅณใฎๅญใ่ชญใฟใใๅฐ่ชฌใๅคง็น้ | https://www.facebook.com/61559954921868/ | 128 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn more | 0 | heplk.com | IMAGE | https://heplk.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=13074&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}}&placement={{placement}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-2.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/466781571_583949707501469_940276474866931517_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60_tt6&_nc_cat=103&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=gnyyYJMSnGsQ7kNvgFnELyJ&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-2.xx&_nc_gid=Aq0spFD969MqsLdVMIPxMuI&oh=00_AYCwXm-k2GsluOFVSd8yE71prFK8I4xmZe2GwYeyG1ZRPw&oe=677A59E7 | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | ๅฅณใฎๅญใ่ชญใฟใใๅฐ่ชฌใๅคง็น้ | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,656,853 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
null |
No | 2024-12-31 18:39 | active | 2174 | 0 | ้ฑ่ฎไธไธ็ซ ๐ | ๅฅนๆไธๆฏๆๅฅน็้็็ทไบบ๏ผๅปๅพ็ฅไป็ซ็ถๅฐฑๆฏๆฟๅฅน็ถ่ฆช่ฒชๆฑกๆกๅๅข่ ณ็ณไธไฝ็ๆฐไปปๅธ้ท๏ผ่กๆตทๆทฑไป๏ผๅฅนๆฏ ็ถ้ขๅป๏ผ็ทไบบๅป็ไบ๏ผๆปฟๅๅฐๅฅนๆฑๅ่ซ๏ผ ===== โๅญฃๅฐๅง๏ผๅบไพๅง๏ผไฝ ๅๅๅทฒ็ถๅฐไฝ ไบๅ่ฌ่ณฃ็ตฆๆไบ๏ผไปฅๅพ่ท่ๆๅ้ฆๅ่พฃ๏ผไฝ ไป้บผๆดปไนไธ็จๅนน๏ผๅช็ฎกๆ้่ ฟไผบๅๅฐฑๆใโ ่ฝ้่ฒ้ฟ่ตท๏ผๆด้จๅพ็่ไธ๏ผไธ้้้ปๅ้้ทๅค็ งไบฎไบ็ทไบบ่ฅ่ๆฉซ็็็ฅ็ฃ้ขๅญ๏ผไปๅ้่ๆ ๅจ้ๆกไธ่ฎไบๅฝข๏ผ็ผ็ฅๅปไธๅๅพ้็ธซ่ฃก็ใ ๆฟ้ๅ ง๏ผๅญฃ้ๅธๆธพ่บซ็ผๆ็ๆญปๆญปๆต่้ใ โๆปพโฆโฆๆปพๅ๏ผ๏ผโๅฅนๅดฉๆฝฐๅคงๅ๏ผโๆๆๆชๅฉๅคซ๏ผไปไธๆๆพ้ไฝ ็๏ผโ โๆชๅฉๅคซ๏ผไฝ ๆฏ่ชช้ฃไฝ่จฑๅฎถๅญซๅฐ็บ๏ผโ็ทไบบ็็ผๅบๅฒ็ฌ๏ผโๆ้บผ๏ผๅญฃๅฐๅงไธๆ้ไธ็ฅ้่ชๅทฑๆฉๅทฒ็ถ่ขซ้ๅฉไบๅง๏ผๅค๏ผ่ขซ็ฉ่ฉ็็ ด้๏ผ้่ฃไป้บผ็ๆ๏ผโ ่ชชๅฎ๏ผไป่ฅ่ฑฌไธ่ฌ็้พๅคง่บซ่ป็็ถๅพ่ๅผฑ็้ไธไธๆ๏ผ โๅ๏ผโๅญฃ้ๅธ่ขซ็ช็ถๅ้็้ๆฟๅๅฐๅพ้๏ผ้ๆ้กซๆ๏ผโ้ๅฉ๏ผไธๅฏ่ฝ๏ผไธๅฏ่ฝโฆโฆโ ๅฏ็็ไธๅฏ่ฝๅ๏ผ ่ชๅพไธๅๆๅ๏ผๅญฃ้ๅธ็็ถ่ฆช่ขซ่ชฃ้ท่ฒชๆฑ่ ๆๅ ฅ็๏ผๆฏ่ฆช่ป็ฆๅพๆ่ฟทไธ้๏ผๆดๅๅญฃๆฐๅฎถๆๅฐฑ่ตฐๅไบ่กฐไบกใ ้ ้กๅฎถ็ข่ขซๅ จ้จๅ็ตๆธ ็ฎ๏ผไธๅคไน้๏ผๅฅนๅพๅ้ๅฐๅง่ฎๆไบ่ฒ ๅตไธๅ็ไนไธใ ๆๅคฉๅฅนๆๅจ็้ๅฅๆฟๅญไน่ฆ่ขซๆฅๅฐ๏ผๅฅนๆฏไพๅๆๅพ็่กๆ็๏ผๅปๆญฃๅฅฝ่ขซ้ฃไบๅๆฟๆไบ่ก่นค๏ผๅฑ ็ถ่ฆไนๆฉๅฐๅฅน่ณฃ็ตฆ้ๅฐ่ฟไบๅๆญฒ็ๆญป่ฅ่ฑฌ็ท๏ผ ็พๅ่ฆช้ข๏ผๅฅนๅพนๅบไธ็กๆๆไบ๏ผ ้ๅค๏ผ้ฃๆญป่ฅ่ฑฌ็ท็ไธ่็ ฉ็่ฒ้ณๅๆฌกๅณไพ๏ผโ่ๅญๅฏๆฒ่ๅฟ้ชไฝ ็ฉๅฐๅ ๅญไนไน็้้้ๆฒ๏ผๅป๏ผ่ฎไบบๆ้ฐๅ้ไธไพ๏ผโ ไปๆ้ฐๅ๏ผ ๅญฃ้ๅธ็็ถ็ฝไบ่๏ผไธๆฆ้่ขซ็ ด้๏ผ็ตๅฑๅฏๆณ่็ฅใ ๅฐๆๅๅฐฑ็ฎๆฏ่ขซไพต็ฏ่ดๆญป้ฝๆฒไบบๆไพๆฟๅฅนๆถๅฑ๏ผ ้๏ผ ๅญฃ้ๅธ่ ฆๆตท่ฃกๅชๅฉไธ้ไธๅๅฟต้ ญใ ่บซๅพ็ชๆถๅคง้๏ผ็้ขจ่ฃนๆพ่ๆด้จๅ ฅไพต๏ผๆบผ้็็ช็ฐพ็ฟป้ฃ๏ผๅคฉ้้ป่็่๏ผ้ท่ฒ่ฝ้ณดใ ๅฅนๅซ่ๆทไธๅฌ็๏ผ็ๅฐ่กๅฐไบ็ชๅใ ไบๆจ่ๅทฒ๏ผๆไธๆญป๏ผ ็ธฑ่บซไธ่บโโ ๅจๅคง่ ฆ้ฝๅฃๆ นๆฒๅๆ้ไพไนๅ๏ผไบบๅทฒ็ถๆปพ่ฝๅจไบๅฐ้ข่ๅชไธ๏ผๆธพ่บซๆบผ้ๆฒพ่ๆฑๆณฅใ โๅถ๏ผโ่ชชไธๅบๅฐๅบๆฏๅช็ผ๏ผ็ธฝไน้่บซ้ฝๅๆฏ่ฆๆๆฃๆถไธ่ฌใ โไบบๅข๏ผโโ็ฟป็ช่ทไบ๏ผโ่ฒ้ณๅพไบๆจๅณไพใ ๅญฃ้ๅธ็ซๅป่กไบ็ฌ่ตทไพ๏ผ้ๅฝๆ่ ไธๆฟ็ด ็้ฃๅ่ฎๅฅน็็ผๅบ็ก่ๅซๆฏ็ๆฝๅใ ้๏ผๅฟซ้๏ผๅฟซ้ๅ๏ผ ๅฅน่ถ่ๅค่ฒๅๆด้จ็ๆฉ่๏ผๅฐฑ้ๆจฃ็็่กๅบไบ็ๆจๅข็็ๅพ้ข๏ผๅพ่ทฏๅฃๅฅ่ท่ๅปใ ่ๆญคๅๆ๏ผ้ฆฌ่ทฏ็ก้ ญไธ่ผ้ป่ฒ็ด ๆ้ฃ้ฆณ่ไพ๏ผ่ป็ๅฐ็ฉฟ้จๅน๏ผ็ งๅจไบ็ช็ถๅบ็พ๏ผ่ฉฆๅๆฉซ็ฉฟ้ฆฌ่ทฏ็้ปๅฝฑ่บซไธ๏ผ โๆๅป๏ผโๅธๆฉๆฒๅฟไฝ็ไบไธ่ฒ็ฒๅฃ๏ผ็่ธฉๅ่ป็ๅๆ็ๆๆนๅ็คใ ๅพๅบง่กฃ่กซ่็ฉถ็ๆฏๆ็ทไบบ็ไธๅ้ฒ่ขซๅทจๅคง็ๆ ฃๆงๆๆพๆ๏ผไธ่ ฆ่ขๆๅจไบๅๅบง้ ่ไธใ โ็ ฐโไธ่ฒๆถ้ฟใ ๅธๆฉ้ ๆ้ญ้ฃ้ญๆฃ๏ผโๅธๅธโฆโฆๅธ้ทๅ ็๏ผไฝ ๆฒไบๅง๏ผ๏ผโ ็ทไบบ้ป่่๏ผโไฝ ๆ่ฉฒๅๅ่ขซไฝ ๆ็ไบบๆๆฒๆไบใโ่ชชๅฎ๏ผไปๆจ้ไธ่ปๆฅ็ใ ้ป่ฒๅ้ข่ขซๆด้จๆฒๅท๏ผ็ทไบบ่ ณ่ธฉไธ้้ซๅฎ็ฎ้๏ผ่ธ่ๆฑๆฐดไพๅฐๆๅๅจๅฐ็ๅฅณไบบ้ขๅใ ๅธๆฉๅญๅช่่๏ผโๆๆๆ่ธฉๅ่ปไบ๏ผๅฅฝๅๆฒๆๅฐๅฅนๅ๏ผโ โไธๆฏไฝ ๆ็ใโ็ทไบบไธ็ผ็ๅบ็ซฏๅช๏ผๅท็ฌไบ่ฒ๏ผโ็ขฐ็ท๏ผ่ฝๅญๅๅคงใโ ่ชชๅฎ๏ผไปๅทๆผ ๆถๅ็ฎๅ ๏ผ่ฝ่บซๅฐฑ่ตฐใ โ็ญ็ญโฆโฆโๅๅ้โๆ่ฟทโไธ้็ๅฅณไบบ็ช็ถๅบ่ฒ๏ผไผธๅบไธ้ป้ซๅ ฎๅ ฎ็ๆ๏ผ้ฃๅฟซๅฐๆฝไฝไบ็ทไบบๅช่ฃๅฉ่ฝไนพๆทจ็่คฒ่ ณ๏ผๆฌ่ตท่่ๅผฑ้๏ผโๅฅ่ตฐ๏ผไปๅๅจ่ฟฝๆ๏ผๆฑไฝ ๆใๆๆโฆโฆโ ้ๅ่ฒ้ณโฆโฆ ็ทไบบ่ ณๆญฅไธ้ ๏ผๅ้้ ญไพ๏ผๆผ้ป็็ธๅญๅฑ ้ซ่จไธ็ๆธ ไบ่ป็ไธ้ฃๅผตๆฒพ่ๆณฅๅ็่๏ผ็ณๅญ้ฉ็ธฎใ โ้ใ้ไธๆฏๅญซๅฐ็บ็ๆชๅฉๅฆปๅ๏ผๆฏๅธ้ทๅ ็ๆจ็ไพๅชณๅฉฆๅ๏ผโๅธๆฉ็ๅ ้ฉๅซใ โๅต๏ผโ็ทไบบ่ช่ชฟๅฒ่ซท๏ผโๆไพๅชณๅฉฆ๏ผโ ไปๅๅจ่ชชไปใไป้บผโฆโฆไป้บผๅธ้ทๅชณๅฉฆ็โฆโฆ ๅญฃ้ๅธ็ผๅ็ทไบบ็่ๆฉๅฐฑๅไฝ้ๅฝฑ๏ผ่ณ้ไธ็ๅกๅก๏ผ้ๅฐ้่ฃกๅทฒ็ถ่็กไบๅฅนๆๆ็ๅๆฐฃ๏ผๅฐๆๅพไนๅช่ฝๅ จๆๆฌ่ฝ็ๆญปๆญปๆ่้ฃๅกไธ็ตฒไธ็ท้ฝๆ่ฒด่ณๆฅต็โๆๅฝ็จป่โไธๆพใ ็ทไบบไผผไน่นฒไธไบ่บซ๏ผไฝๅญฃ้ๅธๅทฒ็ถๅพนๅบๆฏๆไธไฝ๏ผๆๅฅไบ้ๅปใ ็ฌฌ2็ซ ็งไบบ้ซ็ ๅ้ไพๆฏๅจ้็็ๆฟ้๏ผ็ชๅคๆฏ็ซ็ฎ็็ฝๆใ ๅบ้็ฉฟ่็ฝๅคง่ค็้ซ็ๆญฃๅจๆถๆพๅทฅๅ ท๏ผ่ฆๅญฃ้ๅธ็็ผ๏ผ็ซๅป้ซๅผ๏ผโๅ ็๏ผไบบ้ไบ๏ผโ ็ทไบบๅพๅฟซๆจ้้ฒไพ๏ผๅฐไธไบๅบไธๅฅณไบบไธ้่ฟท่ซๅ้ฉ็ๅฐ้นฟ่ฌ็็ผ๏ผ็ผๅบๆฏๆทฑๅป็้ฒๅๅๆๆผใ ไป่ตฐ่ฟๅบ้๏ผโ้ไบ๏ผ็้ไบๅ๏ผโ ๅฐๅฐๅทๅท๏ผๆ้ป็ๆ็่ฒ้ณ๏ผๆด็ๆ็ๆฏ้ฃๅผต้ข็ก่กจๆ ็่ใ โโฆโฆ่จฑๅ ็๏ผโๅญฃ้ๅธ่ชๅบไบบ๏ผ็ชๅคง็ผ็๏ผโๆ้บผๆฏไฝ ๏ผโ ้ๅ็ทไบบๅฅน่ช่ญ๏ผๆฏๅฅน็ๆฃ่ ใ ๅญฃ้ๅธๅคงๅญธไธ็ขๆฅญๅฐฑๅ ฅ่ทไบไบฌๅธ็ฌฌไธไบบๆฐ้ซ้ขๅฟๅ ง็ง๏ผ่จฑ็ๅปทๆฏๅฅนๆฅๆ็็ฌฌไธๅ็ ไบบใ ไฝ็ฅๅฅ็ๆฏ๏ผ่จฑ็ๅปทๆฃๆ็ไธฆ้ๆฏไปปไฝๅฟ่้ก็พ็ ๏ผ่ๆฏๆ่ฉฒๆญธๅฑฌ็บ็ฒพ็ฅ็ง็็ก็ ้็คใ ไปๆฃๆๅด้ๅคฑ็ ็๏ผๅ ฅ็กๅฐ้ฃ๏ผๆพๆ้้ท้ไธๅๆๆชๅ้็ผ๏ผๆๅพๆๅฅๅจ่พฆๅ ฌๅฎค็่จ้๏ผไป็ไธไธไฝๅฟ็้ซ็ๅฐไปๆๆ็กๆช๏ผๅฏๆฉ็ทฃๅทงๅไธ๏ผๅป็ผ็พ่จฑ็ๅปทๅฐๅญฃ้ๅธ็่ฒ้ณๆ็นๆฎๅๆ๏ผ่ฝไพ้ ๅฅน็่ฒ้ณ็ก่๏ผ ๆผๆฏไปไพฟ่ขซ่ฝๅฐไบๅญฃ้ๅธๅไธ๏ผๆ็บไบไธๅโ็นๆฎโ็ ไบบใ ้ๆฎตๆ้็่ฎๆ ่ฎๅญฃ้ๅธๅ่บซไน่ก๏ผ้ซ้ข้ฃ้ไธๅพๅทฒ่ซไบ้ทๅ๏ผๅๆฏ่จฑไน ๆฒๆ็บ่จฑ็ๅปทๅฌ็ ไบใ ๅญฃ้ๅธ็่็ทไบบ้ฃๅผต้ๅ่ฑไฟ็่๏ผ้ซๆบ็้ผปๆจๅจ่้ ฐ่ฝไธ้ฐๅฝฑ๏ผๅดๅๅ่้กฏๅพไธ่ฟไบบๆ ๏ผไธ้ๅท้ๅจๅด็้ทน็ธๅบไธ๏ผๅปๆ่ๅ ฉๅ็ ้ขจๆฏ็้ป็ผๅใ ็ผ็่ฃกไนๆไธๅฐ็ด ่ก็ตฒ๏ผ้กฏ็ถๆฏๅคชไน ๆฒ่ฝไผๆฏ๏ผ็ฒพ็ฅ้ซๅบฆ็ท็น้ ๆ็ใ โ่ฌ่ฌ่จฑๅ ็ๆไบๆใโๅญฃ้ๅธๅ่ตท่บซ๏ผๅฐ่่ๅผฑ่ผ็ฝใ ๅๆณ่ตทๆๅๅ็ไธๅ๏ผๅฅนๆฒๆณๅฐ่ฑๅบๆงๅฝ็ไธๆฌกโ็ขฐ็ทโ๏ผๅฑ ็ถๆญฃๅฅฝ็ขฐๅฐไบ็ไบบ่บซไธ๏ผ ไธๅนธไธญ็่ฌๅนธใ โไธๅฎขๆฐฃ๏ผๆไนๅพๆ ถๅนธๆฒๆ่ไธไธๆขไบบๅฝใโ่จฑ็ๅปท็ขบ่ชๅฅนๅทฒ็ถ้็ๅพ๏ผไพฟ่ฎ้ซ็้ข้ไบ๏ผ่ชๅทฑๅ้ ๅขๅๅจไบ้ซ็็ไฝ็ฝฎไธใ โๆฑๆญโฆโฆโๅญฃ้ๅธ็พๆงๅ็ผ๏ผโๆไธๅพไธ้ฃๆจฃใโ ๅฅนๅฐทๅฐฌ็้ๆ็ต่่กฃ่ง๏ผๅป็ช็ถๆ่ญๅฐ่ชๅทฑ่บซไธ็่กฃๆๅทฒ็ถๆไบใ ไนๆฏ๏ผๆธพ่บซๆบผไนไน้ซๅ ฎๅ ฎ็๏ผๆ้บผไธๅบ๏ผ ๅฏๆฏ่ชฐ็ตฆๅฅนๆ็๏ผไธๆๆฏโฆโฆ โๆจๆๆฏ่ฎไฟๅง็ตฆไฝ ๆด็ๆพก๏ผๆไบ่กฃๆใโ่จฑ็ๅปท่ฆๅฅนๅๅๅฐ็ฏ่่กฃๆๅบ็ฅ๏ผ่้่ถไพ่ถ็ด ๏ผๅฐฑ็ๅฐไบๅฅนๅจๆณไป้บผใ โ่ฌใ่ฌ่ฌใโ่ขซ็็ฉฟๅฟ่ฃกๆๆณ๏ผๅญฃ้ๅธๆด็พๆฅไบใ ๅฅฝๅจ่จฑ็ๅปทๆฒๅ็นผ็บ่จ่ผ๏ผ่ๆฏ็ช็ถๆ่ตทๅฆไธไปถไบ๏ผโไฝ ๆฏไธๆ็ฎๅ้ซ้ขไบๅ๏ผโ โ็ญๆ้ๅ งๆๅฏ่ฝ็ขบๅฏฆๅไธๅปไบใโๅฅนๅฏฆ่ฉฑๅฏฆ่ชชใ ้ซ้ข็ๅทฅไฝ้่ฆ่ฑ่ฒปๅคง้ๆ้ๅๅ จ้จ็ฒพๅ๏ผไฝๅทฅ่ณๅฐๆผ็พๅจ็ๅฅนไพ่ชชๅปๆฏๆฏๆฐด่ป่ช๏ผๅๅ ไธ็ถ่ฆช็ๅคๅฑ้ๆชๆดๅท๏ผๅญฃ้ๅธไธ่ฝๆๆ้ๅ จ้จไบคไปฃๅจ้ฃ่ฃกใ ่จฑ็ๅปท็่กจๆ ๆดๅทไบ๏ผโ้ฃไฝ ็็ ไบบๆ้บผ่พฆ๏ผๅ้่ๅปข๏ผๅญฃ้ซ็ๆชๅ ๅคชไธ่ฒ ่ฒฌใโ ไป้บผ็ ไบบ๏ผไปๅๆๅฐฑๆฏๅจ่ชชไป่ชๅทฑ๏ผ ๅญฃ้ๅธไฝไธ้ ญ๏ผโๅฆๆ่จฑๅ ็้่ฆๅฌ็ ็่ฉฑ๏ผๅฏไปฅ้จๆ่ฏ็นซๆ๏ผ่ฝไพๆไธๅฎไพใโ ไน็ฎๆฏๅ ฑ็ญไป้ๆฌก็ๆๅฝไนๆฉไบใ โๆฏๅ๏ผๅฏไฝ ็้ป่ฉฑๆไธ้๏ผๆถๆฏไนไธ็ดๆช่ฎใโ ๅญฃ้ๅธไธๆฃ๏ผๆณ่ตทไบไป้บผ๏ผๅฐทๅฐฌ้๏ผโๆฑๆญ๏ผๆ็ๆๆฉไธไน ๅๅฃไบโฆโฆโ่ขซ้ฃ็พค่ฟฝๅต็็ ธไบ๏ผ้ๆฒไพๅพๅ่ฒทๆฐ็ใ ่จฑ็ๅปท็บไบ็บ็๏ผ้กฏ็ถไนๆณๅฐไบ็พไธๅญฃ้ๅธ็็ผ็ฝ๏ผไปๆฒๆๅคๅ๏ผๅชๆฏๅซไบไบบ้ฒไพๅฉๅไบไป้บผ๏ผๅพๅฟซ้ฃไบบๅบๅปๅ้ฒไพ๏ผๆ่ฃกๅคไบไธ้จๆๆฉใ ่จฑ็ๅปทๆๆๆฉไบค็ตฆๅญฃ้ๅธ๏ผโไปฅๅพ็จ้ๅ่ฏ็นซใโ โๅ๏ผโๆ้บผ่ฝๅนณ็ฝ็กๆ ๆฟไบบๅฎถๆฑ่ฅฟ๏ผๅญฃ้ๅธ็ฌฌไธๅๆๆฏๆ็ตใ ๅป่ขซ่จฑ็ๅปทๅถๆญข๏ผโๅ ๅฅๆฅ่ๆ็ต๏ผๆ้ๆไธไปฝๅ็ด่ฆๅไฝ ๅ่ญฐใโ โไป้บผๅ็ด๏ผโ โ้ฆๅ ๏ผๆ้กๆๆฏๆๆฏไปไฝ ไบๅ่ฌใโ ไป้บผ๏ผ ๅญฃ้ๅธ็ๅคง็ผ็็ไป๏ผไธ่้้ฉใ ้จๅณๅฅนๆ่ญๅฐไป้บผ๏ผ้ฉๅฐๆฏ้่ขซๅญๅฐ่ชๅทฑ่ฃน็ท๏ผๅช้ฒๅบไธ้่ญฆๆ็็ผ็ใ ๆถๆถ็่ฒ้ณ้่ๆฃ่ขซๅณไพ๏ผโ่จฑๅ ็๏ผๆไธ่ณฃ่บซ็ใโ ็่ไปๆญฃๆดพ็็็ผๅๆฅๆฅ็่กฃๅ ๏ผๅญฃ้ๅธๅฟ้๏ผๆฒๆณๅฐไนๅชๆฏๅไบบๆจก็ๆจฃ็็ทไบบใ ่จฑ็ๅปทๆฒ้ปไบๆๅ ๏ผ็ช็ถ่ซๅ็ฌไบไธ๏ผโๆฏๅ๏ผๅ ้ขไนไธๅฏไปฅๅ๏ผๅช้่ฆๆฏๆโฆโฆโ ไผด้จ่ไป่ถไพ่ถ้ฒ้ชจ็็ผ่จ๏ผๅญฃ้ๅธ็ธๆฏไธ่ฌ๏ผโ็ถ็ถไธๅฏไปฅ๏ผโ โๅช้่ฆๆฏๆ็ตฆๆๅฌ็ ใโ็ทไบบๅพๅพ่ฃๅ ๅฎๆดใ ๅญฃ้ๅธๅตไฝใ โๅญฃ้ซ็ๆณๅฐๅช่ฃกๅปไบ๏ผโ่จฑ็ๅปท็่ๅฅน็พๆฅ็็ผ๏ผ่ชๆฐฃๆถๆ๏ผโๆๅชๆฏๆณ่่ซไฝ ๅๆ็็งไบบ้ซ็่ๅทฒ๏ผ็ข็ซไฝ ๆฏ้ๅไธ็ไธๅฏไธ่ฝ่ฎๆ็ก่็ไบบใโ ็ฐฝๅๅ็ๆๅ๏ผๅญฃ้ๅธ็่้ๅ ็บๅฐทๅฐฌ็ผ่็ด ใ ไฝๅๆๅฅนไนๆๅฐ้ฃไปฅ็ฝฎไฟก๏ผ่จฑๅ ็ๅฑ ็ถ็็้ไบๆ่ชไบๅ่ฌ่่ซๅฅนๅ็งไบบ้ซ็๏ผ่ๅฅน็ๅทฅไฝๅ ๅ ๆฏๆฏๆไพ็ตฆไปๅฌ็ ่ๅทฒ๏ผ้็ฐก็ดๆฏๅคฉไธๆ้คก้ค ็ไบๆ ใ ่ซทๅบ็ๆฏ๏ผไบๅ่ฌ๏ผๆญฃๆฏ้ฃๅๅ็ธฝ่ฆ่ฒท่ตฐๅฅน็ๅนๆ ผใ โ่ฌ่ฌ่จฑๅ ็ใโๅญฃ้ๅธๆฑ่ๆฐๆๆฉ๏ผ็ผ็ไบฎไบฎ็็่ไปใ ็่ๅฅน็ด ๆฒๆฒ็่้ ฐ๏ผ็ทไบบ็ผ็ฅไธๆ๏ผ้จๅณ็งป้็ฎๅ ๏ผโๅฏ๏ผๆไธ่จๅพๆบๆๅฐ๏ผ็พๅจๆฏไผๆฏ้ๆฏ้ข้๏ผ้ฝ้จๆใโ ๅญฃ้ๅธ็ซๅปไพทไฟ้๏ผโๆๅพๅฟซๅฐฑ่ตฐใโ โโฆโฆๅฏใโ ๅญฃ้ๅธๅบไบ้๏ผๆ็ผ็พ้่ฃกๆฏ้ๅ็ไธๆฃ็งไบบๅฅๅข ๏ผ็งๅฏๆงๅพๅผท๏ผๅ่จฑๅ ็้ๅไบบไธๆจฃ็ฅ็งใ ็ฅ็งๅฐๅณไฝฟไฝ็บไธปๆฒป้ซๅธซ็บไปๆฒป็ไบไธๅๆ๏ผๅญฃ้ๅธ้ๆฏไธๆธ ๆฅไป็่บซไปฝ๏ผๅช็ฅ้ไปๅฟ็ขไธๅฏๆ๏ผๆ่ฉฒๆฏๅๆๅไบบๅฃซใ ๅฅน็จๆฐๆๆฉ็ปๅ ฅไบ่ชๅทฑ็็คพไบค่ณฌ่๏ผๅพๅฟซๅฝๅบไธๅคงๅ ๆช่ฎๆถๆฏใ ๅ ถไธญๆๅ็ด ่ฒ็้ ญๅๆ ผๅค้็ฎ๏ผๆฏๅฅน็ๆชๅฉๅคซ่จฑๅฎถๆฆฎ๏ผๅญฃๅฎถๅบไบๅพ๏ผๅญฃ้ๅธไธ็ดๆฒ่ฝ่ฏ็นซไธไปใ ็พๅจไปๅป็ผไพ๏ผ้ๅธ๏ผๆๅคฉไธๅไธ้ป๏ผ็่ผ้ ๅบ1306่ฆใ ๆฏๆจๅคฉ็ๆถๆฏใ ็ฌฌ3็ซ ไธๅค็ตฆไฝ ไธ่ฌ ่ท้ขไธ้ป้ๆไธๅๅฐๆ๏ผๅญฃ้ๅธ็ไธไธๅฐๅ๏ผๅพ้่ฃกๆ่ป้ๅปๅๅฅฝไพๅพๅใ ่ฆๅปๅ๏ผๅฅนๅฟ่ฃก็ช็ช็่ทณใ ๆจๅคฉ้ฃๅๆญป่ฅ่ฑฌ็ท็่ฉฑ้ๆญทๆญทๅจ่ณ๏ผไป่ชช่จฑๅฎถๆฉๅฐฑ้ๅฉไบใ ๅฏๅญฃ้ๅธๅฃๆ นๆฒๆถๅฐ้็ฅ๏ผๅ ๆญคๅฐฑ็ฎ่จฑๅฎถๆฆฎ่ฃๆญปไบไธๅๆ๏ผๅฅน้ไธ็ด่ชๆฌบๆฌบไบบ่ฌๆฑ่ๆๅพ ใ ๅญฃๅฎถๅฐไธ่กฐไบก๏ผ่ฌไธ่จฑๅฎถไน้ๅฐไบ้บป็ ฉๅข๏ผๆ่ ๆฏๆๅฟๅๅฐ็ฝ้ฃ๏ผ็ญ้้ฃๅญ้ขจ้ ญ้ไบ๏ผไปๅฐฑๆ่ฏ็นซๅฅนไบๅข๏ผ ๅญฃๅฎถๅ่จฑๅฎถๅจ็บ็บ่ผฉๆพๆฏไธไบค๏ผๅญฃ้ๅธๅ่จฑๅฎถๆฆฎๆดๆฏ่ชๅฐๅฐฑๅฎไธไบๅจๅจ่ฆช๏ผๅ ฉไบบ้ๆข ็ซน้ฆฌ๏ผๆๆ ไธๅบฆๆฏ็่็๏ผๅญฃ้ๅธๅจๅฟ่ฃก็ขบๅฏฆๆพ็ๅฟๆไป็ถๅๆชไพไธๅคซใ ๅ ๆญค้ๆทๆฃ่ๅคฉ็็ๆๅพ ๅไฟกไปปใ ๅฅนๆ็ตๅซไบๅ็ถฒ็ด่ปๅบ็ผไบใ ็ก่ซ้ๅฉไธไบๆฏ็ๆฏๅ๏ผๅฅนๅฆไปๅญค็ซ็กๆด๏ผ่บซ่ฒ ้ ๅต๏ผๅณไฝฟๆฏๆๅพไธ้ปๅธๆไน่ฆๆๆก๏ผ ็ถฒ็ด่ปไธ๏ผๅธๆฉๆญๆพ่ๆๆฟๅปฃๆญ๏ผไธปๆไบบๆญฃๅจๆญๅ ฑไบฌๅธๆฐไปปๅธ้ท๏ผๆฏๅฆไฝๆฐๅฎไธไปปไธๆ็ซ๏ผ้ ไฝไบไธๅฐๅฉๆฐๆฐๆฟ็ญไธ่ชช๏ผ้ๆไบไธๅคงๆน่ฒชๅฎๆฑๅ๏ผๅ ถไธญ่ฝๆบ้จ้จ้ทๅญฃ็ฅฅๅ๏ผๆดๆฏ่ขซ่ๅ ฑ่ฒชๆฑๅ ฌๆฌพ้ซ้ๅๅๅ๏ผ่ๅ้้ฉใ ๅญฃ้ๅธ็ท็ทๅฌ่ๅ๏ผ็ผ็ถๆณ็ด ใ ๆฏๆฐๅธ้ทๆไบ็ถ่ฆชใ ่ชช่ตทไพ๏ผไนๅๅฅนๆ่ฟทๅ๏ผๅฅฝๅๆฏ้ฑ้ฑ็ด็ด่ฝๅฐไบไป้บผๅธ้ทไป้บผๅชณๅฉฆไน้ก็ใ ๅฏ็ถๆๆทฑๅค่ๆถผ๏ผๅจๅๅชๆไธ่ผ่ปไธๆๆดปไบบ๏ผๅคงๆฆ้ซ็็ข็็้ฏ่ฆบๅงใ ๅฆๆ่ฝ่ฆๅฐ้ฃไฝๅธ้ทๅฐฑๅฅฝไบ๏ผๅฅน็็ๅพๆณ็ญ่งฃๆธ ๆฅ็ถ่ฆช่ฒชๆฑๆกไปถ็ๅงๆซ๏ผๆณ็ฅ้้ฃไบๆ่ฌ็ขบ้ฟ็่ญๆ้ฝๆฏๅพไฝ่ไพใ ๅฅนๆฏ็ถ่ฆช็ๅฅณๅ ๏ผๆๆธ ๆฅ็ถ่ฆช็ไบบๅ๏ผไปๆฏ็ตๅฐๅไธๅบ่ฒชๆฑๅ ฌๆฌพ้็จฎไบๆ ็๏ผ ไฝไปฅๅฅน็พๅจ็่บซไปฝ๏ผๆณ่ฆ้ฃไฝๅธ้ทไธ้ข๏ผๆๆ้ฃๅฆ็ปๅคฉใ ่ปๅๅจไบ็่ผ้ ๅบ้ๅฃ๏ผๅญฃ้ๅธไธ่ปๅพ๏ผๆ็ ง้็่ๅพๅฟซไพๅฐ็ดๅฎๅฐ้ปใ ๆฟ้ๆฒๆ้ๅด๏ผๆ่ฉฒๆฏ่จฑๅฎถๆฆฎๅทฒ็ถๅฐไบ๏ผๅจ็ญๅฅนใ ๅญฃ้ๅธๆฒๅคๆณ๏ผ็ดๆฅๆจ้ไบ้ใ ๆฟ้่ฃกๅปไธ็ๆผ้ปใ ้ฃ้่จฑๅฎถๆฆฎ้ๆฒๅฐ๏ผ ๅญฃ้ๅธ็ฅๆ็ๆ๏ผไธ้ๅพ่ฃก่ตฐไธ้ๆธ็ดข้้ใ ็ช็ถๅฅนไผธๅบ็ๆ่ ่ขซ็ๅฐๆฅไฝใ ๆไบบ๏ผ ๅญฃ้ๅธ็็ถ็ๅคง็ผ๏ผ้ฉๅซ้ๆฒไพ็ๅๅๅบๅฃ๏ผๅฐฑ่ขซๆไฝๅฃ้ผป๏ผๅผทๅถๆ้ฒไบไธๅๅ ่ฃธ็ๆทๆฑใ โๅๅๅ๏ผโๅฅนๆผๅฝๆๆ๏ผๅปๅฎๅ จๆตไธ้ๅฐๆน็ๅๆฐฃ๏ผๅฟ่ฃก้ฉๆผไธ็ใ โๅช๏ผโ็่ขซๆ้ไบใ ๅญฃ้ๅธ็ๆธ ไบไพไบบ๏ผ่ตซ็ถๆฏ่จฑๅฎถๆฆฎ๏ผ ๅฐไธๅฅน้ฃไปฅ็ฝฎไฟก็็ผ๏ผ่จฑๅฎถๆฆฎ็ฐ็ฌไธ่ฒ๏ผ็ ฐ็ๆ้่ธขไธ๏ผ็ทๆฅ่ๆๅญฃ้ๅธๆๅจไบ็ไธใ โ้ๅธ๏ผๆๅฅฝๆณไฝ ใโ่จฑๅฎถๆฆฎ็ท่ฒผ่ๅฅน่บซ้ซ๏ผ็ผ็ฑ็้ผปๆฏๅด็ๅจๅญฃ้ๅธ็่ๅญไธ๏ผ่ฎๅฅนๆธพ่บซ็ผๆฏใ ๅฅนๆๆ็ๆจ่ไป๏ผโ่จฑๅฎถๆฆฎ๏ผไฝ ๅนนไป้บผ๏ผโ โๅนนไป้บผ๏ผ้ไธๆๆบ่ใโ่จฑๅฎถๆฆฎ่ชช่๏ผๅฑ ็ถ้ๅงๆๆฏๅฅน็่กฃๆใ ๅญฃ้ๅธๆ็ถ๏ผๅจ้ฉๆไนไธ๏ผ็ ง่ไป่ฃธ้ฒ็่ฉ่็ ็ ๅฌไบไธๅป๏ผ โๅถโโโๅ็็็ๆ๏ผ่ฎ่จฑๅฎถๆฆฎไธๆ่ญๆจ้ๅฅน๏ผๅญฃ้ๅธ่ถๆฉ้้ขไป็ๆ็ธ๏ผ้่บซๆ่ตทๅบ้ ญๆซ็ๆชฏ็๏ผ่ญฆๆ็็ฏ่ไปใ ไปๅๅฆไปๅฉ็ดๆฏๅฆๅๅญๅฏฆไบก้ฝไธไธๅฎๅข๏ผๅญฃ้ๅธๆ้บผๅฏ่ฝ่ทไปๅ๏ผ ่จฑๅฎถๆฆฎๅฌ็ๅ้ฝ๏ผโๅญฃ้ๅธ๏ผไฝ ๆทช่ฝๅฐๅฆไป้ๅๅฐๆญฅ๏ผ้ไธ่ฏ่ทๆ็ก๏ผโ โ็ถๅๆๅไฝ ๅญฃๅฎถ็ๅฉๅ๏ผ่ฎ่ไฝ ๅฐฑ็ฎไบ๏ผ็พๅฆไปไฝ ๅฎถ้ฝๅฐ้ๆญฅ็ฐๅฐไบ๏ผไฝ ้ๆไป้บผๅฏ็ๆ็๏ผๆญๆญๆๆ่ฃๅๆธ ้ซ๏ผโ ๅญฃ้ๅธ่ขซ็พ่พฑๅพๆธพ่บซ้กซๆ๏ผ็ช่ไป๏ผโๆๅชๅไฝ ๏ผ่จฑๅฎถๆฏไธๆฏ้ๅฉไบ๏ผ๏ผโ ่่จ๏ผ่จฑๅฎถๆฆฎ่ผ่ไธ็ฌ๏ผ็่ๅญฃ้ๅธ็็ผ็ฅๆดๆฏไธๅ ๆฉ้ฃพ็้ฒ้ชจ๏ผโไธ็ถๅข๏ผไฝ ไปฅ็บไฝ ็พๅจ้้ ๅพไธๆ๏ผๅญฃ้ๅธ่ชๆธ ็พๅฏฆๅง๏ผ่ทไบๆ๏ผไปฅๅพไธๅค็ตฆไฝ ไธ่ฌๅฆไฝ๏ผโ ๅญฃ้ๅธๆฐฃ็ด ไบ็ผ๏ผๆก่ๆชฏ็็ๆ้ฝๅจ็ผๆ๏ผโ่จฑๅฎถๆฆฎ๏ผๆไปฅๅๆ้บผๆฒ็ผ็พไฝ ้้บผๅๅฟ๏ผโ โๅต๏ผๆ็ไฝ ๆฏๆฌ้ ไธๅๅ็ฝฐ้ ๏ผโ่ชชๅฎ๏ผไป็ดๆฅ่กไธไพ๏ผๅญฃ้ๅธ่่ตทๆชฏ็็ ธ๏ผๅป่ขซ็ทไบบไธๆๆไฝ๏ผๅๆๅฐๅฅนๆงๅถใ ๅ้ๅคชๆธๆฎไบ๏ผๅญฃ้ๅธ้กซๆ่ๅฌๅ๏ผ็ฎ้ฒๆจๅ ใ ้ๆ๏ผ่จฑๅฎถๆฆฎ่คฒๅ ่ฃก็้ป่ฉฑ้ด้ฟไบใ ไปไธไปฅ็บ็ถ๏ผ้ป่ฉฑ่ชๅๆๆท๏ผไฝ็ทๆฅ่ๅ้ฟ่ตทไธๅ็นๆฎ็้ด่ฒใ ่จฑๅฎถๆฆฎๅไฝไธ้ ๏ผๅฌ็ๅ้ฝ็็ฉบๅบๆๆฅ้้ป่ฉฑ๏ผโ็บ็บใโ ๅฐ้ขๅจๅด็่ฒ้ณๅณๅบ๏ผๅญฃ้ๅธ้ขๅพๅคช่ฟไน่ฝ่ฝ่ฆใ โๅฎถๆฆฎๅ๏ผไฝ ๅฐๅๅไบฌๅธไธไปปไนๆไธๅๅคๆไบ๏ผไปๆ่พฆๅฎถๅฎด๏ผไฝ ็พๅจ็ซๅปๅไพใโ ็ฌฌ4็ซ ่จฑๅฎถๅฐๅ ่จฑ่็บๅญๆฏ่จฑๅฎถ็็ๆญฃๆๆฌ่ ๏ผๅจๅดไธ่จ่ๅป๏ผไปฅ่ณๆผ่จฑๅฎถๆฆฎๅฆไป็ฎญๅจๅผฆไธ๏ผไนไธๅพไธๅๆๆฏ้ผใ ๅญฃ้ๅธ่ถๆฉๆ่ซ้ไป็ๆ็ธ๏ผๆด็ๅฅฝ่บซไธ็่กฃๆใ ่ฆ็๏ผ่จฑๅฎถๆฆฎๅท็ฌ๏ผโ้ๆฌกๅ ๆพ้ไฝ ๏ผๅญฃ้ๅธไฝ ๅฅฝๅฅฝๆณๆณๅง๏ผๅๆ็ๅฅณไบบๆๆฏไฝ ็ๆไฝณ้ธๆ๏ผไธ็ถๆ็ฌฌไธๅๅ็ธฝๅฐฑๆๆ็ฌฌไบๅ๏ผไฝ ไปฅ็บๆฌกๆฌก้ฝ่ฝ้ๅพๆๅ๏ผโ ่ฝไปๆ่ตทๅ็ธฝ๏ผๅญฃ้ๅธ้ฃไปฅ็ฝฎไฟก๏ผโไฝ ็ฅ้๏ผโ โ็ถ็ถ๏ผไฝ ๅฏ็ฅไฝ ้ฃๅฅฝๅๅ็ๆๅธ้็ตฆ้ๅคๅฐไบบ๏ผๅฆไปๅๅญ่ฃก่ชฐไบบไธ็ฅ๏ผไฝ ๅญฃๅฎถๅคงๅฐๅงๆฏๅไบๅ่ฌๅฐฑ่ฝ่ฒท่ตฐ็ไพฟๅฎ่ฒจ๏ผโ ๅญฃ้ๅธ็ฌ้็ฝไบ่๏ผ็ผๅบ็ๆจๆไธๅ ๆฉ้ฃพใ ไฝ่จฑๅฎถๆฆฎๅปไธไปฅ็บๆ๏ผๅคฑๅปไบๅญฃ็ฅฅๅๅบ่ญท็ๅญฃ้ๅธๅฐฑๆฏไธ้ปๅผฑๅฐ็ๅ ๅญ๏ผไบบไบบ้ฝ่ฝ่ธฉไธ่ ณ๏ผไธ้ปๅ ๅญ่ฝๆไป้บผๅๆ่ฝๅๅข๏ผ โๅญฃ้ๅธ๏ผๆณๆธ ๆฅไบ้จๆ่ฏ็นซๆใโ ่จฑๅฎถๆฆฎๆไบๆๆๆฉ๏ผๅขๅจๅฟ ๅพ็็ไบๅฅนไธ็ผ๏ผ่ฝ่บซ้ข้ใ ๅญฃ้ๅธๆญปๆญป็ฏ่ไป๏ผๅจ็ทไบบ่ฝ่บซไน้๏ผ็ช็ถๆด่ตท่่ๆไธญๆชฏ็็ ็ ็ ธไบไธๅป๏ผ ไธ่ฒๅทจ้ฟ๏ผ็ด ๆผฟ่ช่จฑๅฎถๆฆฎ้ ญ้ ๆตไธ๏ผๅ้ไป็็ถ็ชๅคง็้็ผ๏ผ่ฝๅฐๅฐ้ขไธใ ็ทไบบๆฝๆ่ๅๅฐใ ๅญฃ้ๅธๅพ็ฅๅพ่ฆบ๏ผ้กซๆ่่ตฐๅฐไป่บซ้๏ผ่นฒไธ่บซ่ฉฆๆข้ผปๆฏใ ้ๆดป่ใ ๆพไบๅฃๆฐฃ๏ผๅญฃ้ๅธ็ซ่ตท่บซ๏ผๅฑ ้ซ่จไธ็ไบไปๅ ฉ็ง๏ผๅไธ่งฃๆฐฃๅฐๅพ้ฃๅ ฉ่ ฟไน้ไพไบไธ่ ณใ โฆ ่จฑๅฎถใ ไบฌๅธไฝ็บHๅ้ฆ้ฝ๏ผ็กๆธ่ฑช้ไธๅฎถ็ดฎๆ นๆผๆญค๏ผๅ ถไธญ่จฑๅฎถๆฏ็ถไน็กๆง็่ฑช้ไน้ฆ๏ผๅ ๆญค้ไธๅนดไธๅบฆ็ๅฎถๅฎด๏ผไน่่พฆๅพๆฅตๅ ถ้ชๅผตๅฅข่ฏใ ไธ่ผ้ป่ฒ็ด ๆL9ๅๅจไบๅคง้ๅฃ๏ผ็ฎกๅฎถ้ฃๅฟไพๅนซๅฟๆ้่ป้๏ผ็ทไบบไผธๅบ้ท่ ฟไธ่ปใ โไบ็บๅไพไบ๏ผ่็บๅจๅฑ่ฃกๅข๏ผ็พไธ้คไบๅฎถๆฆฎๅฐ็บ๏ผๅ ถไปไบบไน้ฝๅฐไบใโ ่จฑ็ๅปท่่จ๏ผๆไป้ป้ป้ ญ๏ผๅพ็ดๅพๅฑ่ฃก่ตฐใ ็ถ่ๅ้ ่ฟไธปๅฑ๏ผ่ฃก้ข็ๅต้ฌง่ฒๅฐฑๅณไบๅบไพใ ๆฏไป็ถ่ฆช๏ผ่จฑๅฎถๅฎถไธป็่ฒ้ณ๏ผโ้ฃๆทท่ณฌๆฑ่ฅฟ๏ผๅฉ้ฝ้ไบ้้่ฆๅปๆๆนไบบๅฎถ๏ผ้้ฌงๅฐๅฑๅญ่ฃกๅปไบ๏ผ็ฐก็ดไธ็กๆ่จฑๅฎถ้ก้ข๏ผโ โ็ธ๏ผไนไธ่ฝๆชๆๅๅฎถๆฆฎๅ๏ผๅณไฟกไบบ่ชชไป่ ฆ่ข้ฝ่ขซๆ็ ดไบ๏ผๅๆๆฏๅๅฎณ่ ๏ผๆ็ๆฏ้ฃๅงๅญฃ็๏ผๅฎถ่ฃกๅบไบๆณ่ฆๆ่ๆๅ่จฑๅฎถไธๆพ๏ผ็ณพ็บๅฎถๆฆฎๅข๏ผโ ่จฑ็ๅปท็ซๅจ้ๅฃๆฒ้ฒๅป๏ผ็บ็ๅ๏ผโๆ้บผๅไบ๏ผโ ่็ฎกๅฎถๅฐทๅฐฌ้๏ผโ่ฝ่ชชๆฏๅฎถๆฆฎๅฐ็บ่ขซไปๅๆชๅฉๅฆป็ ธ็ ดไบ่ ฆ่ข๏ผไบบๅฎถๅงๅจๆไบ120๏ผ็ตๆๆ่ญท่ปๆฒๅฐ๏ผๅฐ็บ่ชๅทฑ้ไบ๏ผๆ่้ฃๅงๅจ้่ฆๅ ฑ่ญฆ๏ผ็พๅจไบบ่ขซๅฐๅจๅฑๅญ่ฃกๅขใโ โไปๆข็ถๆฏๅๅฎณ่ ๏ผๅ็บไป้บผๆ่ขซๆฃๅจ่ญฆๅฑใโ โๅ ็บ้ฃๅงๅจ่ท่ญฆๅฏ่ชชไป่ฉฆๅไพต็ฏๅฅนโฆโฆโ ่จฑ็ๅปทๅท็ฌ๏ผ้จๅณๆจ้่ๅ ฅใ ่ๆญคๅๆ๏ผไปๅคงๅฅ่จฑๆบ๏ผไผฐ่จไนๆฏ่ฆบๅพๅฎถๅฎด้ฌงๅบ้ไบๅฏฆๅจไธไบบ๏ผๆ่ๆญฃๆ็ๅ็ญ็ๅฆปๅญ๏ผๅธ้๏ผโไฝ ๅฅ่ชชไบ๏ผ็พๅจ็ถๅไนๆฅๆฏๆๅฎถๆฆฎๆฅๅไพใโ ไปๅคงๅซ็ด ่็ผ๏ผโ่ญฆๅฏไธ่ฏๆพไบบๆๆ้บผๆฅ๏ผโ โๆๅปๆฅใโๅฐๅท็่ฒ้ณๆๆทไปๅใ โ็ๅปท๏ผโ่จฑๆบๅฐทๅฐฌ็ฌ้๏ผโไฝ ไพไบ๏ผไนๆฏ๏ผไฝ ๅฆไปๆฏๅธ้ท๏ผๅจ่ญฆๅฑ้ฃ้็้ขๅญ่ช็ถๆฏๆๅๅฅฝ็จใโ ่จฑ็ๅปทไธ็ฝฎๅฏๅฆ๏ผ็ฅๆ ๅทๆทก็่ทไธปไฝไธ็่็บๅญๆไบๅๆๅผใ ่ญฆๅฑ๏ผๅญฃ้ๅธๅๅจๅ่จฑๅฎถๆฆฎไธๆฌๆไน้็ๆฟ้่ฃก๏ผๅท็ผ็่ไป็ผ็ใ ๅฐๆญค่ญฆๅฏไน้ ญ็ผ๏ผไปๅๅไฝๅๆณๅพ็ฝช่จฑๅฎถ๏ผๅญฃ้ๅธ้็ถๆง่จด่จฑๅฎถๆฆฎไพต็ฏๆช้๏ผไฝๅฐๅบๆฟไธๅบๅฏฆ่ณช็่ญๆ๏ผๆฌไพๆ่ฒๆ่ฒๅฐฑๅฏไปฅๆพไบบใ ไฝ่จฑๅฎถๆฆฎไธๅๅฌ็ๆ ฃ้ค็ๅคงๅฐ็บ๏ผ้ๆฏ็ฌฌไธๆฌก่ขซไบบ้็ข๏ผๅช่ฃกๅฝ็ไธ้ๅฃๆฐฃ๏ผ ้่ฆๅผท็ๅจ้่ฃกๆญป็บ็ๆ๏ผ่ฆๅญฃ้ๅธๅ็ข๏ผไธ็ถๅฐฑ่ณ ๅไปไบ็พ่ฌใ ไบ็พ่ฌ๏ผๅฐฑๆไป้ ญ้ ้ฃ่ผๅท้ฝ็ฎไธไธ็ๅฃๅญ๏ผ้ไธๆ็ฌๅใ ๆณไธ็ฝชๅ้็กๆณๆ็ซ๏ผไฝไบบๅฎถๅงๅจ่บซไธ็ๆทค้ๅ็ ด็ข็่กฃๆๆฏๅฏฆๆๅฏฆ็๏ผ็ ธไปๅฎๅ จๆฏๅๆณ่ชไฟ๏ผไปๅ้ฌงไนๆฒ็จๅใ ่ญฆๅฑๅคๅณไพๅ้๏ผๆไบบๅฐ่ท้ฒไพ๏ผโ้้ท๏ผ่จฑๅฎถไพไบบไบใโ โ่ชฐไพไบ๏ผโ โๅฅฝๅๆฏ่จฑๅฎถไบ็บใโ ่ญฆ้ทๅฐๅพ่ตท่บซ๏ผโ้ไธๅฟซ่ซ้ฒไพ๏ผโ ๅญฃ้ๅธ่่จๆฟ็ทไบๅ๏ผ็ฅๆ ้ฒๅใ ่จฑๅฎถไบ็บ๏ผ้ฃไธๅฐฑๆฏ่จฑๅฎถๆฆฎ็ๅฐๅ๏ผ่ฏๅฎๆฏไพๆไป็ใ ้่ขซๆจ้๏ผ็ทไบบ้ซๅคง็่บซๅฝฑๅบ็พๅจ้ๅฃ๏ผๅญฃ้ๅธ่ญฆๆๅฐๆ้ๅป๏ผๅป็ๅฐไบไธๅผตๆๆไนๅค็็ๆ็่ใ ๅฅนไบบๅปไบใ ๆ้บผๆฏ่จฑ็ๅปท๏ผ ...... ๆฅไธไพๆ็ผ็ไป้บผ๏ผ ้่ฃกๆพ็็ซ ็ฏๆ้๏ผ้ป้ธไธๆนๆ้ๅฎ่ฃApp๏ผ็นผ็บ้ฑ่ฎๆดๅค็ฒพๅฝฉ็ซ ็ฏ ๏ผๆ้ๆ็จ็จๅผๆๆ่ชๅ่ทณๅฐ่ฉฒๆธ๏ผ &5& | LEARN_MORE | https://fbweb.cdreader.com/130853449-fb_contact-ft | Love reading - A | https://www.facebook.com/61568188880222/ | 85 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn more | 0 | fbweb.cdreader.com | VIDEO | https://fbweb.cdreader.com/130853449-fb_contact-ft-p103_2-c2-1128-core2.html?adid={{ad.id}}&char=124213&accid=809076924536970&rawadid=120215590405040134 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-1.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/468834779_1328300775195829_8618869574740504760_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60_tt6&_nc_cat=102&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=T9cEh3B03vQQ7kNvgFxyNhd&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-1.xx&_nc_gid=AkljogfFwOJTYottsJURDvQ&oh=00_AYDY0Jpkm5QsZXRpXJb87gM1peVGmF9vXpfLGV15tbwSJQ&oe=677A65F1 | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Love reading - A | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | |||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,656,632 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2656627}' |
Yes | 2024-12-31 18:39 | active | 2174 | 0 | ๐Attention! Do not read in public๏ผ๐ | As the daughter of Alpha, I was tortured since I was 6 years old, and more tragically, I was forced to marry the demon Alpha who killed his 9 ex-girlfriends... โWhere is she?!โ Neah heard the Beta Kyle scream. She groaned and got to her feet, grabbing the cleaning basket and taking it with her. The moment he sees Neah, he strides towards her and his hand slices against her cheek. Neah doesn't make a sound as if she was used to the bully. โNeah, how useless your are! You still have not cleaned the office.โ The beta snaps. Neah nods her head and her hand tightens on the cleaning basket. If she could just find the courage to swing it at his head, it would make her day. โWe are trying to make a good impression on Alpha Dane. Do you not understand how important it is for us to join ourselves with his pack?!โ Neah doesn't answer and she just keeps her eyes low to avert his face. Alpha Dane, she had ever heard rumours about him. From what she gathered, he was a ruthless man, and he was even claimed to have killed his 9 ex-girlfriends. โHe is the Alpha of Black Shadow, the biggest pack in the world, we need him!โ Beta Kyle continues. He places his hands on Neah's shoulders, digging his nails into her thinning skin, โUseless Wolf.โ He mutters as he moves away. Quietly closing the door, Neah leans back against it, observing the already clean office. There was nothing out of place, it looked perfectly fine for a meeting with this so-called powerful Alpha. Closing her eyes, Neah slides down to the floor. She hated this house. She thought when she turned 18, she could finally escape, but four years later, here she still is, a slave in her own home. Doing all the dirty tasks for her brother, Alpha Trey and the pack. While her ex mate, Beta Kyle was always reminding her of how worthless she is. The clearing of a throat makes her jump. She thought she was alone. Leaning forward, Neah sees a handsome man sitting in a chair. A foot propped up on his knee. His short hair is dark and his eyes are a deep crimson colour, that donโt quite look right. They suddenly shift to her and she throws herself back against the door. Shrinking down to the ground. โIs this the way you greet all Alphaโs?โ His deep voice rumbles through the room, an edge of amusement to his tone. โIโm sorry.โ Neah whispers, getting to her feet. โIโฆI thought I was alone.โ She had no idea who he was but she could feel the power radiating off of him, even without her Wolf. โCome forward.โ He orders. Neah does as she's told. Allowing him to see her properly and she is met with narrowed crimson eyes. She closes her own eyes, expecting the worst. โYou smell funny. Yet you are a Wolf, correct?โ Neah's head moved up and down, though she couldnโt tell how he was going to react. Most laughed when they discovered the truth about her. โI would prefer it if you spoke to me.โ He growls, โIโm not in the mood to play games.โ โYes.โ Neah whispers. โI amโฆI am a Wolf.โ She couldnโt help but think of all the punishments she was going to have to endure. A whipping maybe? Starvation for another week? She wasnโt sure how much more her body could take. โHow is it possible for you to not know I was in the room? You should have scented me.โ โIโฆ..โ Neah hated the question. โI havenโt got all day!โ He takes a swig from his drink. She knew why she couldnโt scent him. She knew why she hadnโt been aware of his presence, but telling people why was not something she ever liked to do. They never hear her side of the story. All they do is accept Alpha Trey's word as the truth. โYou should open your eyes when you are talking to someone. Has your Alpha not taught you anything?โ His deep voice sends a shiver through her. Slowly, she opens her eyes and lowers them. There was no way she was making direct eye contact. โMy Wolf abilities were bound.โ โWhy?โ If this is the Alpha that her brother is supposed to be meeting with, she knew she could screw everything up for him by saying too much. โIt was a punishment.โ โFor what?โ His deep voice rumbles through her. โFor killing my parents.โ Neah whispered. At this moment, the door swings open abruptly and her brother screeches at her โNeah, what are you doing in my office?!" He then turns to the crimson eyed man. โI am so sorry that my sister is bothering you, Alpha Dane." Crap, it was him. Neah couldn't help but worry about the punishments she would face... | LEARN_MORE | https://wwwedb.com/market/meganovel/13?lpid=11783& | New world publications | https://www.facebook.com/100090352943774/ | 3,781 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn more | 0 | wwwedb.com | VIDEO | https://wwwedb.com/market/meganovel/13?lpid=11783&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}}&placement={{placement}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-2.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/466006044_1247243396516530_1252041975292502345_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60_tt6&_nc_cat=100&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=WCazzvTp6ecQ7kNvgFB1Kg-&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-2.xx&_nc_gid=Aq0spFD969MqsLdVMIPxMuI&oh=00_AYBJkSyox7yRx6kBasAb2TPVMzbKu7R0omnUeFJUqwwQDQ&oe=677A68EA | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | New world publications | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | |||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,656,760 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2656756}' |
No | 2024-12-31 18:39 | active | 2174 | 0 |
|
๐Attention! Do not read in public๏ผ๐ | โIโm so glad you are here tonight, Leah. I care so much about you.โ Tristan said. My husband, the Alpha of Blazewood Pack, held the beautiful blonde in his arm. I froze on my spot after seeing this. All the guests in the banquet hall were stealing glances at me, whispering and jeering. โIs that Leah Middleton?โ My maid Mandy gasped, โWhatโs she doing here?!โ My husband brought her here, obviously. Tonight was the Full Moon festival. We should have attended as Alpha and Luna, but Tristan brought her instead. Leah Middleton was Tristanโs high school sweetheart, Ironclaw Packโs Alphaโs daughter. She and Tristan were the perfect couple until Leah broke up with him. Rumors said that she cheated on him with another person. Tristan met me a year later at a party. Nobody in my family was thrilled about our relationship. But I still ran away from home and married into Blazewood Pack. We were mates, blessed by the Moon Goddess. How bad could it be? But I was wrong. So wrong. The first bump in our marriage was my miscarriage. I lost my child during a business meeting. Tristan blamed me for it. He thought I was too careless. To fix the trauma, we adopted a sweet little boy called Roman. But a child still couldnโt fix our marriage. Tristan started to grow cold to me. And now, Leah was back, my husbandโs Ex. Was she here to take him away from me? Suppressing the panic, I strode up to them. โLeah, you should leave.โ I tried to say this with as much dignity as possible. โAnd stay away from my husband.โ Leah rounded her big, innocent eyes and looked over to Tristan. โShall we tell her?โ she asked softly. I started to get a bad feeling. โTell me what?โ Tristan gave me an indifferent look, โLeah will stay here from now on.โ I couldnโt believe what I just heard. โStay here? As what? Are you out of your mind?!โ Tears quickly welled up in Leah's eyes, โI know you hate me, Evelyn. It's all my fault. But Tristan didnโt do anything wrong so please donโt yell at him.โ โDo you mind? Iโm talking to my husband!โ I snapped. โBe nice to her!โ Tristan growled. โI wonโt threaten your position. I promise.โ Leah blinked innocently, โYou can still be Luna. All I want is to stay with Tristanโฆand my child.โ The ground was slipping away underneath my feet. My legs went soft, and I couldnโt stand straight. โChild? What child?โ I asked through clenched teeth. They had a child together? How come I didn't know about this?? They exchanged a look. And then finally, Tristan spoke up, โItโs probably time to tell you the truthโฆRoman is Leah and my kid.โ I couldnโt breathe, โBut you saidโฆyou adopted Roman from an orphanage! He doesnโt have any parents!โ โIf I hadnโt said that, would you have accepted Roman and raised him as your own?โ Tristan said with a frown. โLeah couldnโt raise Roman when the kid was born. So I brought him back here. Itโs just a little harmless lie.โ A harmless lie? I poured my heart out and raised the child of the person who fucked my husband. And now she swooped in and tried to take my child and husband away. What am I? A free nanny to them? โNo, TristanโฆI donโt want her here.โ I gritted, trying hard not to let my tears fall. โThis is unacceptable. Send her away, pleaseโฆI am asking as your wife and Luna!โ โShe stays. End of discussion!โ Tristan growled. โIf she staysโฆIโm afraid that you are driving me away,โ I said, trembling. My heart was in my throat because even I couldnโt be sure whom he would choose. Tristan looked frustrated. Yet before he spoke up, Leah burst out crying. โDonโt push him! This is all my faultโฆI never want to be the third person in your marriageโฆIโI should go!โ she sobbed and turned away, running out of the banquet hall. Tristan snapped his head towards me and glared, โNow are you happy?โ Chapter 2 Evelynโs POV Tristan never bothered to check on me once. I heard that he was busy taking Leah to parties and introducing her to all his members. Then I got an unexpected call, from my best friend in college, Haley. โHey, Evelyn! Just want to check on you and see if you are still coming to Storm Fang Pack for business next week. We should find a time to meet up!โ I took in a small deep breath. I almost forgot that. For the past few years, I have been working on a huge real estate project called Carnival City with a company in Storm Fang Pack, AKA the largest and most powerful pack in the world. Originally, I planned to go over there next week and sign the contract with CEO Jason. I also wanted to catch up with Haley andโฆpossibly visit Haley's brother. Her brother, Asher Hawthorne, was no one else but the Alpha of Storm Fang Pack, the tycoon that dominated the business world. If he could advise on my project, itโd definitely help me. But now, I had completely forgotten all about that. Because of what happened with Leah. โI donโt know, HaleyโฆMaybe thereโll be a change of plan. I canโt go anymore.โ I said lowly. โWhat? Why?โ Thereโs no point hiding this with my best friend. I covered my face and choked, โโฆTristan is leaving me for another personโฆthe birth mother of our adopted child. If he does, thereโs no point for me to keep working on that projectโฆโ Although Leah was his mother by birth, I was by his side for the past 3 years. My boy would be on my side. Standing outside of the packhouse, I saw Romanโs school bus drive close. I was on this spot every day for the past 3 years, waiting for Roman to come back to school. As soon as the door opened, I started waving and calling for my boy: โRoman! Darling! Over here!โ He jumped off the school bus. But as soon as he saw me, he started running in the opposite direction. โGet away from me!โ He cried. I rushed to grab his shoulder, stunned, โWhat? Roman, whyโโ โYou want my mommy to leave! I hate you!โ he shouted, โDaddy, Mommy, and I are a real family! Not you!โ Tears welled up in my eyes. Roman knew Leah was back. And he chose her over me. โRoman, IโIโm your mom, remember?โ I choked, โI took you to the hospital when you were sick. I went to all of your parent and teacher's meetings.โ He struggled in my arms, screeching, as though he didnโt want me to touch him. Passersby stopped and stared at us. One guy even came forward and said, โMiss, please let go of the child.โ โItโs ok. Heโs my kid.โ I quickly explained. โNO!โ Roman shrieked, โYou hit me! You put my head into the toilet! You scared me! I donโt want you. I want Mommy Leah!โ I froze on my spot. I didnโt none of those stuff! Why would Roman lie about those?! Leah suddenly appeared near the front gate, with Tristan behind her back. She dashed over, crying, and held Roman tightly in her arms. โMy poor baby! Whatโve you been through!โ she wailed. โYou hit Roman?!โ Tristan growled at me, โAre you doing this because you canโt have your own child and you are jealous of Leah?โ I looked at him in shock. How could he think this way? Leah sobbed, โDonโt blame her, Tristan. I get it. People only care about their own kids. Roman and I are outsiders here. Maybe we should leaveโฆโ โYes, you do!โ I blurt out. โENOUGH!โ Tristan snarled, glaring at me. โLeahโs the person I care about and Roman is my only son! I canโt leave them. And they need me.โ I started to tremble in pain. โThen what about me, Tristan? Iโm your mate!โ โNobody says you arenโt!โ Tristan said impatiently, โYouโll still be Blazewood Packโs Luna. Sheโs not interested in your position.โ โYou wonโt even notice that Iโm in the house. I just want to stay with Tristan.โ Leah said softly. I felt dizzy. If she was the person he loved, then what did that make me? A free employee who helped him run his pack? How could I stand the pain while my husband fucked another person every day in the next room? No, I couldnโt handle that. So with a trembling hand, I started undoing my blouse, revealing my delicate collarbone. My scent quickly filled the air. I heard Tristanโs breathing suddenly become heavy. โโฆWhat are you doing?โ he gritted with sweat on his forehead. I took a step further, locking eyes with him, whispering, โDonโt you miss me? The feeling of being with your mateโฆitโs better than anything else in the world. You know that.โ The mate bond was working. He stared deep into my eyes, obsessed, and murmured, โMy mate.โ | LEARN_MORE | https://befant.com/market/buenovela/3?lpid=15862&u | Galaxy in the Story | https://www.facebook.com/61555427913037/ | 1,826 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn More | 0 | befant.com | DCO | https://befant.com/market/buenovela/3?lpid=15862&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}}&placement={{placement}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-2.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/467730157_1238869077349073_3792002446600257245_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60_tt6&_nc_cat=100&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=arVAwv0q7qUQ7kNvgHZBV72&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-2.xx&_nc_gid=Aq0spFD969MqsLdVMIPxMuI&oh=00_AYCd-Gd05rSfOGGRrZLAvEU6ORCohMppFPow6L1_9dmeAw&oe=677A50EC | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Galaxy in the Story | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,656,403 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2656411}' |
Yes | 2024-12-31 18:39 | active | 2174 | 0 |
|
He drunkenly hugged her โCall me husband again ......โ | ๐Nyla Jayston was in her third month of trying to conceive when she saw a message on her husband Clark Sumner's phone from a contact named "Jordyn Cheatham". Jordyn: [I think my new nightgown is a bit tight. Why don't you come over and check if it fits?] Attached was a selfie of a woman in a deep V-neck red slip dress, her body partly exposed, exuding seduction. Nyla's grip on the phone tightened. She scrolled up and found Clark and Jordyn's previous exchanges to be strictly work-related, which made her frown. 'Was the text sent by mistake? Orโฆ' A hand wrapped around Nyla's waist from behind, breaking her thoughts. Clark pressed his warm body against hers and gently nibbled her earlobe. "Honey, I'm all cleaned up. Do you want to do it on the couch or the bed?" Before Nyla could respond, Clark picked her up and laid her on the couch, his tall frame looming over her. "Since you're not saying anything, I'll choose. Let's do it on the couch," Clark said, his voice husky and his eyes filled with a flicker of fire that made Nyla blush instantly. Nyla was already beautiful, and the slight flush on her cheeks made her look like a tempting, ripe, juicy peach under the light. Clark's gaze grew darker. He leaned in to kiss Nyla, but she suddenly turned her head away. Sensing her resistance, he looked at her with confusion. "Honey, what's wrong?" Clark, usually assertive at work, now looked at Nyla with a mix of confusion and hurt, which softened her heart momentarily. Despite that, she hadn't forgotten the explicit selfie she had just seen. She stopped him with one hand on his chest and held up his phone with the other, showing him the screen. "Explain this first." Clark glanced at the screen and immediately frowned, grabbing the phone to make a call. It was quickly answered. "Mr. Sumner, what can I do for you?" Clark glowered, and his voice turned icy. "I didnโt know my secretary started soliciting clients." There was a moment of silence before Jordyn's panicked voice came through. "M-Mr. Sumner, I'm sorry. That message was meant for my boyfriend. I must have sent it to you by mistake..." "Next time it happens, pack your things and leave!" Clark hung up and looked back at Nyla, his expression softening, even showing a hint of grievance. "Honey, she sent it by mistake. If you're still upset, I'll fire her tomorrow. It's late now, so letโs not waste time on someone unworthy. We haven't seen each other in a week. You need to make it up to me tonight." Clark pulled Nyla in for a kiss, but her mood was ruined despite the issue being cleared up. She wasn't in the mood anymore and pushed him away. "I'm tired tonight. Let's continue tomorrow." A flash of disappointment crossed Clark's eyes, but he didn't pressure her. "Alright, you sleep first. I'm not tired yet, so I'll go to the study to handle some work." "Okay." โฆ It started raining heavily in the middle of the night. The sound woke Nyla, and she reached out only to feel the cold space beside her. She glanced at the clockโ3:16 a.m. Nyla wondered whether Clark was still working. She got up, put on a robe, and went to the study, but it was dark and empty. Her grip on the doorknob tightened, and her heart sank. Nylaโs phone suddenly chimed, startling her in the quiet night. Seeing that it was a text from a stranger, she had a gut feeling that reading it would mean no turning back for her and Clark. A thunderclap boomed outside, startling her into accidentally pressing it. [Still awake? Because your husband isn't with you?] [I was scared because of the thunder and power outage, and he came to comfort me.] [Don't you want to know where your husband is?] As Nyla read the messages and the boastful tone, her hands trembled uncontrollably. After a long while, another text came in with an address and a series of digits. Nyla bit her lip, grabbed her car keys, and drove straight there. By the time she reached the villa, it was past 4:00 a.m. She entered the code, and the door unlocked. The living room lights were on. From the entrance to the bedroom door, a man's suit and a woman's lingerie were strewn about, revealing the urgency of their actions. Seeing the torn red nightgown at the bedroom door, Nyla felt a sense of absurdity. Although the distance from the entrance to the bedroom was only a few meters, it felt like an eternity to Nyla. Standing at the bedroom door, she felt light-headed and dizzy. She reached out, trembling, and slowly pushed the slightly open door. The sight of the messy bed and the bared couple entwinedโtheir heavy breathing filling the roomโpierced Nyla's heart. The couple was so engrossed that they didn't notice her standing there. Nyla's hand on the door frame turned white from gripping it too hard, leaving red marks on her palm. She had been with Clark for eight years, from school days to marriage, envied by everyone around them. Until today, she had never imagined betrayal between them. Now, reality dealt her a cruel blow. Even the most sincere wedding vows couldn't withstand a fickle heart. Unable to bear the sight, Nyla turned and stumbled out, driving away. She stopped by a bar on the way and decided to go in. โฆ By the time Valarie Weir arrived, Nyla had already downed two bottles of whiskey, her gaze slightly unfocused. "Valarie, you're here..." Seeing Nyla surrounded by several men, Valarie frowned. "All of you, leave!" "No, they're fine hereโ" "I said, leave!" After driving the men away, Valarie sat next to Nyla. "What happened? Did Clark really cheat on you?" Valarie was Nyla's university roommate and had witnessed Nyla and Clarkโs journey from school to marriage. She had seen Clark treat Nyla well all these years, so she couldn't believe he would cheat. Upon hearing Clarkโs name, Nyla's gaze dimmed, and the heart-wrenching pain came rushing back. "I don't want to hear that name right now." Chapter 2 Nyla downed her drink in one gulp. She had never imagined Clark would betray her. Seeing him in bed with another woman felt like a dagger through her heart. "I just can't believe it. He loved you so much. He didn't seem like the type to cheat. Maybe there's a misunderstanding," Valarie suggested. Nyla let out a cold laugh. "I saw it with my own eyes. How could that be a misunderstanding?" The room fell silent. Watching Nyla drink like there was no tomorrow, Valarie grabbed the glass from her hand. "Even if he cheated, you shouldn't punish yourself by getting drunk. What are you going to do now?" "I'm getting a divorce. Just thinking about him with that woman makes me sick." Upon seeing the defiance in Nylaโs red eyes, Valarie's heart ached. "Don't think about it now. You need to rest. Decide what to do next once youโre calm. I'll take you home." Nyla shook her head. "No... I don't want to go back." Returning to that house would only bring back the sickening images of Clarkโs betrayal. Each recollection made her feel nauseous. Seeing Nylaโs reluctance, Valarie didn't insist. "I'll book you a hotel room then." โฆ After booking a room, Valarie took Nyla to the hotel entrance. "Are you sure you don't want me to take you up?" Nyla shook her head. "No, you go rest. I'll be fine." She waved with the room card and walked into the hotel. Seeing Nyla walk steadily, Valarie finally breathed a sigh of relief and drove away once Nyla was inside the hotel. What she didn't know was that Nyla, when drunk, appeared sober but was actually a mess inside. Nyla entered the elevator, scanned her card, and the elevator began to ascend. Soon, the doors opened with a ding. As Nyla stepped out onto the carpet, her legs almost gave out. She steadied herself against the wall, massaging her aching temples while searching for her room number. The wine was taking its toll, and her vision blurred. She found Room 8919 and tried the card on the door. Hearing no beep, she frowned and was about to push the door when it suddenly opened. Nyla froze. Before she could react, a large hand yanked her into the dark room. The door slammed shut, cutting off the light from the hallway. She was pressed against the door, a man's breath hot against her ear, making her shiver. The familiar scent of pine filled her senses, but before she could place it, she felt the warmth of his lips on hers. "Mmph!" Realizing what was happening, Nyla struggled. Damon was strong, and with the wine dulling her strength, her hands felt weak, almost inviting as she pushed against his chest. Damonโs hands roamed her body, leaving a trail of fire, and her body grew more responsive under his touch. Nyla tried to push him away, but he easily caught her wrists and pinned them above her head. "Letโ Mmph! Let me goโฆ" He stopped kissing her and chuckled. "No need to play hard to get." His fingers traced her collar, the cool touch making her shudder. His body heat seemed to melt her, and her legs grew weak. In the dark, Nylaโs senses heightened. She felt Damon unbuttoning her clothes, her mouth dry, her last bit of rationality warning her that this was going too far. "Let me go!" She mustered all her strength to push him, but he simply picked her up and threw her onto the bed. The bed was soft, so Nyla didnโt feel pain, but the impact made her head spin. She tried to get up, but Damon pinned her down. Soon, her clothes were gone, and they were both nearly bared. He pressed against her, ready. His dominating presence made her tremble. She pushed against his chest, biting her lip to stay calm and clear-headed. "Mister, I think I entered the wrong room. Please let me goโฆ" Nylaโs voice shook with tension. "Tsk!" Damon's voice was impatient, his tone cold. "Still playing?" He was about to get up and kick Nyla out when the room light suddenly came on. Nyla had accidentally hit the light switch in her struggle. The sudden light made Damon squint. He was shocked when he saw the terrified woman beneath him. Nyla, recognizing Damon, felt the blood drain from her face. The fear sobered her instantly. She couldnโt believe itโthe man who almost violated her was Clarkโs uncle, Damon Summer! "Uncle Damonโฆ" Nyla had always been wary of Damon. He was the youngest son of Richard Sumner and Marie Thorne, doted on by them and known for his unpredictable, cold nature. Even outsiders avoided crossing him. When she married Clark, he had warned her to steer clear of Damon. "Shut up!" Damon's face was dark, his gaze icy, as he contemplated whether to silence her for good. Then, his eyes shifted to her bare body, darkening further. He turned away, getting off the bed. "Get dressed and get out!" As Damon moved, Nyla caught a glimpse of him where she shouldn't, and her face turned red with embarrassment. Upon seeing her flushed face, Damon's expression soured even more. "Still not leaving?" Nyla could not care less about her embarrassment as she hastily dressed and left without looking back. Once outside, she checked the room number and realized her mistakeโit wasnโt Room 8919, but Room 8916! She had entered the wrong room and almost slept with her husbandโs uncle. The thought made her headache worse. She should have let Valarie take her up. Unfortunately, it was too late for regrets now. After Nyla left, Damon dialed a number with a glower on his face. "Delete all surveillance footage from the Empire Skyview Hotel tonight!" Upon hanging up, he looked at the messy bed and sheets, his irritation growing. He had almost slept with his nephewโs wife... What a mess! Chapter 3 On Nyla's way back, she hesitated for a long time before finally messaging Damon, someone whose contact she had had for three years but had never contacted. Nyla: [Uncle Damon... Can we pretend tonight never happened? I was really drunk and went to the wrong room.] She waited for a long time, but there was no response from Damon. Frowning, she sent another message. Nyla: [?] As soon as she sent it, a red exclamation mark appeared: [You are no longer friends with this user. Please send a friend request to continue chatting.] Nyla bit her lip. Damon had deleted her. He must not want to bring this up again. Relieved, she finally felt a bit of peace. โฆ When Nyla got home, it was already past 6:00 a.m. As soon as she opened the door, she saw Clark sitting on the sofa. He turned sharply at the sound of the door, his eyes bloodshot from a sleepless night. "Where were you last night? I called you dozens of times. Why didnโt you answer?" Clark stood up and walked quickly toward her, reaching out to grab her hand, but she pulled away. He froze, about to speak, but she spoke first, her tone icy. "You can stay out all night, but I can't?" Nyla had always been gentle. In their eight years together, they had hardly ever argued. This was the first time she had spoken to him so coldly. Clark sensed something was wrong and noticed her red, swollen eyes. His expression changed, and his hand clenched at his side. "You know, don't you?" His voice was calm, without a trace of guilt or panic, as if he had expected this day to come. Upon seeing his unapologetic demeanor, Nyla's long-suppressed emotions finally exploded. She swung her bag at him, her eyes red with fury, like a madwoman. All the good times they had shared, all the happy moments, were shattered the moment she saw him in bed with another woman. They could never be pieced together again. "Clark Sumner, how could you do something so disgusting?! If you didnโt love me anymore, you could have divorced me. Why did you have to hurt me like this?" Nyla had assumed that no third party could ever come between them. Unfortunately, reality gave her a harsh slap, waking her from the lies he had woven and turning her love for him into a joke. Seeing her red, tear-filled eyes, Clark felt a pang in his chest. He grabbed her hand and pulled her into his arms. "Nyla, Iโm sorry..." Nyla shoved him away, wanting to laugh but only tears came. "Donโt touch me with your filthy hands! "Is it that hard to stay faithful? "Since we got married, Iโve met many excellent men, and some have shown interest in me. But Iโve never crossed the line. If I can do it, why canโt you?!" Clark clenched his fists when he saw the disappointment and anger in her eyes. "Nyla, youโre the only one I loveโฆ It was just an accident with herโฆ" His explanation sounded so weak that Nyla found it both laughable and nauseating. "So youโre saying I could sleep with another man and then tell you it was an accident? That I may have betrayed you physically, but my heart still belongs to you?" A flash of ruthlessness crossed Clark's eyes. "If you dare, Iโll end you and that man together in bed." Seeing his icy gaze, Nyla felt a chill in her heart. If he knew betrayal was unforgivable, why would he still betray her? She took a deep breath and spoke slowly. "Do you remember what I told you when you proposed?" She had said that if he ever betrayed her, she would not forgive him but leave him. Clarkโs expression changed. "I will not let you leave!" Nyla wiped her tears, her expression a mixture of ridicule and hatred. "Whether you agree or not, Iโve made up my mind. Iโm divorcing you. You donโt deserve my forgiveness." With that, she ignored his reaction and went upstairs. Clark stared at her back, his gaze dark. โฆ Back in the bedroom, Nyla went straight to the bathroom to shower, unable to stand the smell of wine on herself. While applying body wash, she noticed red marks on her chest and paused. The image of Damonโs hands roaming her body flashed through her mind, making her frown. She scrubbed the marks hard until the skin around them turned red, trying to erase his touch. After her shower, she saw Clark sitting on the bed with his head down, lost in thought. She frowned and decided to ignore him. They would be divorced soon anyway. Clark looked up and saw Nyla coming out in just a towel. Her damp hair dripped water, her freshly washed face flushed like a blooming rose with an enticing fragrance. The towel barely covered her behinds, revealing her long, fair legs. His breath hitched, his gaze glued on her. Nyla didnโt notice Clark's reaction. She walked to the wardrobe to grab her pajamas when a pair of arms suddenly wrapped around her from behind. "Nyla..." Clark's voice was husky, filled with undisguised desire. Clark had been thinking about how to win her back downstairs after she left. The only way he could think of was to have a child with her. He had come upstairs to discuss this with her, planning to take it slow. However, he lost control upon seeing her just out of the shower. In the past, such behavior would have stirred Nyla's feelings, but all she felt now was disgust. She turned and pushed him away, her gaze full of revulsion. "Donโt touch me. I feel dirty." Hurt flashed in Clark's eyes. He grabbed her hands, his expression earnest. "Didnโt you always want a child? Letโs have one now, okay?" Nyla shook him off at his matter-of-fact attitude. "That was before. I might have a child in the future, but it wonโt be yours." Her words enraged Clark. He grabbed her and threw her onto the bed, pinning her down. "Say that again!" His eyes were full of anger, but Nyla didnโt care. "It doesnโt matter how many times I say it. Iโm disgusted by you. Iโd rather die than have your child." As soon as she finished speaking, Clark kissed her fiercely. Chapter 4 Nyla froze for a moment, then struggled desperately. Just the thought of Clark kissing another woman the night before filled her with disgust and rage. "Let go!" Her struggles were futile against Clark, who only tightened his grip around her waist. As she fought, her towel loosened, revealing her body. His gaze darkened, and he felt a rush of desire. Their bodies were pressed tightly together, and Nyla quickly noticed the change in Clark. Furious, she bit him hard, tasting blood in their mouths. Instead of letting go, Clark's other hand slipped under Nyla's towel. She had nothing on underneath, having just come out of the shower. She stiffened and struggled even more fiercely. "Clark, get off me!" Clark ignored Nyla, his fingers teasing her sensitive spots. "Nyla, you need me too, don't you?" Nylaโs struggles were in vain, and she grew increasingly desperate. As Clark positioned himself, she closed her eyes in despair. "Clark, don't make me hate you." Clark halted abruptly. Seeing Nyla filled with despair and pain, like a fragile porcelain doll about to shatter, made him pause. He wanted her desperately, but a voice in his head warned that if he took her now, it would be the end of them. He stared at her, his hand tightening around her waist. After several tense seconds, he suddenly let go and got off the bed, leaving the room quickly. The door slammed shut with a loud bang, making Nyla flinch. She clutched the blanket tightly. โฆ For the next few days, Clark didn't come home. Nyla called him several times to discuss the divorce, but he didn't respond. โฆ The weekend arrived. Nyla was in the living room, sending out job applications when she heard the front door open. Clark walked in, looking haggard. They stared at each other in silence until Nyla broke it, closing her laptop and standing up calmly. "Since you're back, let's talk about the divorce." Clark frowned. "I told you, I won't divorce you. I'm here to remind you that we have to go to the family dinner tonight." The Sumners held a monthly dinner, and ever since their wedding, Clark and Nyla had attended together. The family wasn't kind to Nyla, often treating her poorly. She endured it because she believed Clark loved her. After seeing him with another woman, however, she couldn't lie to herself anymore. "I don't want to go. Go by yourself." Clarkโs expression turned impatient. "Nyla, how long are you going to keep this up?" He had ignored her calls and messages, hoping she would calm down, but she was still the same. "I'm not keeping anything up. I just want a divorce." Upon hearing the word "divorce", Clark's patience wore thin. He looked at Nyla as if she were unreasonable. "Divorce? You haven't worked since we got married. How will you support yourself? Which company would hire you? And what about your father's exorbitant medical bills? Can you afford those? "Nyla, you're not a teenager anymore. You're 28. It's time to grow up. "I'm the CEO of the Sumner Group. I face temptations all the time. Sometimes, it's hard to resist, but those women will never take your place as my wife. What more do you want?" Clark couldn't understand why Nyla didn't see that he still loved her, even if he couldn't commit to being with her forever. Seeing Clarkโs arrogant demeanor, Nyla couldn't reconcile this man with the shy boy who had once blushed while confessing his love and promising never to hurt her. Maybe this was his true selfโselfish, proud, and condescending. "If being mature means tolerating your infidelity, then I'm sorry, I can't do that. Find someone else. Here are the divorce papers I've had drafted. Sign them when you have time." Clark glanced at the documents, sneering when he saw the section on asset division. "Quite the appetite you have, asking for half my assets. Do you really think that's possible?" "I deserve it. Why not?" Clark chuckled, his tone mocking. "Look around this house. Did you buy anything here? I've been covering your father's medical expenses for years. If we tally things up, you should be paying me. Should I have my lawyer do the math?" As Nyla watched his bitter expression, she couldn't believe she had once loved this man. He had hidden his true self so well that, until she caught him cheating, she had thought he was a great guy. "Don't forget, if it weren't for me giving you that patent, you wouldn't be the Sumner Group's CEO. And you were the one who told me to stay home after we got married. If I had continued my research, I would have earned far more than what you've given me." Unfazed, Clark replied, "Who would believe you about the patent now? "I don't want to argue about money, but if you insist on a divorce, we'll have to settle accounts. Nyla, as long as you drop the divorce idea, my money is still yours to use." "Clark, you're despicable!" Since he refused to divorce, she'd have to sue. She turned to leave, but he blocked her. "Change your clothes. We're going to the family dinner." "I said I'm not going. Tell them I'm not feeling well." Clark grabbed her wrist. "Nyla, I'm running out of patience. Don't force me to cut off your father's medical expenses." "You wouldn't dare!" Clark took out his phone and called his secretary. "Cancel my father-in-law's medical payment for next monthโ" Furious, Nyla grabbed his phone and ended the call. "You're crossing a line, Clark." "Crossing a line?" Clark's gaze was full of contempt as he yanked her closer. "Everything you have is because of me. Don't you think you're the one crossing the line? Change your clothes, or I have numerous ways to make you comply." Chapter 5 Seeing the coldness in Clark's eyes, Nyla realized how blind she had been to fall in love with such a man. Her eyes stung with unshed tears, but she refused to show any vulnerability in front of him. She yanked her hand away, took a deep breath, and headed upstairs. The only thought in her mind was to find a job quickly so she could move out and divorce Clark. She grabbed a random outfit, tied her hair up with a hairpin, and went back downstairs. She was never one to fuss over her appearance. In the past, she had dressed up for the Sumners' gatherings to make a good impression. Now, she couldn't care less. Hearing her footsteps, Clark looked up. Nyla wore a fitted white dress, her waist so slender it seemed it could be encircled with one hand. Her hair was secured with a jade hairpin, revealing her delicate neck. She was breathtakingly beautiful. The grace she exuded was just like when they first met. However, the look in her eyes now was devoid of any warmth. "Letโs go," she said. They drove to the Sumner residence in silence. As they arrived and were about to get out of the car, a black Range Rover sped up and stopped abruptly in front of them. Upon recognizing the car, Clark's expression darkened. It was Damon's car, someone he both feared and disliked. Damon was known for his reckless and unpredictable behavior. He had refused to take over the Sumner Group when Richard wanted him to run the company, choosing to start his own business instead. Everyone had expected him to fail, but within five years, his company had grown to be worth several times more than the Sumner Group. Clark couldn't stand Damon, partly out of jealousy. Once, a comment Clark made about Damon reached Damon's ears, and in retaliation, Damon refused to collaborate with the Sumner Group, costing them millions. Damon rarely attended family dinners, and Clark had hoped to avoid him. Luck wasnโt on his side todayโthey met at the door. He didnโt notice Nylaโs stiffened expression when she saw Damon get out of his car. Clark opened the car door and greeted, "Uncle Damon." Damon glanced at him indifferently, his gaze briefly landing on the passenger seat before he nodded and walked into the house. Nyla let out a deep breath. When Damon looked her way, she had forgotten to breathe, fearing he might say something outrageous. He was known for his unpredictable nature, always doing whatever he pleased. Fortunately, he said nothing. She decided she needed to talk to him privately later. As Clark and Nyla walked into the living room, they saw it was already filled with people. Richard and Marie, the family heads, were chatting with Damon. He was the kind of person who naturally stood out in a crowd. Noticing Nylaโs gaze on Damon, Clark frowned. "Why are you staring at my uncle?" Nyla withdrew her gaze and replied coolly, "None of your business." Her coldness irritated Clark. "Nyla, you know I donโt like you paying attention to other men." Ever since they got together, Clark had been extremely controlling, not allowing Nyla to interact with other men. She used to think this was a sign of his love, but now it seemed laughable. She sneered. "And I donโt like you sleeping with other women, but you seem to enjoy it just fine." Clark said through gritted teeth, "This is a family dinner. Weโll deal with this later." "If you donโt want me to bring it up, then stay out of my business," she retorted. Clark didnโt want to cause a scene now because it might affect the Sumner Group and his standing with Richard, who still held all the companyโs shares. As they talked, Marie called out, "Nyla, Clark, youโre here! Come sit down!" Nyla took a deep breath, forcing a smile as she approached. She might not like the Sumners, but she maintained basic manners. "Hello, Grandpa, Grandma," she greeted with a smile. Marie, who had been urging Damon to settle down and get married, looked pleased to see the couple. "Come, sit down." She turned to Damon with a hint of dissatisfaction. "Look at Clark. He manages the company well and has a beautiful wife. They might have children soon. And you? Almost 30 and still single. If you donโt bring a girlfriend next time, donโt bother coming!" Damon glanced at the couple with a smirk. "She is indeed beautiful." He just wondered how that petite frame would suffer if she were to have children. Nyla frowned, feeling uncomfortable with Damonโs gaze. Clark also noticed the inappropriate way Damon looked at Nyla. It wasnโt the look of an elder but more like a man admiring a woman. His hand clenched into a fist, and his body tensed. Marie sighed. "My point is, when will you bring me a daughter-in-law?" "Depends. If I meet someone I like, maybe Iโll bring her back tomorrow," Damon replied nonchalantly. "Youโre too picky! Iโve arranged a good match for you. Date's tomorrow, donโt ruin it." "Then youโll probably have to apologize to another old friend tomorrow." Frustrated, Marie snapped, โYouโre going to drive me crazy!โ Damon glanced at Clark. โClark's been married for years. Instead of pushing me, why donโt you encourage him to have kids?โ Marie nodded, realizing Damon wouldnโt listen to her. She turned to Nyla and Clark, her expression softening. โNyla, you and Clark have been married for a few years now. When are you planning to have children?โ Chapter 6 Nyla lifted her head to speak, but Clark grabbed her hand and smiled. "Grandma, we're working on it!" Nyla tried to pull her hand away, but Clark's grip was too tight. If he wouldn't let her be, she wouldn't make it easy for him either. She turned to Marie. "Grandma, I'm looking for a job right now, so having children might have to wait." The room fell silent. Clark's grip on Nyla's hand tightened painfully, and she winced. Damon glanced at Clark's hand on Nyla, noticing the bulging veins, then looked away indifferently. Clarkโs aunt, Anne Sumner, sneered. "Nyla, don't blame me for being blunt. You've been married for years. How can you not have a child yet? If it weren't for Clark insisting on marrying you, do you think your family could have ever married into the Sumners? "You should be grateful. If you don't want to have Clark's child, there are plenty of women who do. If someone else steps in, youโll be the one looking silly." Besides, Anne thought, "Who knows if Nyla is fertile?" She sounded like she meant well, but her gaze at Nyla was filled with an air of superiority. Marie frowned at Anne, disapproving. "Anne, enough." Anne pursed her lips but stayed silent. Marie turned back to Nyla with a kind smile. "Nyla, you and Clark are still young. If you don't want children yet, that's fine. Just don't overwork yourself. Our family isn't short on money. You can work if you want, but take it easy." Nyla nodded. "I understand, Grandma." With that, the awkward moment passed, and the room returned to its previous warmth. Seeing the attention shift away, Clark pulled Nyla out of the living room. Once they reached the gazebo in the backyard, he released her. "Nyla, have you lost your mind? Do you want everyone to know about our fight?" Nyla rubbed her sore hand and said, "I was just being honest." "Honest?" Clark scowled. "Should I call your father then?" Harrison Jayston was ill and couldn't handle stress. Nyla planned to divorce Clark before breaking the news to him gently. She glared at Clark. "You wouldnโt dare! You were the one who cheated. What right do you have to be so self-righteous?" Clark clenched his hands, a flicker of guilt crossing his face before it was replaced by impatience. "I promised it wouldnโt happen again. If you don't want to see Jordyn, I'll fire her. What more do you want?" Nyla felt like there was a communication breakdown between them and turned away. "I don't want to argue with you here." When Clark saw her red-rimmed eyes, he softened. "Nyla, I truly know I was wrong. Just don't mention divorce, and I'll make it up to you. I love you. I can't let you go." Nyla found it laughable. How could he claim to love her while being with another woman? Just thinking about him with someone else made her sick. "I will never forgive you." Betrayal was her bottom line. She couldnโt pretend nothing had happened or reconcile with him. Clark knew Nyla well enough to understand that he had to be patient. He believed she still had feelings for him. Otherwise, she would have made a bigger scene when she found out. As long as he refused to divorce her, she would eventually forgive him. "Fine, we won't talk about it now. If you don't want kids yet, weโll postpone it to two years later. Since you want to work, I'll have my secretary find you a position at the Sumner Group." Nyla laughed at his arrangement, a mocking look in her eyes. "Clark, do you see me as a puppet you can control?" Hurt by her gaze, Clark frowned. "How am I controlling you? You don't want kids now, so I agreed to wait two years. You want to work, so I'll arrange it. What more do you want?" "Stop pretending. I don't want kids because I want a divorce. I want to work to sever ties with you." Clark looked at Nyla's stubborn face, displeased. Since their wedding, she had been like a canary in his cage. He couldn't let her go. "As long as I don't agree, this marriage won't end. Even if you tell a lawyer I cheated, do you have proof?" Clark's confident tone and controlling demeanor made Nyla step back, trembling with anger. She finally saw how selfish and disgusting he was. She had wasted eight yearsโthe best years of her life, from 18 to 26โloving this man. "You make me sick, Clark!" Seeing the undisguised disgust in Nyla's eyes, Clar | LEARN_MORE | https://findedc.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=15692& | Indulge in story | https://www.facebook.com/61552702618591/ | 910 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn More | 0 | findedc.com | DCO | https://findedc.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=15692&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}}&placement={{placement}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-2.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/468455042_1262834138099234_1389968434765802098_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60_tt6&_nc_cat=105&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=iv3KycLhnWIQ7kNvgHh8CH0&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-2.xx&_nc_gid=AMaFzaCKiDlLSkjSgUamEk9&oh=00_AYBtbzlYs-G2JxND7uJq45YWFpbJtqPDATeFYgrStQJ4Jg&oe=677A5507 | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Indulge in story | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,656,639 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2656798}' |
Yes | 2024-12-31 18:39 | active | 2174 | 0 |
|
๐Read the next chapters๐ | "Dexter Bamford,let's get a divorce." Dexter could hardly believe what he had just heard. Throughout his marriage with Angela,he had only ever seen a submissive and hopeful look in her eyes.He knew she feared losing him. The term"divorce"was probably the thing she had feared hearing the most in the past three years. But now,she had uttered it so casually. Dexter questioned in a cold voice,"What?Are you upset because I didn't accompany you yesterday?Or is it because I refused to let you participate in that ridiculous competition? "Angela,are you out of your mind?You cried and begged to be Mrs.Bamford.You live in a villa and have luxury cars to drive you around.I even propped up your failing family.What more could you possibly be dissatisfied with?" The disdain and contempt in his words made Angela feel a chill run down her spine. She couldn't hold back anymore.She retorted loudly,almost shouting,"Mrs.Bamford?So what if I'm Mrs.Bamford?Have you ever seen a rich man's wife as pathetic as I am?" She stormed into the study,grabbed a bulky contract,and threw it in front of Dexter forcefully."You should know what this is better than I do!I'm expected to keep up appearances in front of your family.But when I come home,even the household staff can show me attitude! "What kind of wife spends her birthday being yet another portfolio addition to a fireworks designer and is given the very same six-inch birthday cake that was given to the nanny? "While it is true that I got to become Mrs.Bamford because of my family's plotting,I don't want it anymore!Do you have a problem with that?" He raised an eyebrow mockingly."Do you think you can come and go as you please in the Bamford family?What about the debt you and your family owe me?" | LEARN_MORE | https://beokn.com/market/buenovela/3?lpid=15824&ut | Random Reading | https://www.facebook.com/61559743679549/ | 334 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn More | 0 | beokn.com | DCO | https://beokn.com/market/buenovela/3?lpid=15824&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}}&placement={{placement}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-2.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/467993308_1971135373330962_6152744400347345039_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60_tt6&_nc_cat=103&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=M7ZeXcGXqa8Q7kNvgFvCNbY&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-2.xx&_nc_gid=Aq0spFD969MqsLdVMIPxMuI&oh=00_AYD53EMzxcNgf8x0Pye0OecFD1sGrhhcTbbeQuUIeT7XAw&oe=677A6F1B | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Random Reading | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,656,488 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2656581}' |
No | 2024-12-31 18:39 | active | 2174 | 0 |
|
๐Read the next chapters๐ | For three days and three nights, Joseph gave me no respite. He had come to live with me as my husband, one I had little respect for. Not only would I never let him touch me, but I'd done everything in my power to belittle him. But now that my fortune had all but disappeared, and he was suddenly a rich man, it was like he was taking his revenge. He seemed to savor every last act we performed. ... My husband came to me with nothing. It wasn't even him I liked; it was his brother. But at a class reunion, I had too much to drink and he took advantage. Not only that, but everyone we knew found out. My father was disgraced. He felt the only thing to do to save our family honor was for me to marry this man. But he did have one condition, that the man who despoiled me would come and live with us in our family home. My new husband's parents were divorced. His father had all but abandoned him after remarrying and now he had nothing. As for me, my family was rich, and I was my parents' little princess. My husband could hardly have dreamed of a better match. So, just like that, we were married. No one even considered what I wanted. I wanted his brother. Naturally, I resented him and everything he'd done. I wouldn't let him near me. I made him sleep on the floor. I would mock him at mealtimes, along with my brother. We'd sneer at him and refuse him food. He'd still do things for me, like bring me umbrellas in the rain, but I'd make sure to insult him nonetheless. I couldn't feel easy letting him get away with what he'd done. Despite all this, he never seemed to mind. It was like he had no temper, no self-respect. Whatever me or my family said and did, he would always sit there meekly and take it. Objectively, he wasn't bad to look at. If he hadn't been so introverted and if his grades hadn't been so bad then he'd probably have got a lot more attention at school. His brother was a different story. Handsome, outgoing, with impeccable grades, he was what you might call a bit of a schoolyard celebrity. To think that our burgeoning romance was snuffed out so cruelly by my husband's actions was a source of great pain and anger. In the middle of the night, I got out of bed and kicked my husband awake, demanding a drink. He immediately pulled himself to his feet and dutifully got me a glass of water. As there was a slight autumn chill in the air, he even warmed it up for me. Such thoughtfulness might have charmed me, but all I could think of was how he'd used me the night of our class reunion. My anger flared and I threw the whole glass of water in his face. His only reaction was to go to the bathroom to dry himself off. Watching him quietly slink away, I almost felt a pang of guilt for my actions. That is, until I reminded myself once more of what he'd done and how my life would never be the same again. This was our life for the first three years of marriage. But a lot can happen in three years. For example, my family losing our fortune, or me starting to fall for my husband, or even... him deciding he wanted a divorce. When he handed me the divorce papers, he said it was because his childhood sweetheart had returned. I have to admit, at that moment, I was in shock. It was like a great weight was crushing my body and I could hardly breathe. But I had too much self-respect to let him see how he was hurting me. With as carefree an expression as I could muster, I took the pen from his hand and signed the papers. As soon as I had done so, he asked me, not unkindly, "Would you like my driver to take you home?" It took me a while to react. The villa I was in, the villa I had called home for over 20 years, was no longer mine. My family was broke. All of our possessions had been sold off. All this while he, the man who had forced me into marriage when he had nothing to his name, had secretly started his own company and built his own fortune behind my back. To add insult to injury, it was he who had bought our family home. Not that I could blame him completely. Or that I had any claim to his wealth. He had worked hard to get where he was, without a penny of help from me or my family, all while suffering in silence. He stared at me in silence, waiting for my response. He suddenly seemed so reasonable, while I was now ashamed of how I'd treated him. After all that I'd put him through, it would be only natural for him to use this reversal of fortunes to exact his revenge. But he wasn't doing so. If anything, he seemed just as meek and mild-mannered as before. "There's no need. I'll find my own way back." I replied. As soon as I'd finished speaking, I turned and hurried outside. His voice called after me, calmly, "What did you come to see me about?" "Nothing" I called back, without even turning my head. It was raining outside and I clutched the gift I was carrying tightly to keep it dry. Today was our third-year anniversary. I'd never done anything nice for him before, but since realizing I had developed feelings for him, I thought it might be nice to celebrate a nice occasion together. I'd never dreamed that what awaited me was a pile of divorce papers. I smiled a bitter smile as the rain soaked through my clothing and left me drenched. The next day, I woke up sniffling. I lay there in bed, feeling too weak to get up. Eventually, a commotion outside disturbed me from my malaise. I dragged myself feebly out of bed. When I made it outside, my father was sitting atop a crumbling wall, declaring to all that he wanted to terminate his life. We were now living in a dilapidated apartment block. Conditions in the building were poor, but the rent was cheap. My mother was crying and wailing, screaming at my father that if he jumped, she would follow suit. My head was pounding as I tried to talk my father down. I tried to tell him that money isn't everything, that as long as we have each other we'd be fine. My father looked at me, suddenly quiet. His eyes seemed to be burning into my soul. "Go ask Joseph for help. He's family. He wouldn't abandon us now." Having heard my father's words, my mother hastily added, "Of course! Maybe we haven't always seen eye to eye, but he's your husband. He's certain to help." I could almost have laughed. My parents still had no idea about our divorce. I tried to tell them he wouldn't help, but my father started becoming hysterical once more. He left me with no choice. I had to go crawling back to Joseph. To my "husband". Before I left, my mother insisted on spending the last of our money to get me a new outfit: a long dress with a deep-cut V-neck and a pair of pointy leather shoes. She also helped me do my make-up so I was dolled up to the nines. As I looked myself up and down in the mirror, I couldn't help but feel a tinge of revulsion. I didn't look at all like someone asking for help. I looked more like I was on a mission to seduce. But even if I turned up on his doorstep in my birthday suit, I doubt he'd give me more than a cursory glance. At that time, I couldn't understand why he'd slept with me at our class reunion. Could it be that he was just as drunk as I was? Had he mistaken me for his sweetheart? I quickly put those thoughts out of my mind. Even though I was doomed to fail, I would go to ask him for help. That way my parents could give up on the fantasy that he might save us. After making some inquiries, I discovered that he was at his company's offices. And so, that's where I went. I headed inside, while my parents, who had accompanied me this far, waited outside. The looks of pure, desperate hope on their faces were almost too much for me to bear, knowing how much this would disappoint them. When I arrived at his office, I was greeted by a sea of unfriendly faces. I could make out people talking about me as I passed. Nothing I heard was nice. I pretended not to notice. I straightened my shoulders and made straight for his personal office. But as soon as I saw him, I could feel my confidence fade. He was sitting on his chair, radiating poise, smiling broadly as he watched me approach... Chapter 2 I stood there wringing my fingers in shame as I explained why I had come. Joseph's gaze grew stern as he asked, "And why do you think I should help you?" It was clear that I had been right to think he would reject me. "Please, forget I even came." After everything we put him through, my family should be happy he wasn't seeking revenge. To come here asking him for help was nonsense. I'd swallowed my pride for my parents' sake, but obviously, we'd get no help from him. I was beginning to get angry at myself for even trying. I started to leave but he called me back. "Tell me. What do you have to offer in return? If I feel like it's worth it, then I'm sure we can make a deal." I froze in my tracks. My mind was whirring but I could think of nothing to offer him. Nothing except my body. But if he wanted that, we'd been married for three years. While we didn't share a bed, we at least shared a room. In three years, he'd never once made a move. I lowered my head, mumbling through my shame, "Just forget I came." Unexpectedly, he walked over and stood in front of me. He was a good head taller than me. He leaned over slightly and whispered against my ear. "You came here dressed like that. Why play coy now?" I felt my body stiffen and my shame burned even brighter. I wanted so desperately to turn and run. He put his hands around my waist and flashed me a knowing smile. "Three years of marriage. Every night, sleeping alone on the floor. You don't think I've dreamed of that body of yours? Why not offer me that?" My eyes grew wide. For a moment, I doubted my own ears. At last, I asked, "What are you saying?" He stared at me, his eyes as deep and impenetrable as a bottomless ocean. A sense of panic rose up inside me. Wordlessly, without looking away, he moved his fingers up and gently pulled down the straps of my dress. My cheeks flushed red and I pushed him away. I shouted, angrily, "If you won't help, just say so! I didn't expect you to anyway. There's no need to insult me like this!" Joseph looked at me, a hard-to-read expression crossing his face, like a mixture of anger and amusement. He said, "You think this is an insult?" "Is it not?" He clearly had feelings for someone else. To act this way towards me could be seen as nothing but insulting. He suddenly turned away and sat back down in his chair. When he raised his head to look at me once more, his gaze was cold. He sneered, "The way you're dressed, I thought you were serious, but it seems you haven't thought this through. If you're not here to make a deal, then I suggest you leave." I never expected him to help. Having had my prediction confirmed, I turned and left the office. As soon as I stepped outside the building, my parents were there to ask me how things went. "Will he help us?" My father asked urgently. All I could do was shake my head. My father's rage erupted. "The ungrateful swine. Now he's made his fortune he's forgotten his own family? If I'd have seen him for what he is, I'd never have let him marry you!" My mother joined in. "He always acted so civil, like a dutiful son-in-law. But now that he doesn't need us, he leaves us out in the cold!" I let out a helpless sigh. "There's no use cursing him now. Besides, he never took a penny from us, never made use of your connections. He's entitled to his business. "And it's not like we treated him much like a part of the family. Surely, you can see why he might not want to help us." My parents didn't respond, but it was clear from their expressions that they weren't impressed. Looking at them like this, my head, still heavy from whatever illness I'd caught the night before, began to hurt even worse. That evening, my brother took his phone and called each of his old friends, asking them for help. Back when we had money, they'd pick up the phone and come out drinking in a flash. Now that we were destitute, not a single one would answer. In his fury, my brother smashed the phone. I lay curled up in bed and tried to comfort him. "This is the world we live in. Friendship isn't what it used to be." My mother was sitting nearby, crying. The financial straits we were in meant it was unlikely we were ever going to recover. The best we could hope for was to somehow pay off our debts. My family's creditors were making daily appearances, demanding money. The calls were so frequent that it was impossible to focus our attention on anything else. My father was desperate. "Anna, why not try asking Joseph for a loan? He has money. At the very least, he should be able to lend us some." Then my mother chimed in. "Even if you divorced, wouldn't he have to give you some of his money?" I curled up tighter beneath the blankets. How was I supposed to tell them I hadn't got a single penny out of our divorce? My brother had heard as much as he could take. "That's enough! Sending Anna off to beg for mercy is degrading. Don't you remember how we treated him when he was with us?" Suddenly, a flash of realization crossed my mother's face. She quickly asked, "Did Joseph insult you when you went to see him?" I shook my head. "No. Of course not." My mother looked reassured. Almost to herself, she muttered, "Of course he wouldn't. He's always been such a well-mannered person, not to mention obedient. He clearly likes and admires you. How could he possibly insult you?" I barely suppressed a scornful laugh and said nothing in response. My father let out an anguished sign. He turned his gaze towards the unlocked balcony and declared his desire to end his life once more. Hearing this, my mother again started crying. By now, my head was ready to explode. All we needed was money. Even just a little would help stave off our creditors for a time, while we could work on getting more. A few days later, once my health had sufficiently recovered, I set out to find work. Most jobs I could find paid too little to put a dent in our debts, but I'd heard you could make good money trading booze in the high-end clubs. I'd seen this myself when I used to go clubbing with my friends. The customers in those places were crazy tippers. I picked my favorite club from the old days and went in to see if I could land myself a job. The manager recognized me immediately and was happy to bring me on board. He even let me start off by working the VIP tables. Serving those rich kids and big shots meant I was bringing in a decent living in tips. I never thought that one day, one of the VIPs I was serving would turn out to be Joseph. He would never have frequented an establishment such as this. At least, not while we were married. In fact, back then, if I was ever going to the club on a night out with friends, he would try to persuade me not to. He always said places like this were bad news. Of course, whenever to tried to stop me, I would insult and belittle him, until he gave in and left. He always seemed so innocent and naive. Yet here he was now. It was almost as if his meek and obedient nature had all been an elaborate ruse. He was staring at me in silence. The condescension in his gaze made me want to run and hide. If I'd have known he would be here tonight, I'd have swapped tables with one of the other staff. Just as I was hoping for the earth to swallow me up, a cacophony of wolf whistles caught my attention. As I looked around to see where they were coming from, I realized that everyone at the table with Joseph was one of my brother's erstwhile friends. Fair-weather would be a nice way to describe them. Now that Joseph was rich, these fawning hangers-on had flocked to him instead. They knew all about how I'd treated him, and now, as if to curry favor, they were making sure to humiliate me in turn. I could see it would be best to leave. Just as I was about to take my tray of drinks and go, a male voice piped up. Chapter 3 "Hey! Aren't you Anna? Joseph's wife? What's wrong? Feeling shy? Come have a drink. "Hold on a second ... Why are you wearing that uniform?" As soon as he finished speaking, the table erupted in laughter. I gripped the sides of my drinks tray and took a deep breath. What choice did I have? They'd already seen me, and they were going to have their fun no matter what I did. It's not like I could escape now. Who knew, maybe I could even get a few tips from them if I weathered the storm. My family's creditors weren't going anywhere. My father was still proclaiming daily how he didn't want to go on living, my mother was a one-woman waterworks, and my brother was running himself ragged as a delivery driver. Now wasn't the time for clinging on to hollow pride. I walked back over to their table, working hard to force a smile. I put on my best attempt at a jaunty voice and said, "What a coincidence. I didn't expect to see you all here. We're all friends; if you're happy with the service, feel free to leave a little something extra." "Ha ha ha." I was greeted by scoffs and sneers from the man who had called me over. I remembered his face. Back when my family had money, he was always following us around like a star-struck sycophant. Now that we had fallen on hard times, we were suddenly beneath him. I felt a strong urge to reach out and slap his grinning face. But now wasn't the time for self-indulgence. Money was more important. So, I stood there smiling politely and said nothing. This manโPhil, I think his name wasโsuddenly leaned across and put his face close to mine. With an obvious air of smug satisfaction, he jeered, "Look what we have here. Is this the same arrogant Anna, scion of the great Tate family? Not so high and mighty now your parents' money's all gone." The table erupted into mocking laughter once more. Will, another of my brother's old friends, joined in. "If you want a little something extra, then you'll have to work for it. You should know what kind of service people want in a place like this. Why not pull down that dress and give us a sneak peek of what's on offer?" My hands gripped the drinks tray so hard my knuckles went white. I looked over at Joseph. He was sitting there, completely unsympathetic to my plight. I lowered my gaze and placed the drinks tray carefully on the table. Forcing a smile, I said, "Please don't misunderstand. I'm here to serve drinks. We all used to get along once. If you want something to drink, it would be my pleasure to help". "Ha! Have things really got that bad for the illustrious Tates?" Phil dismissively threw his card down on the table, before saying, almost magnanimously, "There's 3,000 on that card. Get on all fours and bark like a dog and you can have it all." Another wave of cruel laughter washed over the table. The commotion had drawn the attention of a few people from the surrounding tables. I felt like a thousand eyes were on me. Two of those eyes belonged to Joseph. He was staring at me impassively, his expression hard to read. I stood there, frozen to the spot. Suddenly, Will threw his own card down on the table. "There's 10,000 on that one. Bark like a dog and then spend the night with us and you can have that one too." I stared at him in disbelief. My family may have lost all our moneyโabout the only thing these leeches cared aboutโbut as far as they were aware, I was still Joseph's wife. I couldn't believe they would dare talk to me like this in front of him. Unless Joseph had already told them about our divorce, but even then, they would have needed some sort of signal from him, otherwise they'd never have the courage to act like this. "What? I thought you needed the money. Now's hardly the time for self-respect." Will was smirking, menacingly. "You won't find a better deal than this anywhere else." He had a point. If my family was ever going to recover, at some point I was going to have to do a few things I wasn't happy about. I stared back at that mocking, moronic face. Just looking at him filled me with revulsion. I picked up the credit card, with its 10,000, and threw it back at Will. "If you want me for a night, then you're going to have to do better than this. Make it a million and I'm all yours." I remembered Will from his days mooching off my brother. He was one of those guys who liked to act the part, but when it came time to pay up, he was as stingy as they came. For him, parting ways with a large amout of money was like cutting off one of his own limbs. Yet now, he was willing to part with 10,000 just to humiliate me. It was hard to imagine what I could have done for him to hate me so much. Was I really that horrible of a person before? "Ha ha ha. Will, you're never going to get what you want being that close-fisted. This is THE Miss Anna Tate. 10,000 is a low-ball offer." The laughter erupted once more. Will's face had turned bright red and he shot me an angry look. "I'm not sure she's even worth that." He said, dismissively. I did my best to ignore him and turned to pick up Phil's card. "So, all I need to do is bark like a dog and this 3,000 is mine?" Phil's mocking expression suddenly turned to one of shock. He clearly never imagined I would take him seriously. I knew full well that Phil was just the same as Will: all bark and no bank account. I could see the unease on his face as he said, "The arrogant Anna Tate, looking down on all of us. Quit joking. There's no way you'd ever put aside your pride and go through with it." He reached over and tried to take his card back. I pulled the card back out of his reach. "Who said I was joking? It's not exactly hard to bark, is it? A few quick woofs and I make 3,000. Sounds like a good bit of business to me." Panic spread across Phil's stricken face. He stared at the card in my hand, desperate to take it back. Will's face had returned to its normal color. "Hurry up and bark then. I want to see how convincingly you beg." All of my pride was gone. All I could think of was the creditors knocking at our door, my parents' despair, and my brother wearing himself thin working for pennies. I took a deep breath, cleared my head, and said, "Okay." But just as I was getting down on all fours, a pair of hands lifted me back up. I looked around in surprise to find Joseph firmly grasping my elbows. My heart jumped. "Get out." His voice was soft but all of my brother's old friends heard him clearly. They all stood up from the table and headed outside. As Phil walked past, he grabbed the credit card from my hand, a grim look on his face. Joseph's eyes bored into me. "Is your family really that broke?" I extricated myself from his grasp and took a step back. "I think you're very clear on what our situation is like, Mr. Hertz." Our family's fall from grace was big news across the city. Everyone and their dog knew what dire straits we were in. There was no way Joseph wasn't already acutely aware. "Mr. Hertz?" He seemed amused, yet his gaze darkened. I had no idea what was going through his mind right then. To be honest, I just wanted him to leave. I waved towards the drinks tray, which was still sitting on the table. "If you're satisfied with my service, please feel free to leave a tip." Joseph continued to stare at me in silence, his gaze deep and impenetrable. I wasn't really hoping for a tip. I just wanted to find a way to end our conversation. I forced another smile and turned to leave. Joseph suddenly called out, "I'll give you a million." I froze, hardly believing my ears. I turned back to face him. "What did you say?" He took a step forward. Our faces were now only inches apart. He stared into my eyes. "I'll give you a million ... but you have to spend the night with me." Chapter 4 My lips quivered with barely suppressed rage. I wanted to scream at him. But this wasn't the Joseph from my marriage. He was rich now, and powerful. I swallowed my anger and replied curtly, "Joseph, please don't joke with me like this. I have work to do." "It's the same offer you gave to Will. Why not leave it open to me?" Joseph said quietly, his voice cold. I frowned. "That was hardly an offer. He was never going to accept it." "You told him that if he gave you 1,000,000, you'd spend the night with him. Well, I have a million, so why won't you spend the night with me?" I couldn't help but drop my smile. I had only given Will that "offer" because I knew he didn't have a million to give me. Did Joseph really think I was being serious? He walked over to me. He said, "Your family is in dire straits. All you need to do is spend one night with me and 1,000,000 could be yours." My hands tightened with fury. I understood exactly why he was doing this. To humiliate me. I did my best to control the emotion in my voice as I smiled at him coldly. "So, now you have money you think you're suddenly above me? It's true, my family is broke, but I'm not about to stoop so low as to trade my body!" Having said all I needed to, I turned around and hurried away. My eyes were already wet with tears. A tide of complex emotions swelled up inside me. With my brothers' old friends, it didn't matter how much they insulted me, I couldn't care less. But with Joseph, it was different. His humiliation filled me with pain and sadness. I hurried to the club's entrance hall where I was shocked to find my brother. He was dressed in his delivery driver's uniform and was surrounded by his old "friends". For the sake of a couple of notes, he was kneeling on the floor before them. At that moment, my remaining pride and self-respect crumbled to nothing. I bit my lip, tears streaming from my eyes. To make a little money, my brother was willing to reduce himself to this, while I was too proud to face up to Joseph's insult and make our family a million. I turned around and ran up the stairs I had just come down, praying that Joseph was still there. I sprinted back to his table to find him still sitting there. It was almost as if he knew I would come crawling back. There was a smile plastered on his face. I tried to compose myself as I approached him. "You must really hate me for how I treated you before." Without waiting for him to respond, I went on, "Fine. As long as you help my family pay off their debts, you can humiliate me any way you want, for as long as you please." Joseph lowered his gaze to his glass. He smiled even wider. "You'd be willing to be my mistress?" I took a deep breath. "Yes." He'd got rid of me as his wife, to replace me with his sweetheart, but he still wanted to keep me as his mistress. The shame was almost too much to bear. The next day, my father returned home visibly excited. He told us that our debts had all been repaid. My mother cried tears of joy as she asked my father how this had happened. He told her that Joseph had come to his senses and stepped in to help us. He had even bought us a home to live in. Suddenly, Joseph had become an angel in my mother's eyes. How he must love me to help us so much. All I could do was force a smile and bite my tongue. That afternoon, Joseph sent his driver to pick me up. My parents had no reason to be suspicious; as far as they knew, I was still his wife. To them, I was on my way to spend a happy evening with my husband, not to be used as a toy for his carnal gratification. Joseph was now living in the villa that had once belonged to my family. Not much had changed; our old servants and staff were now his. Servants are expected to follow their master, and ours had joined in more than a few times with our humiliation of Joseph. The fact that he had kept them on after taking ownership of the villa showed how magnanimous he could be. I just wondered if that magnanimity would extend to his treatment of me. Thinking back to his demeanor at the nightclub, I somehow doubted it. Our former servants and I were two different cases. At worst, they'd merely been unkind to him in passing. But I had berated him, hit him, thrown things at him, and humiliated him in front of others. Recalling my past treatment of Joseph left me feeling uncomfortable. If I'd have known that one day our roles would be reversed, I'd have been a lot nicer to him from the start. Poppy, our old maid, led me to his door. "Master Joseph asked you to wait for him here. Also ... " She paused, as though uncomfortable with what she had been asked to say. "He asked that you wash yourself before his return." My heart sank. Clearly, both of us could see what he wanted from me. But what other choice did I have? I'd already agreed to be his mistress. I was well aware that I was giving up my dignity. Joseph's room was the very same bedroom we had shared while we were married. Yet now, it felt very different. Before, there had been a mat on the floor by the side of the bed. That was where Joseph had slept while I looked down on him from my bed on high, making sure to remind him of his place. That mat was no longer here. Neither was my high and mighty feeling of superiority. Another thing that was missing was my husband's meek and obedient facade. The past is the past, I reminded myself, as I entered the bathroom with a heavy heart and turned on the shower. After getting clean, I laid down on the bed to await Joseph's return. I'd signed on to be his mistress, so I might as well play the part. Things had certainly changed since the last time I was here, but lying on that bed, I thought to myself that it could have been a lot worse. My family's debts, at the very least, had been paid off. My parents could rest easy. My brother would no longer have to work himself to the bone or prostrate himself at the feet of false friends. All of these things came as a comfort to me. I had no idea when Joseph would return. Tired out from the last few days of working and worrying, I soon fell asleep. When I awoke, there seemed to be a great weight pressing down on me. As my senses gradually returned, I realized that Joseph was on top of me. What's more, his hands were moving underneath my clothes. "How ... How dare you!" Without thinking, I raised my hands to push him off. But before I knew it, he had grabbed hold of my wrists and forced them down. "Even now, your pampered temper's still intact." He jeered at me. I gazed around at the familiar room and then at the familiar man before me. It took me a while to fully remember where I was. This bedroom we were in was now his, and I was nothing more than his mistress. My arms went limp, I meekly let out a soft apology, "I'm sorry". He laughed, standing up and heading towards the bathroom. As he cleaned himself, I wrung my hands nervously. Before all this, once I had begun to have feelings for him, the thought of his touch on my body had not been an unpleasant one. But this was different. There was nothing mutual or respectful about our current situation. This was simply possession and revenge. In such circumstances, the thought of what was to come was horrifying, but I had nowhere to run. After what seemed like an age, he finally emerged from the bathroom. The sound of the door opening once more was almost more than my frayed nerves could take. | LEARN_MORE | https://beokn.com/market/buenovela/3?lpid=15053&ut | Random Reading | https://www.facebook.com/61559743679549/ | 334 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn More | 0 | beokn.com | DCO | https://beokn.com/market/buenovela/3?lpid=15053&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}}&placement={{placement}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-2.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/470814330_8712858118783020_8400113635240001660_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60_tt6&_nc_cat=103&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=Yd3jqv7GEWYQ7kNvgFb5edu&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-2.xx&_nc_gid=Ars9_Gpx2Sw7S_y50lUorjE&oh=00_AYCHQo3rZJbtl_9HrA-pmkNyOqzYwUL3hldzv6vRJDpVoQ&oe=677A66CC | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Random Reading | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,656,424 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2656411}' |
Yes | 2024-12-31 18:39 | active | 2174 | 0 |
|
He drunkenly hugged her โCall me husband again ......โ | ๐Nyla Jayston was in her third month of trying to conceive when she saw a message on her husband Clark Sumner's phone from a contact named "Jordyn Cheatham". Jordyn: [I think my new nightgown is a bit tight. Why don't you come over and check if it fits?] Attached was a selfie of a woman in a deep V-neck red slip dress, her body partly exposed, exuding seduction. Nyla's grip on the phone tightened. She scrolled up and found Clark and Jordyn's previous exchanges to be strictly work-related, which made her frown. 'Was the text sent by mistake? Orโฆ' A hand wrapped around Nyla's waist from behind, breaking her thoughts. Clark pressed his warm body against hers and gently nibbled her earlobe. "Honey, I'm all cleaned up. Do you want to do it on the couch or the bed?" Before Nyla could respond, Clark picked her up and laid her on the couch, his tall frame looming over her. "Since you're not saying anything, I'll choose. Let's do it on the couch," Clark said, his voice husky and his eyes filled with a flicker of fire that made Nyla blush instantly. Nyla was already beautiful, and the slight flush on her cheeks made her look like a tempting, ripe, juicy peach under the light. Clark's gaze grew darker. He leaned in to kiss Nyla, but she suddenly turned her head away. Sensing her resistance, he looked at her with confusion. "Honey, what's wrong?" Clark, usually assertive at work, now looked at Nyla with a mix of confusion and hurt, which softened her heart momentarily. Despite that, she hadn't forgotten the explicit selfie she had just seen. She stopped him with one hand on his chest and held up his phone with the other, showing him the screen. "Explain this first." Clark glanced at the screen and immediately frowned, grabbing the phone to make a call. It was quickly answered. "Mr. Sumner, what can I do for you?" Clark glowered, and his voice turned icy. "I didnโt know my secretary started soliciting clients." There was a moment of silence before Jordyn's panicked voice came through. "M-Mr. Sumner, I'm sorry. That message was meant for my boyfriend. I must have sent it to you by mistake..." "Next time it happens, pack your things and leave!" Clark hung up and looked back at Nyla, his expression softening, even showing a hint of grievance. "Honey, she sent it by mistake. If you're still upset, I'll fire her tomorrow. It's late now, so letโs not waste time on someone unworthy. We haven't seen each other in a week. You need to make it up to me tonight." Clark pulled Nyla in for a kiss, but her mood was ruined despite the issue being cleared up. She wasn't in the mood anymore and pushed him away. "I'm tired tonight. Let's continue tomorrow." A flash of disappointment crossed Clark's eyes, but he didn't pressure her. "Alright, you sleep first. I'm not tired yet, so I'll go to the study to handle some work." "Okay." โฆ It started raining heavily in the middle of the night. The sound woke Nyla, and she reached out only to feel the cold space beside her. She glanced at the clockโ3:16 a.m. Nyla wondered whether Clark was still working. She got up, put on a robe, and went to the study, but it was dark and empty. Her grip on the doorknob tightened, and her heart sank. Nylaโs phone suddenly chimed, startling her in the quiet night. Seeing that it was a text from a stranger, she had a gut feeling that reading it would mean no turning back for her and Clark. A thunderclap boomed outside, startling her into accidentally pressing it. [Still awake? Because your husband isn't with you?] [I was scared because of the thunder and power outage, and he came to comfort me.] [Don't you want to know where your husband is?] As Nyla read the messages and the boastful tone, her hands trembled uncontrollably. After a long while, another text came in with an address and a series of digits. Nyla bit her lip, grabbed her car keys, and drove straight there. By the time she reached the villa, it was past 4:00 a.m. She entered the code, and the door unlocked. The living room lights were on. From the entrance to the bedroom door, a man's suit and a woman's lingerie were strewn about, revealing the urgency of their actions. Seeing the torn red nightgown at the bedroom door, Nyla felt a sense of absurdity. Although the distance from the entrance to the bedroom was only a few meters, it felt like an eternity to Nyla. Standing at the bedroom door, she felt light-headed and dizzy. She reached out, trembling, and slowly pushed the slightly open door. The sight of the messy bed and the bared couple entwinedโtheir heavy breathing filling the roomโpierced Nyla's heart. The couple was so engrossed that they didn't notice her standing there. Nyla's hand on the door frame turned white from gripping it too hard, leaving red marks on her palm. She had been with Clark for eight years, from school days to marriage, envied by everyone around them. Until today, she had never imagined betrayal between them. Now, reality dealt her a cruel blow. Even the most sincere wedding vows couldn't withstand a fickle heart. Unable to bear the sight, Nyla turned and stumbled out, driving away. She stopped by a bar on the way and decided to go in. โฆ By the time Valarie Weir arrived, Nyla had already downed two bottles of whiskey, her gaze slightly unfocused. "Valarie, you're here..." Seeing Nyla surrounded by several men, Valarie frowned. "All of you, leave!" "No, they're fine hereโ" "I said, leave!" After driving the men away, Valarie sat next to Nyla. "What happened? Did Clark really cheat on you?" Valarie was Nyla's university roommate and had witnessed Nyla and Clarkโs journey from school to marriage. She had seen Clark treat Nyla well all these years, so she couldn't believe he would cheat. Upon hearing Clarkโs name, Nyla's gaze dimmed, and the heart-wrenching pain came rushing back. "I don't want to hear that name right now." Chapter 2 Nyla downed her drink in one gulp. She had never imagined Clark would betray her. Seeing him in bed with another woman felt like a dagger through her heart. "I just can't believe it. He loved you so much. He didn't seem like the type to cheat. Maybe there's a misunderstanding," Valarie suggested. Nyla let out a cold laugh. "I saw it with my own eyes. How could that be a misunderstanding?" The room fell silent. Watching Nyla drink like there was no tomorrow, Valarie grabbed the glass from her hand. "Even if he cheated, you shouldn't punish yourself by getting drunk. What are you going to do now?" "I'm getting a divorce. Just thinking about him with that woman makes me sick." Upon seeing the defiance in Nylaโs red eyes, Valarie's heart ached. "Don't think about it now. You need to rest. Decide what to do next once youโre calm. I'll take you home." Nyla shook her head. "No... I don't want to go back." Returning to that house would only bring back the sickening images of Clarkโs betrayal. Each recollection made her feel nauseous. Seeing Nylaโs reluctance, Valarie didn't insist. "I'll book you a hotel room then." โฆ After booking a room, Valarie took Nyla to the hotel entrance. "Are you sure you don't want me to take you up?" Nyla shook her head. "No, you go rest. I'll be fine." She waved with the room card and walked into the hotel. Seeing Nyla walk steadily, Valarie finally breathed a sigh of relief and drove away once Nyla was inside the hotel. What she didn't know was that Nyla, when drunk, appeared sober but was actually a mess inside. Nyla entered the elevator, scanned her card, and the elevator began to ascend. Soon, the doors opened with a ding. As Nyla stepped out onto the carpet, her legs almost gave out. She steadied herself against the wall, massaging her aching temples while searching for her room number. The wine was taking its toll, and her vision blurred. She found Room 8919 and tried the card on the door. Hearing no beep, she frowned and was about to push the door when it suddenly opened. Nyla froze. Before she could react, a large hand yanked her into the dark room. The door slammed shut, cutting off the light from the hallway. She was pressed against the door, a man's breath hot against her ear, making her shiver. The familiar scent of pine filled her senses, but before she could place it, she felt the warmth of his lips on hers. "Mmph!" Realizing what was happening, Nyla struggled. Damon was strong, and with the wine dulling her strength, her hands felt weak, almost inviting as she pushed against his chest. Damonโs hands roamed her body, leaving a trail of fire, and her body grew more responsive under his touch. Nyla tried to push him away, but he easily caught her wrists and pinned them above her head. "Letโ Mmph! Let me goโฆ" He stopped kissing her and chuckled. "No need to play hard to get." His fingers traced her collar, the cool touch making her shudder. His body heat seemed to melt her, and her legs grew weak. In the dark, Nylaโs senses heightened. She felt Damon unbuttoning her clothes, her mouth dry, her last bit of rationality warning her that this was going too far. "Let me go!" She mustered all her strength to push him, but he simply picked her up and threw her onto the bed. The bed was soft, so Nyla didnโt feel pain, but the impact made her head spin. She tried to get up, but Damon pinned her down. Soon, her clothes were gone, and they were both nearly bared. He pressed against her, ready. His dominating presence made her tremble. She pushed against his chest, biting her lip to stay calm and clear-headed. "Mister, I think I entered the wrong room. Please let me goโฆ" Nylaโs voice shook with tension. "Tsk!" Damon's voice was impatient, his tone cold. "Still playing?" He was about to get up and kick Nyla out when the room light suddenly came on. Nyla had accidentally hit the light switch in her struggle. The sudden light made Damon squint. He was shocked when he saw the terrified woman beneath him. Nyla, recognizing Damon, felt the blood drain from her face. The fear sobered her instantly. She couldnโt believe itโthe man who almost violated her was Clarkโs uncle, Damon Summer! "Uncle Damonโฆ" Nyla had always been wary of Damon. He was the youngest son of Richard Sumner and Marie Thorne, doted on by them and known for his unpredictable, cold nature. Even outsiders avoided crossing him. When she married Clark, he had warned her to steer clear of Damon. "Shut up!" Damon's face was dark, his gaze icy, as he contemplated whether to silence her for good. Then, his eyes shifted to her bare body, darkening further. He turned away, getting off the bed. "Get dressed and get out!" As Damon moved, Nyla caught a glimpse of him where she shouldn't, and her face turned red with embarrassment. Upon seeing her flushed face, Damon's expression soured even more. "Still not leaving?" Nyla could not care less about her embarrassment as she hastily dressed and left without looking back. Once outside, she checked the room number and realized her mistakeโit wasnโt Room 8919, but Room 8916! She had entered the wrong room and almost slept with her husbandโs uncle. The thought made her headache worse. She should have let Valarie take her up. Unfortunately, it was too late for regrets now. After Nyla left, Damon dialed a number with a glower on his face. "Delete all surveillance footage from the Empire Skyview Hotel tonight!" Upon hanging up, he looked at the messy bed and sheets, his irritation growing. He had almost slept with his nephewโs wife... What a mess! Chapter 3 On Nyla's way back, she hesitated for a long time before finally messaging Damon, someone whose contact she had had for three years but had never contacted. Nyla: [Uncle Damon... Can we pretend tonight never happened? I was really drunk and went to the wrong room.] She waited for a long time, but there was no response from Damon. Frowning, she sent another message. Nyla: [?] As soon as she sent it, a red exclamation mark appeared: [You are no longer friends with this user. Please send a friend request to continue chatting.] Nyla bit her lip. Damon had deleted her. He must not want to bring this up again. Relieved, she finally felt a bit of peace. โฆ When Nyla got home, it was already past 6:00 a.m. As soon as she opened the door, she saw Clark sitting on the sofa. He turned sharply at the sound of the door, his eyes bloodshot from a sleepless night. "Where were you last night? I called you dozens of times. Why didnโt you answer?" Clark stood up and walked quickly toward her, reaching out to grab her hand, but she pulled away. He froze, about to speak, but she spoke first, her tone icy. "You can stay out all night, but I can't?" Nyla had always been gentle. In their eight years together, they had hardly ever argued. This was the first time she had spoken to him so coldly. Clark sensed something was wrong and noticed her red, swollen eyes. His expression changed, and his hand clenched at his side. "You know, don't you?" His voice was calm, without a trace of guilt or panic, as if he had expected this day to come. Upon seeing his unapologetic demeanor, Nyla's long-suppressed emotions finally exploded. She swung her bag at him, her eyes red with fury, like a madwoman. All the good times they had shared, all the happy moments, were shattered the moment she saw him in bed with another woman. They could never be pieced together again. "Clark Sumner, how could you do something so disgusting?! If you didnโt love me anymore, you could have divorced me. Why did you have to hurt me like this?" Nyla had assumed that no third party could ever come between them. Unfortunately, reality gave her a harsh slap, waking her from the lies he had woven and turning her love for him into a joke. Seeing her red, tear-filled eyes, Clark felt a pang in his chest. He grabbed her hand and pulled her into his arms. "Nyla, Iโm sorry..." Nyla shoved him away, wanting to laugh but only tears came. "Donโt touch me with your filthy hands! "Is it that hard to stay faithful? "Since we got married, Iโve met many excellent men, and some have shown interest in me. But Iโve never crossed the line. If I can do it, why canโt you?!" Clark clenched his fists when he saw the disappointment and anger in her eyes. "Nyla, youโre the only one I loveโฆ It was just an accident with herโฆ" His explanation sounded so weak that Nyla found it both laughable and nauseating. "So youโre saying I could sleep with another man and then tell you it was an accident? That I may have betrayed you physically, but my heart still belongs to you?" A flash of ruthlessness crossed Clark's eyes. "If you dare, Iโll end you and that man together in bed." Seeing his icy gaze, Nyla felt a chill in her heart. If he knew betrayal was unforgivable, why would he still betray her? She took a deep breath and spoke slowly. "Do you remember what I told you when you proposed?" She had said that if he ever betrayed her, she would not forgive him but leave him. Clarkโs expression changed. "I will not let you leave!" Nyla wiped her tears, her expression a mixture of ridicule and hatred. "Whether you agree or not, Iโve made up my mind. Iโm divorcing you. You donโt deserve my forgiveness." With that, she ignored his reaction and went upstairs. Clark stared at her back, his gaze dark. โฆ Back in the bedroom, Nyla went straight to the bathroom to shower, unable to stand the smell of wine on herself. While applying body wash, she noticed red marks on her chest and paused. The image of Damonโs hands roaming her body flashed through her mind, making her frown. She scrubbed the marks hard until the skin around them turned red, trying to erase his touch. After her shower, she saw Clark sitting on the bed with his head down, lost in thought. She frowned and decided to ignore him. They would be divorced soon anyway. Clark looked up and saw Nyla coming out in just a towel. Her damp hair dripped water, her freshly washed face flushed like a blooming rose with an enticing fragrance. The towel barely covered her behinds, revealing her long, fair legs. His breath hitched, his gaze glued on her. Nyla didnโt notice Clark's reaction. She walked to the wardrobe to grab her pajamas when a pair of arms suddenly wrapped around her from behind. "Nyla..." Clark's voice was husky, filled with undisguised desire. Clark had been thinking about how to win her back downstairs after she left. The only way he could think of was to have a child with her. He had come upstairs to discuss this with her, planning to take it slow. However, he lost control upon seeing her just out of the shower. In the past, such behavior would have stirred Nyla's feelings, but all she felt now was disgust. She turned and pushed him away, her gaze full of revulsion. "Donโt touch me. I feel dirty." Hurt flashed in Clark's eyes. He grabbed her hands, his expression earnest. "Didnโt you always want a child? Letโs have one now, okay?" Nyla shook him off at his matter-of-fact attitude. "That was before. I might have a child in the future, but it wonโt be yours." Her words enraged Clark. He grabbed her and threw her onto the bed, pinning her down. "Say that again!" His eyes were full of anger, but Nyla didnโt care. "It doesnโt matter how many times I say it. Iโm disgusted by you. Iโd rather die than have your child." As soon as she finished speaking, Clark kissed her fiercely. Chapter 4 Nyla froze for a moment, then struggled desperately. Just the thought of Clark kissing another woman the night before filled her with disgust and rage. "Let go!" Her struggles were futile against Clark, who only tightened his grip around her waist. As she fought, her towel loosened, revealing her body. His gaze darkened, and he felt a rush of desire. Their bodies were pressed tightly together, and Nyla quickly noticed the change in Clark. Furious, she bit him hard, tasting blood in their mouths. Instead of letting go, Clark's other hand slipped under Nyla's towel. She had nothing on underneath, having just come out of the shower. She stiffened and struggled even more fiercely. "Clark, get off me!" Clark ignored Nyla, his fingers teasing her sensitive spots. "Nyla, you need me too, don't you?" Nylaโs struggles were in vain, and she grew increasingly desperate. As Clark positioned himself, she closed her eyes in despair. "Clark, don't make me hate you." Clark halted abruptly. Seeing Nyla filled with despair and pain, like a fragile porcelain doll about to shatter, made him pause. He wanted her desperately, but a voice in his head warned that if he took her now, it would be the end of them. He stared at her, his hand tightening around her waist. After several tense seconds, he suddenly let go and got off the bed, leaving the room quickly. The door slammed shut with a loud bang, making Nyla flinch. She clutched the blanket tightly. โฆ For the next few days, Clark didn't come home. Nyla called him several times to discuss the divorce, but he didn't respond. โฆ The weekend arrived. Nyla was in the living room, sending out job applications when she heard the front door open. Clark walked in, looking haggard. They stared at each other in silence until Nyla broke it, closing her laptop and standing up calmly. "Since you're back, let's talk about the divorce." Clark frowned. "I told you, I won't divorce you. I'm here to remind you that we have to go to the family dinner tonight." The Sumners held a monthly dinner, and ever since their wedding, Clark and Nyla had attended together. The family wasn't kind to Nyla, often treating her poorly. She endured it because she believed Clark loved her. After seeing him with another woman, however, she couldn't lie to herself anymore. "I don't want to go. Go by yourself." Clarkโs expression turned impatient. "Nyla, how long are you going to keep this up?" He had ignored her calls and messages, hoping she would calm down, but she was still the same. "I'm not keeping anything up. I just want a divorce." Upon hearing the word "divorce", Clark's patience wore thin. He looked at Nyla as if she were unreasonable. "Divorce? You haven't worked since we got married. How will you support yourself? Which company would hire you? And what about your father's exorbitant medical bills? Can you afford those? "Nyla, you're not a teenager anymore. You're 28. It's time to grow up. "I'm the CEO of the Sumner Group. I face temptations all the time. Sometimes, it's hard to resist, but those women will never take your place as my wife. What more do you want?" Clark couldn't understand why Nyla didn't see that he still loved her, even if he couldn't commit to being with her forever. Seeing Clarkโs arrogant demeanor, Nyla couldn't reconcile this man with the shy boy who had once blushed while confessing his love and promising never to hurt her. Maybe this was his true selfโselfish, proud, and condescending. "If being mature means tolerating your infidelity, then I'm sorry, I can't do that. Find someone else. Here are the divorce papers I've had drafted. Sign them when you have time." Clark glanced at the documents, sneering when he saw the section on asset division. "Quite the appetite you have, asking for half my assets. Do you really think that's possible?" "I deserve it. Why not?" Clark chuckled, his tone mocking. "Look around this house. Did you buy anything here? I've been covering your father's medical expenses for years. If we tally things up, you should be paying me. Should I have my lawyer do the math?" As Nyla watched his bitter expression, she couldn't believe she had once loved this man. He had hidden his true self so well that, until she caught him cheating, she had thought he was a great guy. "Don't forget, if it weren't for me giving you that patent, you wouldn't be the Sumner Group's CEO. And you were the one who told me to stay home after we got married. If I had continued my research, I would have earned far more than what you've given me." Unfazed, Clark replied, "Who would believe you about the patent now? "I don't want to argue about money, but if you insist on a divorce, we'll have to settle accounts. Nyla, as long as you drop the divorce idea, my money is still yours to use." "Clark, you're despicable!" Since he refused to divorce, she'd have to sue. She turned to leave, but he blocked her. "Change your clothes. We're going to the family dinner." "I said I'm not going. Tell them I'm not feeling well." Clark grabbed her wrist. "Nyla, I'm running out of patience. Don't force me to cut off your father's medical expenses." "You wouldn't dare!" Clark took out his phone and called his secretary. "Cancel my father-in-law's medical payment for next monthโ" Furious, Nyla grabbed his phone and ended the call. "You're crossing a line, Clark." "Crossing a line?" Clark's gaze was full of contempt as he yanked her closer. "Everything you have is because of me. Don't you think you're the one crossing the line? Change your clothes, or I have numerous ways to make you comply." Chapter 5 Seeing the coldness in Clark's eyes, Nyla realized how blind she had been to fall in love with such a man. Her eyes stung with unshed tears, but she refused to show any vulnerability in front of him. She yanked her hand away, took a deep breath, and headed upstairs. The only thought in her mind was to find a job quickly so she could move out and divorce Clark. She grabbed a random outfit, tied her hair up with a hairpin, and went back downstairs. She was never one to fuss over her appearance. In the past, she had dressed up for the Sumners' gatherings to make a good impression. Now, she couldn't care less. Hearing her footsteps, Clark looked up. Nyla wore a fitted white dress, her waist so slender it seemed it could be encircled with one hand. Her hair was secured with a jade hairpin, revealing her delicate neck. She was breathtakingly beautiful. The grace she exuded was just like when they first met. However, the look in her eyes now was devoid of any warmth. "Letโs go," she said. They drove to the Sumner residence in silence. As they arrived and were about to get out of the car, a black Range Rover sped up and stopped abruptly in front of them. Upon recognizing the car, Clark's expression darkened. It was Damon's car, someone he both feared and disliked. Damon was known for his reckless and unpredictable behavior. He had refused to take over the Sumner Group when Richard wanted him to run the company, choosing to start his own business instead. Everyone had expected him to fail, but within five years, his company had grown to be worth several times more than the Sumner Group. Clark couldn't stand Damon, partly out of jealousy. Once, a comment Clark made about Damon reached Damon's ears, and in retaliation, Damon refused to collaborate with the Sumner Group, costing them millions. Damon rarely attended family dinners, and Clark had hoped to avoid him. Luck wasnโt on his side todayโthey met at the door. He didnโt notice Nylaโs stiffened expression when she saw Damon get out of his car. Clark opened the car door and greeted, "Uncle Damon." Damon glanced at him indifferently, his gaze briefly landing on the passenger seat before he nodded and walked into the house. Nyla let out a deep breath. When Damon looked her way, she had forgotten to breathe, fearing he might say something outrageous. He was known for his unpredictable nature, always doing whatever he pleased. Fortunately, he said nothing. She decided she needed to talk to him privately later. As Clark and Nyla walked into the living room, they saw it was already filled with people. Richard and Marie, the family heads, were chatting with Damon. He was the kind of person who naturally stood out in a crowd. Noticing Nylaโs gaze on Damon, Clark frowned. "Why are you staring at my uncle?" Nyla withdrew her gaze and replied coolly, "None of your business." Her coldness irritated Clark. "Nyla, you know I donโt like you paying attention to other men." Ever since they got together, Clark had been extremely controlling, not allowing Nyla to interact with other men. She used to think this was a sign of his love, but now it seemed laughable. She sneered. "And I donโt like you sleeping with other women, but you seem to enjoy it just fine." Clark said through gritted teeth, "This is a family dinner. Weโll deal with this later." "If you donโt want me to bring it up, then stay out of my business," she retorted. Clark didnโt want to cause a scene now because it might affect the Sumner Group and his standing with Richard, who still held all the companyโs shares. As they talked, Marie called out, "Nyla, Clark, youโre here! Come sit down!" Nyla took a deep breath, forcing a smile as she approached. She might not like the Sumners, but she maintained basic manners. "Hello, Grandpa, Grandma," she greeted with a smile. Marie, who had been urging Damon to settle down and get married, looked pleased to see the couple. "Come, sit down." She turned to Damon with a hint of dissatisfaction. "Look at Clark. He manages the company well and has a beautiful wife. They might have children soon. And you? Almost 30 and still single. If you donโt bring a girlfriend next time, donโt bother coming!" Damon glanced at the couple with a smirk. "She is indeed beautiful." He just wondered how that petite frame would suffer if she were to have children. Nyla frowned, feeling uncomfortable with Damonโs gaze. Clark also noticed the inappropriate way Damon looked at Nyla. It wasnโt the look of an elder but more like a man admiring a woman. His hand clenched into a fist, and his body tensed. Marie sighed. "My point is, when will you bring me a daughter-in-law?" "Depends. If I meet someone I like, maybe Iโll bring her back tomorrow," Damon replied nonchalantly. "Youโre too picky! Iโve arranged a good match for you. Date's tomorrow, donโt ruin it." "Then youโll probably have to apologize to another old friend tomorrow." Frustrated, Marie snapped, โYouโre going to drive me crazy!โ Damon glanced at Clark. โClark's been married for years. Instead of pushing me, why donโt you encourage him to have kids?โ Marie nodded, realizing Damon wouldnโt listen to her. She turned to Nyla and Clark, her expression softening. โNyla, you and Clark have been married for a few years now. When are you planning to have children?โ Chapter 6 Nyla lifted her head to speak, but Clark grabbed her hand and smiled. "Grandma, we're working on it!" Nyla tried to pull her hand away, but Clark's grip was too tight. If he wouldn't let her be, she wouldn't make it easy for him either. She turned to Marie. "Grandma, I'm looking for a job right now, so having children might have to wait." The room fell silent. Clark's grip on Nyla's hand tightened painfully, and she winced. Damon glanced at Clark's hand on Nyla, noticing the bulging veins, then looked away indifferently. Clarkโs aunt, Anne Sumner, sneered. "Nyla, don't blame me for being blunt. You've been married for years. How can you not have a child yet? If it weren't for Clark insisting on marrying you, do you think your family could have ever married into the Sumners? "You should be grateful. If you don't want to have Clark's child, there are plenty of women who do. If someone else steps in, youโll be the one looking silly." Besides, Anne thought, "Who knows if Nyla is fertile?" She sounded like she meant well, but her gaze at Nyla was filled with an air of superiority. Marie frowned at Anne, disapproving. "Anne, enough." Anne pursed her lips but stayed silent. Marie turned back to Nyla with a kind smile. "Nyla, you and Clark are still young. If you don't want children yet, that's fine. Just don't overwork yourself. Our family isn't short on money. You can work if you want, but take it easy." Nyla nodded. "I understand, Grandma." With that, the awkward moment passed, and the room returned to its previous warmth. Seeing the attention shift away, Clark pulled Nyla out of the living room. Once they reached the gazebo in the backyard, he released her. "Nyla, have you lost your mind? Do you want everyone to know about our fight?" Nyla rubbed her sore hand and said, "I was just being honest." "Honest?" Clark scowled. "Should I call your father then?" Harrison Jayston was ill and couldn't handle stress. Nyla planned to divorce Clark before breaking the news to him gently. She glared at Clark. "You wouldnโt dare! You were the one who cheated. What right do you have to be so self-righteous?" Clark clenched his hands, a flicker of guilt crossing his face before it was replaced by impatience. "I promised it wouldnโt happen again. If you don't want to see Jordyn, I'll fire her. What more do you want?" Nyla felt like there was a communication breakdown between them and turned away. "I don't want to argue with you here." When Clark saw her red-rimmed eyes, he softened. "Nyla, I truly know I was wrong. Just don't mention divorce, and I'll make it up to you. I love you. I can't let you go." Nyla found it laughable. How could he claim to love her while being with another woman? Just thinking about him with someone else made her sick. "I will never forgive you." Betrayal was her bottom line. She couldnโt pretend nothing had happened or reconcile with him. Clark knew Nyla well enough to understand that he had to be patient. He believed she still had feelings for him. Otherwise, she would have made a bigger scene when she found out. As long as he refused to divorce her, she would eventually forgive him. "Fine, we won't talk about it now. If you don't want kids yet, weโll postpone it to two years later. Since you want to work, I'll have my secretary find you a position at the Sumner Group." Nyla laughed at his arrangement, a mocking look in her eyes. "Clark, do you see me as a puppet you can control?" Hurt by her gaze, Clark frowned. "How am I controlling you? You don't want kids now, so I agreed to wait two years. You want to work, so I'll arrange it. What more do you want?" "Stop pretending. I don't want kids because I want a divorce. I want to work to sever ties with you." Clark looked at Nyla's stubborn face, displeased. Since their wedding, she had been like a canary in his cage. He couldn't let her go. "As long as I don't agree, this marriage won't end. Even if you tell a lawyer I cheated, do you have proof?" Clark's confident tone and controlling demeanor made Nyla step back, trembling with anger. She finally saw how selfish and disgusting he was. She had wasted eight yearsโthe best years of her life, from 18 to 26โloving this man. "You make me sick, Clark!" Seeing the undisguised disgust in Nyla's eyes, Clar | LEARN_MORE | https://findedc.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=15692& | Indulge in story | https://www.facebook.com/61552702618591/ | 910 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn More | 0 | findedc.com | DCO | https://findedc.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=15692&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}}&placement={{placement}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-2.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/468455042_1262834138099234_1389968434765802098_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60_tt6&_nc_cat=105&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=iv3KycLhnWIQ7kNvgHh8CH0&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-2.xx&_nc_gid=AMaFzaCKiDlLSkjSgUamEk9&oh=00_AYBtbzlYs-G2JxND7uJq45YWFpbJtqPDATeFYgrStQJ4Jg&oe=677A5507 | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Indulge in story | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,656,651 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2656652}' |
Yes | 2024-12-31 18:39 | active | 2174 | 0 |
|
๐Attention! Do not read in public๏ผ๐ | When Helena Lane arrived at the police station, dawn had yet to break. Tiny snowflakes swirled in the night wind, melting as soon as they touched the ground, leaving a muddy mess. Two hours earlier, Helena had received news that her newlywed husband, Kenneth Keller, had been arrested on suspicion of assault. Not wanting to alarm her family, she came alone as his lawyer and closest relative. Seated in the visitation room, Helena was focused on cleaning the grayish mud off her high heels when Kenneth entered, escorted by two officers. Seeing her, his eyes flickered with a hint of surprise before he casually slouched into the seat across from her, looking more relaxed than he ever did at home. There wasnโt a hint of panic in his demeanor and certainly no trace of fear. As the heir to one of Greenwickโs most powerful family empires, Kenneth was notorious for his rebellious streak, acting with complete disregard for convention and authority. Fear? It was something others felt around him, not the other way around. Had it not been for the high-ranking officer overseeing the case, he wouldnโt have been here at all, no matter what trouble he caused. Helena stared at him, expressionless, and got straight to the point. โMr. Keller, care to explain what happened last night?โ Kenneth draped his arms over the back of the chair, lazily studying the woman seated opposite him, who looked all serious and professional. Her camel cashmere coat was pressed to perfection, her clear, unblemished face free of makeup, and her low ponytail perfectly in place. She showed none of the anger or panic one might expect from a wife whoโd just learned of her husbandโs charges. Her demeanor was all business. โAnd are you asking as the corporate attorney, orโฆโ he let his lips curl slightly, pausing deliberately, then lowered his voice to a murmur, โas my wife?โ The low, suggestive tone seemed to linger in the air, but Helena remained unfazed, her gaze cool. โIs there a difference?โ He raised an eyebrow. โIf youโre here as an attorney, I want a replacement.โ He paused, then gave her a sidelong glance, a touch of mischief gleaming in his eyes. โIf youโre here as my wife, then you should start by calling me โhoney.โโ Helena glanced at him, completely unamused by the little game he was playing in a situation like this. This was all too typical of him. โIf the charges stick, youโll be looking at three to ten years behind bars.โ Helenaโs cool voice was laced with sarcasm as she added, โTired of your fancy feasts, Mr. Keller? Thought youโd try bread and pickles for a change?โ Kenneth met her mildly annoyed gaze. He was entirely unfazed and even held a roguish grin. โWhat, worried about me?โ Seeing that Kenneth had no intention of cooperating, Helena, who had only come as a formality, decided not to waste any more time and rose to leave. โThis is the police station, Mr. Keller. Talking nonsense here is more troublesome than keeping silent,โ she reminded him, urging him not to spout off. โAnd remember, we signed a prenuptial agreement.โ Feelings of attachment had no place in their contractual, paper-thin marriage. Were it not for the fact that he was needed at the South City project bidding event that afternoonโor the concern that his grandmother would worry if she learned of his arrestโshe wouldnโt have bothered with him at all. It wasnโt until Helenaโs figure disappeared through the door that Kenneth slowly withdrew his gaze. She hadnโt even glanced back, completely indifferent to whether or not heโd assaulted another woman. But then again, to her, their marriage was never real. Sheโd personally drafted the prenuptial agreement and had never considered him a life partner. In truth, she had never intended for him to play any lasting role in her life. The roguish smile on his handsome face faded gradually. His eyelids lowered, and his eyes held a barely perceptible hint of disappointment. Ten minutes later, Helena found herself outside the interview room, facing the lead officer, Eric Langston. After five years, Ericโs aura was more intimidating than ever, radiating a fierce, unapproachable presence that surpassed even what she remembered. Helena had anticipated seeing Eric at the police station, but when she finally faced him, she paused for a couple of seconds to collect herself. Five years ago, Helena could never have guessed that, Eric, her frugal, hardworking seniorโa man sheโd worked part-time jobs withโcame from a prominent family. That was until Ericโs mother warned her, โA beggar of unknown origin, a stray the Keller family took in, daring to latch onto my son? Take a good look at yourself! โMy son has a fiancรฉeโsomeone whose family background, upbringing, and character make you unworthy to even shine her shoes. Oh, and in case you didnโt know, theyโll be going abroad together soon. โYouโd better understand your place and stop shamelessly clinging to my son. Getting rid of someone as low as you is easier than squashing an ant.โ Before she turned seven, Helena had been forced to beg on the streets, only to be rescued during a police raid on a human trafficking ring. Since her parents were never identified through the DNA database, she was sent to an orphanage. She grew up used to the scorn of others but never had she felt such raw humiliation. It was as though her dignity had been ripped away, thrown to the ground, and trampled upon. Any feelings she had for Eric vanished completely. If he hadnโt hidden his identity, she wouldnโt have suffered this shame. Out of pride and resentment, she never saw him again after that, even after he graduated. As time went by, Helena realized that Ericโs mother had been behind it all and that she might have directed some of her resentment toward him unfairly. With a polite yet distant smile, Helena broke the silence. โEric, itโs been a long time.โ Eric assessed Helena with an impassive gaze. Seeing her composed demeanor, he raised his brows slightly and nodded. He then turned and entered the interview room first. Helena exhaled deeply, steeling herself as she followed him inside as a witness. Her marriage to Kenneth was a well-kept secret. Aside from close family, no one knew they were married. Kenneth refused to cooperate with the police, adamantly withholding any details about what happened the previous night. Left with no choice, Helena had to implement a backup plan: testifying as his wife. After all, rumor had it that in Wellington's criminal investigations division, Eric was known as the โJudge"โonce he set his sights on someone, even the smallest sins from birth would be unearthed. Kenneth, being the reckless type, was bound to have skeletons in his closet. With the South City project at a critical juncture and Kennethโs role as CEO on the line, this was the worst possible time for a scandal. Moreover, his grandmother's frail health couldn't withstand such a shock. Helena knew she had to protect him, both for professional and personal reasons. Once the deposition was complete, Eric regarded Helena with a complicated expression. โWhen did you and Mr. Keller get married?โ Helena met his intense gaze, feeling a slight ripple in her heart before quickly composing herself. She replied calmly, โAlmost a month ago. Would you like to see the marriage certificate?โ It had only been a month since Eric had applied for a transfer back to Greenwick. Had it not been for a minor delay in the paperwork... Ericโs gaze darkened, and after a moment, he spoke with difficulty, โAre you certain you were with him the entire night?โ After a brief pause, he added, โAs a lawyer, you should be aware of the consequences of perjury.โ Sensing his doubt, Helena took a deep breath and responded with professional confidence. โAccording to Article 305 of the Criminal Code, committing perjury is punishable by up to three years in prison or detention. In serious cases, it carries a sentence of three to seven years. "And if a lawyer commits a crime intentionally, their license will be revoked. Which is precisely why my testimony carries even more weight.โ Kenneth had been accused of breaking into a hotel room at 12:37 a.m., assaulting a female celebrity, and not leaving until more than two hours had passed. Testifying as his wife, Helena claimed that Kenneth had been home until just before midnight, stepping out only at 11:57 p.m. By her calculations, even in the fastest sports car, it would take at least an hour to reach the hotel from their house. Moreover, she had obtained all surveillance footage from the route Kenneth took after leaving, each clip showing him driving past, proving he had no time to commit the crime. Chapter 0002 "The police retrieved hotel surveillance screenshots that show the perpetrator wearing a mask. Basing suspicion on nothing more than a similar build and hairstyle is clearly insufficient evidence.โ Helenaโs voice was calm but precise, each word landing with conviction. Eric felt a slight ringing in his ears from her firm tone. Watching her, who was radiating professional confidence, he couldnโt help but recall how she once dominated the debate stage back in college with the same spirit. The secondary officer, noticing Ericโs silence, couldnโt hold back. โThe victim identified him personally, and we found DNA that matches Mr. Kellerโsโthatโs our strongest evidence!โ Helenaโs sharp, clear gaze didnโt waver; she remained as composed as ever, unshaken. โAfter more than two hours of alleged assault, not a single fingerprint or any other biological trace was recovered from the victim or the scene. I have every reason to believe Kenneth is being framed.โ The secondary officer protested, โWhat if he knew how to cover his tracks, cleaning the scene thoroughly?โ โWhat if?โ Helenaโs lips curved slightly, and her eyes held a confident gleam. โWhat if he wasnโt there at all? Itโs the policeโs duty to eliminate reasonable doubt; the law doesnโt permit presumption of guilt.โ The officer was left speechless, eventually turning to Eric for backup, only to see him staring at Helena in a daze. Unable to resist, he nudged Eric with his elbow. โYouโฆdo you really believe him?โ Eric finally came to his senses, his voice hoarse as he asked. Helena paused, taken aback. Did she believe Kenneth? Ever since she was adopted by the Keller family at ten, supposedly due to a favorable fortune reading, she had witnessed Kennethโs defiance and disregard for rules and morals, his actions always based on his whims. But when she received the news of his arrest around three in the morning, even knowing the police had collected his DNA, her first move hadnโt been to go to the station. Instead, sheโd instructed someone to look for evidence of his alibi. Subconsciously, when it came to this matter, she actually trusted Kenneth! No matter how he usually acted out, heโd never crossed that line. This realization brought an inexplicable unease to her heart. She averted her gaze from Eric and said softly but firmly, โI only trust the evidence.โ Eric watched her, remaining silent for a long time. With the alibi evidence presented, Kennethโs suspicion was reduced. Given his influential status, the police had no choice but to grant Helenaโs request for bail. โSomeone actually managed to wrest a detainee from the captainโs handsโlooks like weโre in for a miracle,โ murmured an officer. "Miss Lane works for the legal department at Keller Corporation, doesnโt she? Sheโs not only beautiful but also impressively skilled with criminal casesโdefinitely worth a second look." "Sheโs actually two years his juniorโtheyโre both alumni. With all her achievements, how did they not know each other back then?" Eric stood by the window, the officers' murmurs buzzing in his ears, his sharp gaze fixed on the scene below. The tall, commanding figure of a man walked out of the police station, following a slender woman. From behind, they looked like a perfect match, though it stung to watch. Ericโs hands, hanging at his sides, clenched instinctively. Memories from five years ago surfaced vividly. At graduation, his family arranged for him to study abroad. Before leaving, he asked Helena to meet him, intending to confess his feelings. If she was willing, heโd take her with him; heโd even secured a spot for her at the same school. But from evening until dawn, he waited for five long hours. Helena never showed, and then she blocked his number. Unable to let go, he sought her out that night, only to witness Helena stepping out of Kennethโs car, her clothes disheveled. Sensing his presence, Kenneth shifted to block her view, shielding her as they headed toward the house. One of Kennethโs security guards quickly covered Ericโs mouth and dragged him to the side entrance. Eric struggled, desperate to confront Helena and find out what had happened but was met with Kennethโs unrestrained fist. "Sheโs mine. Try to get close to her again, and I donโt care if your last nameโs LangstonโIโll end you life." After that night, every attempt Eric made to see Helena was thwarted by Kenneth. Finally, Kenneth โaccidentallyโ called him, letting him hear Helena say she didnโt want to see him and never would. Eric had given himself five years to let go, yet he still couldnโt. But now, he had come back only to find he was one step too late! Back then, Eric sensed that Helena had feelings for him. Taking a deep breath, he suppressed the surge of resentment and resisted the urge to rush down and pull Helena away. Kenneth, initially following leisurely behind Helena, suddenly quickened his pace as they approached the car, as though sensing something. He wrapped an arm around her, his touch overly intimate. Helenaโs body went rigid, and she instinctively tried to push him off with a frown. "Whatโs gotten into you now?" "Didnโt sleep all nightโcanโt walk straight," Kenneth replied, completely unbothered, practically leaning his full weight onto her shoulder. Helena muttered, โServes you right,โ under her breath. Realizing they were almost at the car and that she couldnโt budge him, she gave up and resigned herself to dragging him along like a dead weight. Fortunately, ever since Kenneth had pushed her into the fountain when she was twelve, sheโd kept up with self-defense training over the years, enough to prevent him from easily knocking her over. Finally reaching the car, Kenneth, in a rare moment of consideration, opened the door for her and even held a hand above the frame to protect her from bumping her head. Helena eyed him warily. โWhat are you up to now?โ From the first day sheโd met Kenneth, sheโd learned that the prettier the smile, the more dangerous the person. "I'm Kenneth Keller; you can call me Ken!" Helena had never seen such a beautiful boy before. Standing in the sunlight, he looked like a porcelain doll that glowed. His bright smile eased some of her nervousness at being in her new home. She shyly placed her hand in his. But the next moment, his smile turned malicious and dangerous. She felt something slimy squirm in her palm, and when she looked down, a small green snake was flicking its tongue at her. Horrified, Helena fainted instantly. He was worse than the kids who bullied her back at the orphanage. As Kenneth grew older, his methods of teasing and tormenting Helena became endlessly inventive. Helena went from feeling nervous and afraid to a constant state of vigilance, learning to gauge the level of danger just by reading his expressions and movements. Just like now. Her entire body tensed, ready to respond at any moment. Kennethโs roguish grin spread across his finely sculpted face, softening with an unusual gentleness. โComing all the way here early in the morning to rescue me from 'Judge Langston'โthanks for the effort, honey.โ Helena held his gaze for a few seconds, assessing the threat level. Confirming it was low, she mentally deactivated her alert. She rubbed her arms discreetly, trying to shake off the goosebumps, then leaned down and got into the car. Kenneth shut the door for her and made his way around to the passenger side. Before getting in, he shot a smug, defiant grin and lifted his brows at a particular window of the police station, oozing satisfaction. โWhere did you actually go last night?โ Helena finally asked after theyโd driven a fair distance from the station. Though sheโd found enough evidence to prove Kenneth didnโt have time to commit the crime, the police had still found his DNA at the scene, a fact that couldnโt be overlooked. Without clearing up this detail, his suspicion wouldnโt fully dissipate. Knowing his movements would allow Helena to defend him more effectively and prevent further police scrutiny. Kenneth reclined lazily in his seat, adopting his usual indifference. He shot back with her own words, โDid you forget about the prenuptial agreement you drafted yourself, Miss Lane?โ No interference. No questions. It was the most crucial clause in their marriage agreement, second only to asset divisionโthe very foundation of their contractual union. โMr. Keller, I have no intention of prying into your private life,โ Helena said, keeping her eyes on the road as she gripped the steering wheel, patiently explaining, โRight now, youโre only out on bail. The police havenโt dropped their suspicions. Knowing your whereabouts last night is the only way to clear you.โ Kenneth suddenly sat up, turning to study the sharp lines of her profile. His eyes flickered slightly, and his voice held a faint, almost undetectable trace of tension. โDo youโฆbelieve I didnโt do it?โ Chapter 0003 Helena ignored Kennethโs odd look and said coolly, "What kind of woman could you possibly not get, Mr. Keller? You donโt need to stoop to something so low." In terms of looks, wealth, and power, Kenneth was a constant presence in the countryโs top three "Most Eligible Bachelors" lists. Women who fawned over him numbered in the thousands. A month ago, on that fateful night when heโd let his guard slipโan infatuated woman had drugged him, leading to an unexpected encounter with a drunken Helena. Kenneth scoffed and settled back into his seat, smirking. โSince you know me so well, Miss Lane, why donโt you take a guess at where I was last night?โ Helena frowned slightly. โMr. Keller, your lack of cooperation will only prolong the police investigation.โ โAnd so what?โ Kenneth scoffed, raising an eyebrow. โAre you worried the police will dig too deep, or are you more concerned that someone else might come up empty-handed?โ Realizing heโd let slip more than he intended, Kenneth quickly shifted his focus, glancing at the upcoming intersection. โTake a left here and drop me off at the Starlight Club.โ Ignoring his veiled jabs, Helena kept her tone professional. โThe afternoonโs bidding event is important. Youโll need to attend in top form.โ Without a word, she continued driving in the opposite direction, away from the club. Kenneth was silent for a moment, then lifted his gaze with a wry smile. โMiss Lane, are you planning to breach the marriage agreement? Because if thatโs the case, then I could ask you to fulfill certain marital duties.โ Screech! The car came to an abrupt halt. The white sedan quickly reversed direction and headed straight for Greenwickโs largest entertainment club. When Kenneth chose to be reckless, nothingโnot even a contractโcould rein him in. The only reason he upheld their agreement was that Helena had followed it to the letter. If she broke it, what right did she have to expect him to do the same? Though Kenneth was unpredictable, he never shirked his responsibilities. After a night out and a morning spent at Starlight, he still showed up impeccably dressed and right on time for the afternoon bidding event. But as soon as it ended, he vanished once again. Helena was on her way back to the office when she received a call from Kennethโs grandmother, Rachel Wilson. โHelena, the bidding event is over, right? Donโt forget to come home with Kenneth for dinner tonight!โ That was when it hit Helenaโit was the end of the month. The Keller family rule required every family member in Greenwick to return home for dinner on the last day of the month, no matter how busy they were. Kenneth never took that family rule seriously; it was always up to Helena to remind him. This time, however, sheโd been too busy reviewing bid documents and dealing with Kennethโs issues at the police station that morning, so the reminder had slipped her mind. Not wanting to disappoint Rachel, Helena reluctantly called Kenneth three times. But he didnโt answer his phone. Kenneth was too independent to tolerate bodyguards trailing him. His protection detail consisted of covert security, hidden and discreet. Helena hesitated, ultimately deciding not to ask them for his whereabouts. They only answered to Kenneth, and they might not tell her anyway. Besides, if he found out sheโd been trying to track him down, who knew what kind of reaction sheโd face? Left with no choice, Helena headed to the Starlight Club on the off chance heโd be there. It seemed her luck was in her favor. She had been to the club a few times before with her friend, Miranda Cook, so the manager recognized her. Upon learning she was looking for Kenneth, he graciously offered to pass along the message. After a few minutes, the manager returned, looking pale, and shook his head apologetically. "Miss Lane, Iโm sorry, but Mr. Keller said heโs unavailable." Helena lowered her gaze, keeping her expression unchanged. When the manager had opened the door to enter, sheโd caught a quick glimpse inside. In the room, a sultry woman in a skimpy outfit was moving suggestively to the music, clinging to a pole in a dance. She hadnโt seen Kenneth directly, but with such a lively atmosphere, it was clear he wasnโt short of female company. So, he was irritated that sheโd interrupted his fun. Helena offered the manager a polite smile, slipped him a few bills from her wallet as a tip, and left the club, heading back to her car. โFive minutes. If you donโt come down by then, Iโm leaving. You can explain yourself to Grandma.โ Helena pulled out her phone, found Kennethโs profile picture, and quickly sent him a message. The last text sheโd sent him was a month ago, forwarding the marriage agreement, to which heโd replied with a curt โWhatever.โ After hitting send, she set a five-minute countdown on her phone, leaned back in her seat, and closed her eyes to rest. Kenneth had been raised by Rachel and held a deep respect for her. Helena had once overheard someone joking, โKenneth Keller fears nothing and no oneโexcept a call from his grandmother.โ While an exaggeration, there was truth to it. Kenneth, like an untamed stallion, answered to no oneโฆ except Rachel. Sure enough, with five seconds left on the countdown, the passenger door flew open. As Kenneth slid into the car, a blast of icy wind rushed in, making Helena shiver as her eyes snapped open. โGrown some nerve, havenโt you? Threatening me now?โ Kennethโs eyes narrowed even further, his gaze sharp and dangerous. Before Helena could respond, her phoneโs alarm went off. It was the countdown reminder. She casually switched it off and started the car. โYou flatter me, Mr. Keller. I didnโt mean to ruin your fun, but today is a special case. After all, Grandma is waiting for you.โ Kennethโs frustration turned to a bitter smile as he replied with a mocking tone, โToo bad your last name isnโt Keller. Otherwise, people might think youโre her real grandchild.โ With a frustrated exhale, he slammed the passenger door shut, making the car jolt slightly as it pulled away from the curb. The biting chill that had entered quickly faded, replaced by the warmth of the carโs heaterโset to full, just the way Helena liked it in the cramped space since she hated the cold. Helena kept her hands steady on the wheel, stealing a quick sideways glance at Kenneth. The dim overhead light cast a warm, amber glow over his sculpted profile, softening the sharp lines of his face and adding an unreadable depth to his eyes. She lowered her gaze, instinctively avoiding any unnecessary confrontation. When Rachel chose Helena from the orphanage, sheโd been explicit about her intentions: adopting and supporting Helena was all for the benefit of her grandson, Kenneth. Helena was to be his subordinate, his friend, his partner, and possibly even his wife. But not even Rachel could have predicted that Kenneth would see Helena as a rival. From her first day in the Keller family, Kenneth had made it his mission to give Helena a hard time. Initially, Helena thought her presence was unwelcome and that perhaps he genuinely disliked her. Later, she realized it was jealousy driving him. He resented her for the affection Rachel showed her, feeling as if she had stolen his exclusive bond with Rachel. Once Helena understood that, she stopped trying to earn Kennethโs approval and kept her distance as much as possible. Her path was clear: to be Kennethโs loyal subordinate, protect him, and repay the Keller familyโs support and care. Everything unfolded as she planned. After graduating from college, she joined Keller Corporationโs legal department, shielding Kennethโs reckless behavior and ensuring he maintained his CEO position. But everything changed the night they, both drunk, slept togetherโand were caught by Rachel. To ease Rachelโs worries, Kenneth approached Helena with a proposal for a contractual marriage. In exchange, once the timing was right, they would divorce, and she would be free to live her life as she pleased. Freeing herself from the burden of the Keller familyโs debt was something Helena secretly yearned for; deep down, she had no desire to remain entangled with Kenneth. But then, just as they were settling into the marriage, Rachel fell ill, diagnosed with a terminal condition after being hospitalized from the initial shock. To ease Rachelโs mind, Helena agreed to Kennethโs proposal. Though she wasnโt Rachelโs biological granddaughterโand Rachelโs decision to adopt her had been partly self-servingโover the years, Helena had felt genuine love and care from Rachel. In her heart, she had come to see Rachel as her only family in the world. Not wanting to leave any regrets behind for her, Helena resolved to make this contract marriage appear as genuine as possible. Until the end, she would maintain the pretense of playing the role of a devoted wife to give Rachel peace. Chapter 0004 At the entrance of the Keller Estate. After Helena parked the car, Kenneth silently stepped out. Seeing this, Helena quickly got out as well and hurried to follow. They had to put on a complete act in front of Rachel, pretending to be a deeply affectionate couple. Fortunately, Kenneth kept his composure. Just as they approached the main gate, he paused for a brief moment. Seizing the opportunity, Helena stepped forward, gently wrapping her hand around his arm. Kennethโs movements stiffened slightly. He slowly lowered his gaze, eyeing her slender hand resting on the crook of his arm. Helena took a deep breath, lifted her gaze, and smiled at him. โFor Grandmaโs sake, please bear with me, dear husband.โ โLikewise.โ Kennethโs thin lips curved slightly, his tone carrying a hint of mockery. โThank you for your hard work, dear wife.โ After a brief pause, he lifted his other hand and firmly pressed down on the back of Helenaโs hand, giving her a meaningful smile before striding forward. Caught off guard, Helena stumbled slightly, managing to steady herself after a moment. Yet, his smile left her heart racing, filled with unease. She couldnโt shake the feeling that Kenneth was quietly plotting something again! The Keller Estate was a traditional classical manor, elegant and refined, crafted with ingenuity. The architecture lay nestled by hills and waters, with layered courtyards and pavilions. Helena and Kenneth followed the servant for a while before arriving at the main dining hall. Inside the brightly lit dining hall, the large mahogany dining table, intricately carved, was already surrounded by family members. The Keller family of Greenwick had nearly a century of history, but by Kenneth's grandfather's generation, the line had dwindled to just two sons and a daughterโnone of whom had lived up to expectations. Kennethโs grandfather, Walter Keller, had three children, each a disappointment in their own way. The eldest son was rebellious, storming out of the family home after Walter opposed his marriage to a mysterious dancer. Since that day, he vanished without a trace. The second son, Kennethโs father, Raymond Keller, made his escape with a mistress, choosing to leave on the rainy night of Kennethโs third birthday, only to meet his end in a car accident. Walterโs only daughter went abroad for school, fell for a delinquent, and chose to sever ties with her family rather than return. Hurt by his children, Walter grew indifferent toward Kenneth, instead investing his hopes in the extended familyโs descendants. Near the end of his life, he nearly handed over the Keller family assets to his nephew. But Rachel intervened decisively. Leading a team of lawyers, she reclaimed control over the Keller family, defying opposition to appoint Kenneth as CEO of Keller Corporation. However, in the years Walter had been lenient, the extended family had embedded themselves within the Keller Corporation, securing key positions in various critical departments. Now and then, they continued their schemes, still aiming to wrest control of Keller Corporation from Kenneth. Rachel was fully aware of everything, but her age left her with limited strength; all she could do was maintain the delicate balance between Kenneth and the extended Keller family. In the banquet hall, only the members of the extended family were seated alongside Rachel. The head seat remained vacant, and the tableware set, as always, was reserved for Walter. Rachel, who had been listlessly listening to their complaints, brightened as soon as she saw Kenneth and Helena enter. Her eyes sparkled as she beckoned them over with a smile. "Ken, Lena, you're back! Come, have a seat!" The relatives who had been talking with Rachel were visibly displeased at being ignored, despite their attempts to hide it. Kenneth, however, appeared oblivious, leading Helena with confidence to sit beside Rachel. Leaning in, he whispered something to Rachel that had her laughing with joy, her gaze shifting periodically to Helenaโs abdomen. Helenaโs unease only grew stronger. With Rachel present, she couldnโt say anything directly, so when Kenneth turned to look at her, she shot him a warning look to stay quiet. He merely smirked with a laid-back, roguish grin, which made her grit her teeth and glare at him with even more frustration. To onlookers, however, this seemed like an affectionate exchange, with the young couple exchanging flirtatious glances. Not only had they kept everyone waiting, showing up late to the family dinner without so much as an apology, but they were now putting on a show of intimacy, clearly not taking the others seriously. Recalling Kenneth's usual audacious demeanor, the uncles were increasingly irritated. Kennethโs eldest relative, Jerome Keller, was the first to break the silence. โI thought the bidding meeting for the South City project ended this afternoon. Did you two go off to a celebration party afterward?โ With Jerome setting the tone, other relatives quickly chimed in. "What celebration could possibly be more important than a family dinner? Ken, we may overlook certain things you do outside, but traditions passed down through generations deserve respect." โHelena, Grandma has spent years teaching and guiding you, yet instead of keeping Ken in check, you go along with his antics. Youโre letting her down!โ Subtle verbal jabs came at her from all directions. Helena, long accustomed to this, kept her gaze lowered and ignored their insinuating remarks, turning a deaf ear to the sharp-edged words aimed her way. After all, with Kenneth here, he would be the one to handle these people when things got out of control. Sure enough, in the next instant, Kenneth's smile vanished. He suddenly hurled the expensive teacup in his hand, sending it crashing across the room. The sharp sound of shattering porcelain echoed through the banquet hall, creating an atmosphere of intense pressure that radiated from him, silencing everyone in an instant. Even the small child in someone's arms was too frightened to make a sound. โCelebration dinner, family dinnerโit doesnโt matter. If thereโs food, just eat and be content, but know your limits. Otherwise, I have plenty of ways to make what you eat go right back out. โThe biggest rule in the Keller family is that there are no rules. Otherwise, none of you would be here making pointless remarks. โNeither I nor Grandma see any issues with Helena being the next matriarch, yet you all feel entitled to judge. If youโre so eager to critique, should I air some of your dirty laundry so we can all evaluate each other?โ Kenneth crossed his arms and leaned back, one leg resting casually over the other, his gaze lingering on Jerome for a moment before sweeping lazily around the room. His expression was like that of a grim reaper in idle contemplation, deciding which one of them he might claim next. The unfiltered suggestion, the blatant sarcasmโeven an obvious challenge glimmered in his eyes. Hearing the implication behind his words, the extended members of the family felt both offended and afraid, their discomfort evident as they instinctively looked toward Jerome for direction. "Ken, weโre your elders, just offering reminders for your own good and for the familyโs sake," Jerome replied, holding Kennethโs sharp gaze for a moment before shifting to Helena. "Since we're on the topic of secrets, why donโt we let Helena explain why she was at the police station this morning?" At that, Helenaโs heart skipped a beat. Sheโd received a call from the police that morning and had promptly informed the PR department to keep the news tightly contained. Yet somehow, Jerome knew she had gone to the police station that morning! Helena instinctively glanced at Kenneth, only to find him seated there, arms crossed, a faintly amused look in his eyes as he noticed her gaze. Years of understanding between them meant that with just one look, Helena grasped his intention. He was subtly hinting at Jeromeโs embezzlement, deliberately provoking him by implying he could make him spit it back out. Jerome, who had never taken Kenneth seriously, wasnโt one to tolerate a threat and quickly struck back. But in doing so, he unwittingly exposed his weakness. Yet Kenneth had used her as bait without warning, setting her up as part of his ploy to corner Jerome! Helena clenched her fists discreetly, gritting her teeth in silence. Her instincts hadnโt let her downโKenneth was definitely up to something, setting this trap with her squarely in the middle of it. She knew he was about to throw her under the bus, yet she had no choice but to play along, as if she were a willing partner in the scheme. It was maddening! If not for Rachelโs presence, Helena truly would have loved to walk out and let Kenneth handle this on his own. Sensing the tension, Rachel looked over anxiously and asked, โLena, is everything alright?โ โGrandma.โ Helena took a deep breath, calming herself before gently patting Rachelโs hand with a reassuring smile. โIf something was wrong, would I still be here sitting beside you?โ Rachel still seemed unconvinced and glanced at Kenneth, who nodded lazily with a faint smile, which finally put her at ease. Taking advantage of the moment, Helena shot Kenneth a quick glare before turning back, her expression subtly mocking as she looked at Jerome. โUncle Jerome, I didnโt expect you to be so concerned about me, knowing my whereabouts in such detail. To an outsider, it might look as if youโd had someone tailing me!โ Helena indirectly called out Jeromeโs surveillance, tossing the ball back into his court with effortless poise. โAs your niece-in-law, I may not be the brightest, but I truly donโt understand what youโre implying. Why donโt you clarify what exactly it is that Iโve done thatโs so questionable?โ Chapter 0005 Jerome knew heโd misspoken, yet he hardly cared that Helena had caught him slipping. โThis morning, you rushed off to the police stationโwasnโt it to reconnect with that new captain of the station, Eric Langston?โ Helenaโs heart skipped a beat. Not only was Jerome fully aware of her whereabouts, but he also knew she was acquainted with Eric. Sheโd underestimated Jerome. After all, when she met Eric seven years ago, he was reserved and unapproachable, always keeping his distance from others. Moreover, his mother had erased all traces of her connection with Eric to remove the stain she posed on their family, clearing all records and keeping everything well-hidden. Almost no one knew that she and Eric had been familiar with each other, let alone shared a faintly ambiguous past. If Jerome had the means to uncover her connection with Eric, he could just as easily find out why Kenneth had gone to the police station. Hinting at an old flame between her and Eric was clearly an attempt to drive a wedge. If she didnโt deny it, Rachel would naturally start to doubt her relationship with Kenneth. And even if Kenneth knew the truth, Jeromeโs words would plant seeds of suspicion in his heart that would, over time, lead to cracks. On the other hand, denying it would inevitably drag up the accusations of assault against Kenneth. If Rachel found out, it would not only make her question their story of falling in love over time and choosing to marry but also leave her disappointed in Kenneth. Jerome would then seize the opportunity to make even more outrageous demands. "Uncle Jerome, you really give me too much credit." Helenaโs mind raced, though her expression remained unreadable. "If I actually had any history with Mr. Langston, Iโd certainly have asked him to treat you a bit more courteously before your visit." Jeromeโs pupils contracted, and his expression, like a fractured mask, began to crack silently. Ericโs position was indeed unique, and Jerome had specifically arranged a visit to him on the first day he arrived in Greenwick. There were countless people eager to meet him, and Jerome had struggled through numerous attempts just to secure an appointment. When they finally met, Ericโs demeanor was cold and cutting, his gaze sharp and distant, as though heโd seen right through Jeromeโs intentions from the start. In an attempt to bridge the gap, Jerome had mentioned Helena, who had once been Ericโs schoolmate. Unexpectedly, what was initially supposed to be a brief five-minute meeting turned into a half-hour conversation with Eric. And just last night, despite the gravity of the incident surrounding Kennethโwitnesses and evidence stacked against himโHelena had still managed to bail him out from the station. After all, Eric wasnโt just any officer; he was known as the "Judge." Sensing an opportunity, Jerome had dropped hints in front of everyone, trying to gauge Helenaโs relationship with Eric, hoping it would strain her connection with Kenneth. Without Helenaโs support, he was certain Rachel would eventually see Kenneth as the reckless badboy he truly was. At that point, they could employ a few well-planned moves to seize everything from the Keller family. Yet Jerome hadnโt anticipated that young Helena would maintain her composure so well, even managing to turn the tables on him. The Kellers had strict rules: family members could pursue either business or government, but never both. His secret meeting with Eric was already a breach of those family principles. Noticing the scrutinizing looks from the other relatives, particularly the sharp stares from Rachel and Kenneth, Jerome felt a pang of unease, uncertain how Helena had learned of his visit with Eric. His chest tightened as he gritted his teeth and pressed on, โSo if it wasnโt to catch up with Mr. Langston, why did you rush to the station first thing this morning?โ Before Helena could respond, she sensed something amiss and instinctively stood to shield Rachel. A loud bang erupted in the next instant. Kenneth, without warning, flipped the entire dining table in Jeromeโs direction. Jerome had no time to dodge as dishes, utensils, and food crashed down onto him. A plate of green vegetables landed squarely on his head, resembling a makeshift hat perched on his hair. Ignoring Jeromeโs disheveled appearance and the twisted fury on his face, Kenneth leaned back in his seat, casually wiping his fingers. His movements were graceful, his expression relaxed as if he were seated in a tranquil riverside pavilion, leisurely listening to a distant melody. โIt seems the Keller family meal doesnโt suit everyoneโs taste,โ Kenneth said, his voice calm. โIn that case, no one needs to eat.โ He paused briefly before adding, โAnd as for the end-of-month family dinner tradition, itโs time we canceled that as well.โ With a casual wave, his private guards and bodyguards emerged, promptly escorting all extended relatives out of the estate. Rachel looked on, momentarily stunned, before giving Kenneth a disapproving glance. โKen, youโve managed to offend all your relatives.โ Kenneth raised an eyebrow, a smirk tugging at his lips. โThey openly disrespected me. Did they really think they wouldnโt offend me?โ Beside him, Helena felt her eye twitch. Would it ever end? Heโd clearly wanted to cancel the end-of-month dinner for a while and had finally found his excuse, all under the pretense of โprotectingโ her. Rachelโs gaze shifted between Helena and Kenneth, her expression softening as she smiled knowingly. โSeeing how well you two get along really puts my mind at ease!โ โWell, since youโre at ease, how about cooperating with the doctor and focusing on getting better?โ Kenneth stepped forward, gently holding Rachelโs arm, while his other hand reached around to brush Helenaโs cheek, his eyes on her. โWhat do you say, darling?โ Though filled with frustration, Helena had no choice but to offer a sweet smile and nod. With an exaggerated sigh, Rachel looked longingly at Helena. โAh, if I could just hold a great-grandchild in my arms, Iโd be content even in death!โ Helenaโs mind immediately flashed back to Kennethโs earlier whispered words to Rachel, which had made her repeatedly glance at Helenaโs abdomen. He must have said something he shouldnโt have! After hesitating for a few seconds, she couldnโt bear to let Rachel down and spoke gently, โGrandma, as long as you take care of yourself, Iโm sure that day will come.โ Rachel beamed with joy at Helena's response. Since the family dinner had been cut short, Rachel instructed the staff to bring out fresh dishes. With Helena and Kenneth accompanying her, she enjoyed an extra small plate of pasta, a rare treat, and asked them both to stay overnight at the estate so they could join her for breakfast in the morning. Kenneth, evidently too tired to return to the Starlight Club for his usual late-night revelry, surprisingly agreed. Helena, with no other choice, stayed as well. They returned to the room Rachel had prepared for them. The spacious room was decorated with romantic touches, and in the soft glow of flickering candles, the atmosphere felt thick with unspoken tension. The bed, draped in pure white sheets, was scattered with red roses arranged in a large heart shape, their rich fragrance filling the air. Helena and Kenneth exchanged glances, both speechless. She quickly found the light switch and turned on the overhead lights. The bright light dispelled much of the room's suggestive atmosphere. Helena turned to Kenneth, choosing a decidedly unromantic topic. "Do you think Jerome had anything to do with the false accusations against you?" Though phrased as a question, there was a tone of certainty in her voice. Kenneth didnโt respond. Instead, he looked down at her with a cold, assessing gaze. โMr. Langstonโheโs still lingering around you, isnโt he?โ Seeing she didnโt immediately respond, he pressed on bluntly, as if worried she might misunderstand his meaning. โIf youโre truly interested in rekindling things with him, just say so. Thereโs no need to sneak around behind my back.โ Kenneth was one of the few who knew about her past with Eric. His use of the word "rekindling" was laced with sarcasm. Helena couldnโt stand it anymore and snapped, โKenneth, whatโs gotten into you? Havenโt I played along enough with all your schemes?โ Kenneth met her gaze, which was now blazing with anger, and seemed momentarily at a loss. After a couple of seconds, he responded in a low voice, โI just donโt want to be blindsided with a betrayal like tonight.โ Thinking of Jeromeโs earlier provocations, Helena took a deep breath, about to reassure Kenneth. But an inexplicable sensation began to rise within herโa warmth that felt like a spark, ready to spread like wildfire through her body. Sensing something was off, she looked up at Kenneth, only to find his face slightly flushed, his intense gaze fixed on her. In the depths of his eyes, there was a fierce, flickering heat as if a flame had been ignited and was burning wildly. | LEARN_MORE | https://beokn.com/market/buenovela/3?lpid=15543&ut | Random Reading | https://www.facebook.com/61559743679549/ | 334 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn More | 0 | beokn.com | DCO | https://beokn.com/market/buenovela/3?lpid=15543&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}}&placement={{placement}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-1.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/466919986_534033072870870_7540673277837274692_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60_tt6&_nc_cat=102&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=vVbgWEWv_80Q7kNvgE5MWAN&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-1.xx&_nc_gid=Aq0spFD969MqsLdVMIPxMuI&oh=00_AYBCBtKDcpID1uHaZxjCimRCGhLAeHRqh2UQBQlJSrdp2A&oe=677A7152 | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Random Reading | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,656,740 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2656798}' |
Yes | 2024-12-31 18:39 | active | 2174 | 0 |
|
๐Read the next chapters๐ | It was actually very obvious whether a man loved a woman or not. Angela Graham knew it very well. For example, Dexter Bamford could spend a fortune buying out all the billboards in the central business district to celebrate the birthday of his first love, Elena Carrey. He did so that the whole city would be able to tell his sincerity toward her. But for Angela's birthday, all she got was just a small, six-inch cake. In fact, it was the very same cake the nanny had gotten on her birthday. Angela chuckled when she saw the cake. It made sense, after all. Although she was Dexter's legally wedded wife, the actual Mrs. Bamford, her job scope wasn't much different from the nanny's anyway. The only extra task she had was sleeping with Dexter. Angela felt tears well in her eyes when she thought about this. The loneliness in her eyes stood out like a sore thumb amid the noisy surroundings of the party. Dexter had been late to the party as always. Actually, he had planned on staying at the banquet hall for a while longer, but he had received a message just then. He opened up the message, not bothering to hide anything from Angela. It was as if her feelings weren't even worth considering at any point. "It kinda hurtsโฆ Can you come over?" Along with the message was a photo of a woman's bare back, decorated all over with love bites, as if she had just finished rolling in the sheets with her lover a few minutes ago. It was very suggestive. Angela couldn't even describe what she was feeling anymore. She just felt the discomfort in her stomach start to intensify. She knew the person who had sent Dexter the messages. It was his secretary, Erica Carrey, Elena's younger sister. She had just never imagined that Erica was also one of Dexter's bed partners. Angela stared at Dexter's phone for a long time. It wasn't until Dexter addressed her that she finally snapped back to her senses. "Done staring?" Angela raised her head, her gaze meeting Dexter's dark eyes. Dexter's facial features were partially hidden in the shadows under the dim light. He exuded a cold and aloof air as he threw Angela another glance and nonchalantly slipped the phone back into his pocket. He didn't seem the least bit hurried or anxious at all, and he certainly wasn't remorseful that his wife had found out about his affair. He didn't even care whether Angela would throw a fuss about it. Meanwhile, Angela simply lowered her head like a guilty child who had just done something wrong. She shifted her gaze at once. She just simply couldn't hold this against him. After all, following what had happened the last time, her father, Bill Graham, had remarried, and Angela didn't have any support from her maternal family. They no longer wanted to have anything to do with her. Her mother, Marie Jetson, used to own a company called Jetson Co., but Bill had completely taken over the company. He had also long forgotten his promise to Marie and abandoned Angela for the sake of his new wife, Judy Miller, and her son, Zack Graham. Angela had nothing left aside from the title of Mrs. Bamford. She was just Dexter's trophy wife. She knew that she had no right to question Dexter, the head of the household who provided for her. It didn't matter that she used to be a very famous designer in the industry. Just as Dexter was about to leave, Angela tugged on the corner of his shirt and said, "Dexter, can you come home earlier today? I've got something to tell you." Dexter looked at her with a half-smile and suddenly came close to her. He chuckled in her ear and said, "What, tonight? Someone's eager today. I'm taking this as an invitation." Angela shuddered suddenly. Dexter had never gone easy on her in bed. However, the people around them couldn't help teasing them watching their interaction. They joked that Dexter and Angela kept behaving like newlyweds in their honeymoon phase with how often they stuck to each other like glue. Still, Angela knew that this so-called intimacy was only a show. Dexter had never viewed her as his equal. To him, she was nothing but a decoration item that he owned. He had been forced to marry her, so she was a liability to him. He also thought it was all a ruse to curry favor with him. Without giving Angela a chance to answer, Dexter nodded at the rest of the guests and left the place. โฆ That night, Dexter got home even later than usual. Angela glanced at the clock and saw that it was close to dawn. She sat in the living room as she waited for him. When she saw him enter the house, she got up and approached him. As she took his coat from him, she thought it vaguely smelled like peaches. Obviously, this scent didn't belong to her. She held the coat closer and took another sniff. "Dexterโ" Just as she started to speak, she was immediately interrupted. However, it was obvious that Dexter misunderstood her. "What's up? Why are you sniffing like a dog?" He said it nonchalantly, as if reminding Angela about her position in this marriage. She was Mrs. Bamford, a nanny who should always turn a blind eye to Dexter's tomfoolery, serve him food, and satisfy him in bed whenever he wanted. She was not to bother about anything else that didn't concern her. "Whatever you have to say, you can wait until I've showered," Dexter said, walking around Angela as he left. A short while later, Dexter emerged from the bathroom with a head of messy hair. His bathrobe hung loosely on his shoulders, revealing his toned abs and sexy V-line. Angela hurriedly stood up from the couch and didn't dare to look up at him. It had been so many years, and Dexter still managed to hypnotize her like this every time. When they had been in high school, she had accidentally bumped into his table, knocking his textbook off to the ground. From the moment he had smiled at her and told her it was okay, with the sun shining in the back, Angela had fallen for him, hook, line, and sinker. But she then recalled the phone call she had received from Judy that afternoon, saying that Zack had racked up a huge debt from his gambling addiction. Apparently, they had no choice but to put a mortgage on the house Marie had left for Angela to repay his debts. That house had belonged to Marie all along and had nothing to do with them! How could they have done such a thing? Angela gritted her teeth and said, "Dexter, I'd like to participate in the international design competition this year." The prize money was well worth up to eight figures. Angela wanted to use the money to redeem her mother's house. "You waited for so long just to ask me this? Aren't you a little too free now, Mrs. Bamford?" Dexter asked, curling his lips up in a smirk. "You're not suited to reveal your face in public." Angela grabbed Dexter's arm anxiously and said, "I'm not revealing my face to the public. I won't let other people know that I'm Mrs. Bamford." Dexter had long lost his patience. He looked at her mockingly and said, "And why should I believe you?" Exactly. Why should he believe her? The coffee Bill had prepared for Dexter back then had been drugged. Angela had known nothing about it, but they hadn't been able to trust each other for years because she had been the one who had given it to Dexter. Angela released her hold on Dexter's arm. If she didn't participate in the competition, then how else could she get so much money? Suddenly, a huge force swept Angela off her feet. She found herself falling against a cold, steely chest. Dexter's icy voice sounded from behind her. "Giving up so soon? Actually, if you perform well tonight, I can perhaps think about it." "Perform what?" "What do you think?" Dexter suddenly blew in Angela's ear, getting her in the mood. As usual, the lobes of Angela's ears turned a bright red color. Dexter felt aroused all of a sudden. He hugged her tightly from the back and leaned in to kiss her earlobes. Yet, Angela suddenly felt annoyed. Dexter often acted on his primal instincts. He was the only one who had a say in whether they would be having that night or not. Hadn't he just come back from someone else's bed that night? That woman didn't satisfy him? Before Angela could push him away, Dexter's phone suddenly started ringing loudly, ruining the mood. He went to answer the phone. The sound of a woman sobbing could be heard on the other end of the line. Chapter 2 Dexter glanced up at Angela before speaking gently into the phone. "What's the matter? Don't cry." Angela watched as Dexter changed into his outdoor clothes and left for the second time, for some other woman and that too, on her birthday. Her eyes stung with tears. She didn't feel sleepy anymore after Dexter left. Thinking she would get a book or two to read, Angela headed into the study and happened to see a contract. The contract was placed right in the center of the table, as if anyone was welcome to take a look at it. It was a contract between Dexter and Elena, his first love. Angela couldn't believe that they were still in contact with each other. The contract was very thick. It had started when Angela had first gotten married to Dexter, spanning five years. Angela's hand shook. The more she read, the more shocking it was for her. The latest date was actually last night. As it turned out, everything that Dexter had done for her, whether a celebration or an anniversary date, had been meticulously planned out by Elena. That explained everything! No wonder Dexter had been so gracious to set off a fireworks display just for her when she had made a fuss about him and Elena. The fireworks display had been a grand show of colors, lighting up the night with the words "LOVE YOU", the very two words Angela had been wanting to hear from Dexter since forever. She had felt so touched then. She could still remember how elated she had felt when she had seen the two words in the sky. But now, after reading this contract, she finally understood that the fireworks display she had been so proud of had been nothing but another one of Dexter's tactics to toy with her emotions. And yet, she had naively thought that maybe he did have a place for her in his heart after all. Angela closed her eyes. She had never felt such despair like she did today. She was going to have to divorce him. โฆ Dexter didn't return for the rest of the night. The next morning, Erica called, telling Angela to bring Dexter's tie and cufflinks to the company. She told Angela to hurry up since Dexter had an important meeting that day. Angela packed the things and headed over to Bamford Co. However, as always, she was stopped by the receptionist. "Good morning, miss. Do you have an appointment today?" Angela could already recite their next conversation with her eyes closed. "None." "I'm sorry, but you can't go up without an appointment." It didn't matter if Angela proved that she was Dexter's wife. "We're sorry, but we didn't receive any orders, so we can't let you up. It's the same for everyone else." In fact, if Erica were there, she would also mock Angela and say, "Oh, I'm sorry, but Mr. Bamford is the one who sets the rules here." So, this time, Angela didn't give them a chance to humiliate her anymore. She said, "I do, but my appointment is with Ms. Carrey. Please call her and ask her to come down." The receptionist stared at Angela for a brief while before calling Erica. Erica appeared very quickly. "Did you bring the things, Ms. Graham?" She never called Angela "Mrs. Bamford" in front of other people. She was also somewhat dismissive of her, talking to her as if she were just talking to a delivery man. In the past, Angela would always treat Erica with the utmost respect because of her status and position. But now, she was already planning to leave Dexter. "I did. Where's Dexter?" "Mr. Bamford is very busy. You can just hand me the things without having to wait for him. He won't show up anyway," Erica said condescendingly. Angela sighed in relief. She lifted a corner of her lips in a smirk and passed the items to Erica. "Okay. I'll pass you his things. I just thought of telling him that next time, it would perhaps be more appropriate for him to get his driver to send these things to him. "Also," Angela added, giving Erica the once-over. "As his secretary, isn't it your job to make sure that you have at least a few sets of his neckties and cufflinks as a spare? Aren't you being a little incompetent since you don't even have any extra sets for him?" With that, Angela walked away. She couldn't be bothered to argue with a mistress and teach the latter to mind her position. Dexter only caught sight of Angela's back as she left when he came out of the door. He looked at Erica and asked in confusion, "She left?" Erica opened her mouth to say something but decided against it. She didn't know what was wrong with Angela today. Usually, Angela would always beg to stay at the company, and Dexter would always appear when she was arguing with Erica. But it was somehow different today. It was as if Angela was a completely different person altogether. At the very least, she didn't stay back to wait to catch a glimpse of Dexter anymore. Erica frowned. "Yes. She left without saying anything else." Dexter found it strange. He felt a little frustrated too. "Don't bother about her. Hurry up and get to the meeting." The meeting lasted the whole day. It was already evening by the time it ended. Dexter got into his black Luxury car and went straight home to the villa. His driver, Chet Sanders, cut the engine and hurriedly got around the car to open the door for Dexter. As soon as Dexter got out, the maids came out to greet him. "You're back, sir! Madam has been in her room all day and refuses to eat anything. We're not sure if anything's wrong with her." When he heard this, Dexter was stunned for a moment. His eyes turned dark with emotion. Angela must be jealous. She probably didn't like that he had left last night, and she was throwing a fuss because she felt threatened. Dexter went upstairs, jeering at her in his heart. He saw Angela folding her clothes in front of the wardrobe when he stepped into their bedroom. He reached up to loosen his tie, leaning against the side as he openly eyed her from top to bottom. This was Angela, his wife. Aside from that pretty face of hers, she was absolutely useless to him. Come to think of it, she was pretty good with doing chores around the house. She was even better than the nanny at it. Angela didn't make a sound. Seeing that she wasn't saying anything, Dexter didn't feel like questioning her either. He just went to change out of his work clothes. He thought that by the time he was done changing, knowing Angela's temperament, her anger toward him would have already dissipated by then. She would then pour him a drink and gently ask him if he'd had dinner. She would always pretend as if nothing bad had ever happened. So, when Dexter noticed a suitcase at the door after he was done changing his clothes, he stared at it in surprise. "Are you going out?" Dexter asked, frowning slightly. Angela packed up the last of her belongings and raised her head to meet Dexter's gaze. Dexter's eyes were deep, and he exuded an air of elegance. It was still just as Angela remembered him from when she had first met him. He was a brightly shining star, and she simply couldn't take her eyes away off of him. However, as time passed, Dexter had only seemed to hate her even more. Angela stared at him silently for a long time. She stared at him for so long that her eyes began to feel dry, and they slightly welled up with tears. She then took a deep breath and said slowly, "Dexter Bamford, let's get a divorce." Chapter 3 Dexter could hardly believe what he had just heard. Throughout his marriage with Angela, he had only ever seen a submissive and hopeful look in her eyes. He knew she feared losing him. The term "divorce" was probably the thing she had feared hearing the most in the past three years. But now, she had uttered it so casually. When Dexter had seen Angela's retreating back at the office this morning, he had already felt annoyed. That emotion resurfaced again. Dexter questioned in a cold voice, "What? Are you upset because I didn't accompany you yesterday? Or is it because I refused to let you participate in that ridiculous competition? "Angela, are you out of your mind? You cried and begged to be Mrs. Bamford. You live in a villa and have luxury cars to drive you around. I even propped up your failing family. What more could you possibly be dissatisfied with?" The disdain and contempt in his words made Angela feel a chill run down her spine. She should have known better. She couldn't hold back anymore. She retorted loudly, almost shouting, "Mrs. Bamford? So what if I'm Mrs. Bamford? Have you ever seen a rich man's wife as pathetic as I am?" She stormed into the study, grabbed a bulky contract, and threw it in front of Dexter forcefully. "You should know what this is better than I do! I'm expected to keep up appearances in front of your family. But when I come home, even the household staff can show me attitude! "What kind of wife spends her birthday being yet another portfolio addition to a fireworks designer and is given the very same six-inch birthday cake that was given to the nanny? "While it is true that I got to become Mrs. Bamford because of my family's plotting, I don't want it anymore! Do you have a problem with that?" Dexter found this side of Angela unfamiliar. At the same time, he thought she was being ridiculous. "Do you think you can just get into this marriage and end it as you wish? You'd be too naรฏve to think so!" He raised an eyebrow mockingly. "Do you think you can come and go as you please in the Bamford family? What about the debt you and your family owe me?" "Whatever the Graham family owes you, go to them. What do I owe you, Dexter? I don't owe you a thing! Even if I did, three years of warming your bed should have been enough to repay it!" Angela countered. She didn't want to argue with Dexter anymore. So, she picked up her only suitcase and turned to leave. After three years of being Mrs. Bamford, all her belongings didn't even fill a small suitcaseโthis was proof of the miserable life she had been leading. As she approached the staircase, a strong grip pulled her back. Dexter's expression was stormy as he gripped her chin and forced her to look up at him. "Warming my bed? Is that how you see yourself? Ha! It seems I've overestimated you. You don't even know how to be proactive in bed or please me. Shall I give you a chance to demonstrate what you're capable of now?" Angela's eyes widened in disbelief as the dull pain radiated from her chin. Out of reflex and in retaliation, she slapped Dexter. As her hand landed on his face, a loud slap echoed in the enclosed space. The air around them seemed to freeze at that moment. A surge of anger shot up in Dexter's heart. In the next second, Angela felt the world spinning around her as Dexter picked her up and threw her onto the bed. His expression was terrifying, and he exuded an imposing air. Pinning Angela down, Dexter placed his hands on either side of her head. She felt his heavy breaths on her face. They were mere inches apart. Angela tensed up upon sensing the looming danger. As she stared at the vivid handprint on his face, she couldn't help but cower a little. Dexter bit down on the side of her neck and spoke unkind words in the most intimate way possible. "You're making a scene because you're jealous. Are you that bothered about Elena? Isn't pretending your specialty? What? Can't keep it up now?" The mention Elena struck a nerve with Angela. She swallowed down the nervousness from slapping him earlier and tried to push Dexter away impatiently. This was the first time Angela had shown refusal, or it could also be that Dexter was simply too used to their physical contact. Either way, Angela's actions ignited his desire, and he suddenly felt aroused. Angela had always had an alluring figure; she had beautiful curves in all the right places. Though she was passive in bed, they actually got along very well physically. Dexter brushed a few strands of stray hair off her forehead, his gaze darkening. He then leaned in, his lips lingering over hers. One of his hands moved to grip her soft waist. Angela came to her senses and realized what Dexter was about to do. Usually, she found it hard to refuse him when he was this forceful. But now that she intended to divorce him, this forced intimacy was uncalled for. "No, Dexter! Stopโฆ" Angela was unaware of the impact that her soft, moaning tone had on a man. There was even a hint of a sob in her meek protest. Angela cursed herself for being so weak. All it took was a light kiss from Dexter, and what was supposed to be a firm rejection sounded like she was playing hard-to-get instead. Well, Dexter was into this. His wandering hand trailed lower as his lips brushed over her earlobe. "Isn't it too early to ask me to stop now? It always takes a few rounds before you start begging for mercy." Angela's face turned red with embarrassment, and she had a flustered look in her eyes. Even if Dexter didn't want to admit it, he was indeed aroused when he held her intoxicating body in his arms so closely. Just as he was about to tear her clothes away, she reached out and stopped him. Angela asked through ragged breaths, "There are no more protective measure. Are you sure about this?" Dexter paused, and reason took over. He realized that he wasn't that desperate to bed her. After all, having a child with Angela wasn't part of his current plans. Nevertheless, he felt reluctant to let go of her when the mood was just right. He raised an eyebrow and questioned, "Are you threatening me?" "No, I'm simply stating a fact." Angela stubbornly looked up at him, standing her ground. At that moment, something snapped in Dexter, and he found the face staring back at him incredibly infuriating. "You could just take a pill!" he growled, disregarding her objections. Angela's face was wet with tears. Once again, she saw her true worth in Dexter's eyes. Even calling her a bed partner would be too generous. A bed partner had the right to say "no", but she didn't even have the right to refuse. The abrupt ringing of Dexter's phone interrupted their imminent intimacy. He casually picked up his phone, not really concerned at first. But upon seeing who was calling, he quickly lifted himself off Angela. Chapter 4 Dexter cleared his throat with a light cough before pressing the answer button. "Yes, Grandpa?" The robust voice of an old man came from the other end. "Dexter, I may be sick, but I'm not dead. Did you even know it was Angie's birthday yesterday?" Upon hearing this, Dexter glanced at Angela before speaking politely into the phone. "Of course I knew it was her birthday yesterday. I even organized a grand celebration for her." "Hmph! Don't try to fool me!" Joseph Bamford scolded. The next moment, there was the sound of Joseph angrily handing the phone over to his butler, Gary Butler. Gary took over the call and spoke respectfully to Dexter. "Mr. Bamford Jr., Mr. Bamford Sr. has been feeling some discomfort in his chest over the past couple of days. If you have the time, bring your wife along to visit him at Bamford Manor. Mr. Bamford Sr. might not say it, but he probably misses the pasta she makes." Dexter remained silent for a moment before agreeing. "I'll bring her over shortly, Mr. Butler." After hanging up, Dexter calmly adjusted his cuffs and asked in a seemingly casual tone, "Didn't you post any birthday photos yesterday?" With just that question, Angela understood what he meantโthe lack of photos had caused Joseph to worry. "Grandpa isn't well, and he's getting on in years. Whatever you may be thinking, keep it to yourself in front of him. Understood?" Dexter warned. Angela nodded wordlessly and got up to get dressed. Joseph was the only one in the Bamford family who had ever truly treated her well. When she had been ten, Marie had end life saving Joseph. After that, Bill had gotten married again, and Judy had become her stepmother. Bill had used this debt of gratitude to secure Angela a foothold in the Bamford family. Feeling sympathy for her and having always liked Angela, Joseph had forced Dexter to marry her. She and Dexter getting divorced was a private matter. So, there was no need to trouble Joseph about it. He didn't need to know. Dexter went downstairs first and picked out a car from the garage. He didn't ask Chet to drive him to Bamford Manor. Instead, he drove the car out himself. The engine emitted a low hum in the night. Angela changed into a white camisole dress and draped a pale blue shawl over it, accentuating her curves. Her long hair cascaded down her shoulders, and the pale skin on her neck was partially visible, adding a touch of allure. She forcefully tugged on the handle of the door to the back seat, but it wouldn't budge. The window on the passenger side rolled down halfway, and Dexter's impatient voice came from inside. "Get in the front." Angela hesitated only briefly before opening the door and getting in. Dexter stepped on the accelerator pedal somewhat heavily as he drove off. The inertia caused Angela to be thrown back into her seat slightly, making her frown. She glanced sideways at Dexter, who had one hand resting on the wheel. He was completely focused on the road, seemingly oblivious to her presence. He had always been like this. In their three years of marriage, he had seldom given her any of his attention unless it had been necessary. Over the years, Angela had rarely gotten to ride in his car. The times she had gotten to sit in the passenger seat were few and far between. Now that she was preparing to divorce Dexter, she didn't bother to engage him further. Hence, the drive was silent. The car stopped in front of Bamford Manor, which was on the outskirts of town. With its lush greenery and vast expanse, it resembled castle grounds from the last centuryโrustic yet grand on the outside and luxurious on the inside. Just as Angela was about to open the door to get out, Dexter grabbed her wrist. "Hold on." She turned around in puzzlement to see Dexter looking unusually serious. "What?" she asked curtly. "Let me remind you againโGrandpa can't handle surprises. Think carefully before you speak," Dexter reminded warily. Angela nodded, her tone cold as she replied, "I know." As she got out, she shrugged her shoulders against the chilly night air. With brisk steps, she walked toward the entrance. Dexter watched her back, noticing that she didn't wait for him. He caught up with her in a few strides and placed a hand over her shoulder. He felt her halt, and her body stiffened for a brief second. Ultimately, she didn't pull away. In the main hall on the first floor, Dexter's mother, Fiona Rosewell sat elegantly, holding a steaming cup of dandelion tea prepared by the maids. She didn't even look up when Gary announced Dexter and Angela's return. Angela wasn't surprised. For the past three years, Fiona had always been indifferent toward her. Once, Angela would have felt hurt upon being given the cold shoulder. But now that she was on the brink of divorce from Dexter, none of it seemed to matter anymore. Knowing that Dexter would never take the initiative to greet Fiona, Angela took the initiative to greet her instead. After a moment, Fiona reluctantly nodded and said, "Oh, you're here. Go greet your grandfather." She sipped her tea daintilyโa signal for them to leave her alone. Her gaze lingered on Dexter's hand that was on Angela's shoulder, and she frowned slightly. She had always disliked seeing them being intimate. Dexter, as usual, ignored her and walked straight past her. Fiona and Dexter had been estranged for years. Once, Angela had tried to act as a mediator between them. Now that she had her own troubles, she no longer had any energy to spare them. She followed Dexter into Joseph's bedroom and found the latter looking somewhat weary as he leaned against the headboard. Upon hearing the door open, Joseph looked up. His eyes lit up with joy when he saw it was them. "You're here, Angie! I was just thinking of you, birthday girl. Gary, go bring the gift I prepared for Angie." Joseph's cheerful expression nearly brought tears to Angela's eyes. In this household, he was probably the only one who had bothered to prepare a gift for her. "Grandpa, I heard you've been unwell lately. Don't worry about me. Your health means more to me than any gift you could give," Angela said with concern. She chatted with Joseph for a while before going off to make him some fresh pasta. As soon as she left, Joseph's expression became grim. He looked up and narrowed his eyes at Dexter, who had been silent since he had entered the room. "Cat got your tongue?" The corners of Dexter's lips became slightly downturned. "Didn't I bring her back to see you?" "Don't act innocent, Dexter. I'm warning you, don't keep this up until it's too late. Angie is a good womanโdon't take her for granted! Keep an eye on the Graham family. They're not easy to deal with either. "As for that other Carrey womanโฆ You'd better cut ties with her completely! Don't upset Angie, you fool." Dexter mumbled a few vague responses, hoping to end the conversation. Joseph was about to lose his temper when Angela returned with the fresh pasta. "Here's the pasta, Grandpa. Give it a try and see if it is as good as you remember," Angela said. Joseph noticed that Dexter and Angela had barely had any interaction with each other ever since they had arrived. In his eyes, this was a clear sign of trouble. He was especially worried because Angela's eyes no longer shone when she looked toward Dexter. Joseph felt an urgency to intervene on behalf of his oblivious grandson. He took a spoonful of the pasta and praised it. Then, he asked with a smile, "Angie, I'm getting older. I hope that my home can be a bit more lively, you know? When are you two planning to give us a new family member?" Chapter 5 Angela had just gotten out of the car and steadied herself when the black Cullinan drove off without any hesitation, leaving her in a cloud of dust. She stood there in a daze for a moment before letting out a self-deprecating laugh and thought, "That's right. He's always been like this." But before she had time to dwell on her misery, her phone rang urgently. Angela took out her phone and saw that it was an unknown number. "Hello, is this Ms. Graham? I'm the property manager for Villa Heights. I'm calling to confirm if your property has been sold." "Why do you ask?" Angela's heart skipped a beat. Over the years, she had managed the property, so the contact information listed was hers. However, when Marie had passed away, she had been too young. So, Bill had put all of Marie's assets under his name. When Angela had been young, he had used to say to her, "When you grow up and find your Prince Charming, I'll turn this house into a castle for you both to live in happily ever after!" But in just a few years, everything had completely changed for the Graham family. Angela sometimes wondered if Bill was still the same father who used to love her mother dearly and cherish her. Whenever Bill hadn't been home, Judy hadn't allowed Angela to eat at the table. She had come up with the excuse that girls needed to stay in shape and had made Angela go hungry several times a day. Apart from her outerwear, her clothes had always been too short. The freezing winter wind would seep right into her sleeves and chill her to the core. Angela had developed arthritis at a young age, yet Judy had always complained to Bill, saying, "I don't know what else to do! I pamper her, but she's never satisfied. She's always complaining of feeling pain here and there. Anyone who didn't know better would think I'm mistreating her!" Upon hearing that, Bill had responded furiously, "Can't you let us have some peace, Angela?" The first slap she had ever received from Bill had landed on her cheek at that moment. Later on, he had even sacrificed her for his own selfish desires by sending her to Dexter's bed. Angela hated herself for spending three years trying to win Dexter's love and failing ultimately. Frustrated, she clenched her fists tightly. It seemed she couldn't rely on anyone. She would have to reclaim what was rightfully hers on her own. However, she knew she couldn't rush thingsโshe had to take it step by step. First, she needed to secure her mother's house no matter what. The property manager's voice on the other end snapped her back to the present. "The moving company is clearing out the house, saying it has a new owner." Angela was stunned and felt a surge of panic. Hadn't they agreed to give her more time? Why should she bear the consequences of her good-for-nothing stepbrother's actions? "I'm coming over right now!" She hung up and quickly hailed a cab back to her home. But when she arrived, the house was barely recognizable. The place was filled with unfamiliar men in gaudy clothing. The furniture was overturned. The photos of her and Marie were carelessly tossed on the floor. A fat, middle-aged man with a bald head stepped squarely on Marie's face in one of the pictures. "Stop! Who gave you permission to come in?" Angela shouted angrily. The man turned around, grinning sleazily when he saw her. "The house is mine! I can come and go as I please. And who might you be, little lady?" Angela looked at the fat man in front of her in disgust, pointing toward the door. "This house is mine! I'm asking you to leave immediately!" The man guffawed as he said, "Did you all hear that? She says the house is hers!" The men around him joined in, egging him on. "Since when did you get a wife, Tony? She's fighting you over the property!" "Well, she's pretty, but we've never seen her." "Yeah! Introduce us to your beautiful wife, Tony!" The fat man, Tony Koch, felt emboldened by their provocation. He walked up to Angela with a lewd grin. Laughing raucously, he offered, "Come on, pretty lady. Give me a smile! Tell me which room you like. I'll let you choose first!" Angela silently estimated when the police would arrive after she had called them. She stepped back coldly, her face full of disdain. Tony got even more excited when he saw her retreat. "Hey, don't back away!" He reached out, attempting to touch Angela's cheek. Just then, she heard the screech of car brakes outside. She smiled slightly and delivered a crisp slap to Tony's greasy face. Tony stared back in shock, unable to believe that this delicate-looking woman had dared to hit him. "Why youโฆ Do you have a death wish?" he snarled, grabbing a wooden frame from the floor and hurling it at Angela's head. Angela quickly dodged. At that moment, the property manager arrived and said loudly, "Sir, miss, please calm down. The police are at the gate. Let's handle this peacefully!" Upon hearing the property manager's words, Tony hesitated. However, the mocking looks from the people around him made him refuse to back down. "Fine, let's see what kind of punishment she gets for causing trouble on my property!" โฆ Angela had never expected the person who had bailed her out of the police station would be Dexter. When she saw him, he had one hand on the car window, He looked devilishly handsome. His gaze toward her was filled with disdain. "Well, this is unexpected, Mrs. Bamford." The mocking smile on his face was clear to see. "I didn't expect I'd need to come and get you from the police station on the first day you ran away from home." Angela felt a wave of humiliation but held back her tears. She put on a defiant expression and replied, "Since you find it so troublesome, why don't we just get divorced tomorrow? That way, you won't be troubled by my problems anymore." After some time, he chuckled. "Still acting tough, huh? What makes you think I'll comply with your wishes? Get out!". "Don't call me again if you get into this kind of trouble." The Car Continental GT sped off, leaving a trail of exhaust in its wake. Angela crouched down and hugged herself, trying to find some warmth in the cold night. โฆ Over the next few days, Angela rented a small apartment and found a new job. With the police's help, she was granted a three-month grace period. If she could gather enough money within three months, she could buy back Marie's house. During this time, the property couldn't be auctioned or have its ownership title transferred. This meant that she could no longer remain as a rich man's wife who had nothing to her name. The first thing she needed to do was to be able to support herself financially. Things didn't go as she wished. On her first day at work, the HR manager nervously called her over and asked, "Excuse me, are you Mrs. Bamford?" Chapter 6 Angela frowned and denied it without a second thought. However, the manager didn't believe her. "Regardless, we just found out that you have no work experience. I'm sorry, but we can't hire a complete newbie like you." Even though Angela repeatedly assured him of her expertise in design, the manager was adamant about not going through with hiring her. As Angela stared at the manager, who looked deeply troubled, she instantly understood everything. It was Dexter! He was forcing her to give in! Amidst the strange gazes everyone was casting her way, Angela took her belongings and left. At that moment, she felt an urge to call Dexter and ask him why he was doing this. Still, she resisted that impulse and refrained from acting on it. She kept convincing herself not to let this get to her. It was just a jobโshe could find another. Angela dragged her exhausted body back to her rented apartment, only to find her belongings thrown out and lying miserably in the hallway. Nothing had been sparedโeven her brand-new bedding and toiletries had suffered the same fate as they lay in a pile outside. Shocked and furious, she immediately called the landlord. "Sorry, but I can't rent to you anymore. I'll transfer your rent back," the landlord replied curtly, not even giving her a chance to question him. Seconds later, she received 2,000 money on Venmo. Once again, the image of Dexter's handsome yet maliciously amused face appeared in her mind. Unable to bear it any longer, she called him. For once, he picked up within ten seconds. "What's wrong? Have you finally come to your senses?" His tone was casual, and there were the sounds of a lively gathering in the background. But the moment he spoke, everything around him fell silent. It seemed everyone was waiting to hear how Angela would make a fool of herself. "Are you making my life difficult for fun, Dexter?" Angela asked. Her eyes were red, and her nose tingled. She was on the verge of tears. Yet, she forced herself to stay composed and not let her voice break. On the other end, there was a brief pause before Dexter let out a cold laugh. "Of course I'm not doing it for fun. I want you to experience what life would be like without the Bamford familyโ" "You're sick!" Angela spat harshly and hung up before he could finish his sentence. Her shoulders shook slightly as she slid down the cold wall as tears finally streamed down her face. She wiped them away, but they wouldn't stop. Dexter knew her pain more than anyone else, yet he had chosen to rub salt on her wounds. "Dexter, you're a bad egg!" she screamed, her chest heaving. After a long while, she slowly stood up and found a hotel through a quick online search on her phone. She needed somewhere to stay for a few days before she could start afresh. โฆ Meanwhile, in a luxurious VIP suite at Mystique Bar, the earlier liveliness had vanished. In its place was an eerie silence. Everyone exchanged looks, seeing the shock and confusion mirrored in each other's eyes. Who had Dexter been talking to on the phone just now? He had been cursed at, and the person had even hung up on him. The shrill exclamation from earlierโ"You're sick!"โseemed to linger in the air, weighing down the atmosphere even more. Dexter's expression was grim. The scowl on his face was so pronounced that it intimidated the people around him. He gripped his phone tightly, staring at the phone screen, which showed that the call had ended. The name "Angela" was right at the top of the list of recent calls. Staring at her name, Dexter seemed to see her defiant face in his mind's eye. "What's wrong, Mr. Bamford?" asked a young man. The person asking was Zayn Jewell, a childhood friend of Dexter's. He was the one who had arranged the gathering that evening. "Nothing." After a brief silence, Dexter stood up and lifted his long legs to step over the obstacles blocking his way. As he walked out, he announced, "I'm leaving." He was tall and muscularโeven his back looked imposing. Erica was already waiting outside. As Dexter tossed his coat to her, he ordered coldly, "Take me to Bliss Garden." He thought Angela had acted out of line that day and that she needed stern disciplining. Angela's angry outburst reverberated in his mind constantly as he got into the car and seated himself. Irritated, he loosened his tie. Erica asked, "Mr. Bamford, why are you going to Bliss Garden?" Normally, she wouldn't ask questions. Her reaction was out of the norm that day. Dexter's expression darkened. "What? Do I need to report to you now?" Erica turned pale instantly. She lowered her head and explained, "I'm sorry, Mr. Bamford. Mrs. Bamford is no longer at Bliss Garden." Dexter frowned and asked irritably, "What do you mean? Where did she go?" Erica recounted her conversation with Angela's landlord in Bliss Garden succinctly. "Who told you to do that?" Dexter's gaze was icy, and he exuded a menacing chill all over. No wonder Angela had been furiousโshe had been pushed to her limits. Erica trembled in fear and struggled to come up with an adequate explanation that could justify her actions. However, her mouth felt like it was glued shut, and she couldn't utter a word. "Find her!" Dexter ordered coldly. His expression remained the same, but it still sent a chill down Erica's spine. The gentle summer night breeze blew softly. Angela trudged along the city's main street with all her belongings. She went from one hotel to another. She had to admit that Dexter was ruthless. With just a little effort, he had plunged her into the depths of despair. This was a huge city, yet she couldn't even find a place to stay. Angela had thought about going home, but that place was hardly home to her anymore. Suddenly, it began to rain. As the rain grew heavier, Angela and her meager belongings were soaked through in no time. Angela ran desperately in the rain. Eventually, she found shelter in a self-service banking kiosk. With that, she finally had a moment to catch her breath. She found a cheap motel that didn't require any registration on her phone. When the rain stopped, she took a cab there. The motel was in poor condition, and it had thin walls. So, she didn't sleep well all night. The next morning, she woke up with a fever. She felt hot for a moment, but cold in the next. Due to her sickness, she drifted in and out of consciousness. Suddenly, Angela heard the door open. She jumped out of bed immediately, feeling alarmed. Dexter stepped in, and it was clear he wasn't pleased. When their eyes met, her guarded expression didn't soften in the slightest. She asked, "What are you doing here?" Of course, he was there to watch her misery. What Dexter first noticed upon stepping in wasn't the defensive look on Angela's face. He scanned the shabby room and frowned while thinking, "I can't believe she'd rather stay here than admit defeat and come home." "I came to see what my dear wife has been up to these past two days," Dexter said blandly, sitting down on the dingy couch. The lingering scent of the previous occupants' body odor and sweat clung to it. The moment his nose caught the stench, he stood back up, feeling repulsed. "So, is life on the streets fun?" he asked, looking at Angela with amusement. He observed her frail frame. Though she looked thin and weak, her gaze was sharp and defiant. Something was different about her. "It's none of your business." Angela's head ached, and her knees felt like they would buckle at any moment. Even her voice sounded lethargic. She wrapped herself in her clothes and sneezed. It made her head throb even more. Dexter quickly sensed that something was wrong with her. He stepped forward and grabbed her arm, noticing right away that she was burning up. His hand shot up to her face and forehead, and an even warmer temperature registered on his fingers. | LEARN_MORE | https://beokn.com/market/buenovela/3?lpid=15824&ut | Random Reading | https://www.facebook.com/61559743679549/ | 334 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn More | 0 | beokn.com | DCO | https://beokn.com/market/buenovela/3?lpid=15824&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}}&placement={{placement}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-2.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/468079191_576706848177391_5263571557326726272_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60_tt6&_nc_cat=103&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=k7lyz8WlG1wQ7kNvgEbVDME&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-2.xx&_nc_gid=Aq0spFD969MqsLdVMIPxMuI&oh=00_AYDtN847PrKhijitWhKYFlTpn-B0vXEfIk1ctYpSqnS29g&oe=677A6343 | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Random Reading | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete |
Page 52 of 127, showing 20 record(s) out of 2,537 total